Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    The Fortunes & Misfortunes of the Famous Moll Flanders &c. 
Who was Born in Newgateand during a Life of 
continu'd Variety for Threescore Yearsbesides her 
Childhoodwas Twelve Year a Whorefive times a 
Wife (whereof once to her own Brother)Twelve Year 
a ThiefEight Year a Transported Felon in Virginia
at last grew Richliv'd Honestand dies a Penitent. 
Written from her own Memorandums . . . 
by Daniel Defoe 
THE AUTHOR'S PREFACE 
The world is so taken up of late with novels and romances
that it will be hard for a private history to be taken for genuine
where the names and other circumstances of the person are 
concealedand on this account we must be content to leave 
the reader to pass his own opinion upon the ensuing sheet
and take it just as he pleases. 
The author is here supposed to be writing her own history
and in the very beginning of her account she gives the reasons 
why she thinks fit to conceal her true nameafter which there 
is no occasion to say any more about that. 
It is true that the original of this story is put into new words
and the style of the famous lady we here speak of is a little 
altered; particularly she is made to tell her own tale in modester 
words that she told it at firstthe copy which came first to 
hand having been written in language more like one still in 
Newgate than one grown penitent and humbleas she 
afterwards pretends to be. 
The pen employed in finishing her storyand making it what 
you now see it to behas had no little difficulty to put it into 
a dress fit to be seenand to make it speak language fit to be 
read. When a woman debauched from her youthnayeven 
being the offspring of debauchery and vicecomes to give an 
account of all her vicious practicesand even to descend to the 
particular occasions and circumstances by which she ran through 
in threescore yearsan author must be hard put to it wrap it 
up so clean as not to give roomespecially for vicious readers
to turn it to his disadvantage. 
All possible carehoweverhas been taken to give no lewd 
ideasno immodest turns in the new dressing up of this story; 
nonot to the worst parts of her expressions. To this purpose 
some of the vicious part of her lifewhich could not be 
modestly toldis quite left outand several other parts are 
very much shortened. What is left 'tis hoped will not offend 
the chastest reader or the modest hearer; and as the best use 
is made even of the worst storythe moral 'tis hoped will keep 
the reader seriouseven where the story might incline him to 
be otherwise. To give the history of a wicked life repented of
necessarily requires that thewicked part should be make as 
wicked as the real history of it will bearto illustrate and give 
a beauty to the penitent partwhich is certainly the best and 
brightestif related with equal spirit and life. 
It is suggested there cannot be the same lifethe same brightness 
and beautyin relating the penitent part as is in the criminal 
part. If there is any truth in that suggestionI must be allowed 
to say 'tis because there is not the same taste and relish in the 
readingand indeed it is to true that the difference lies not in 
the real worth of the subject so much as in the gust and palate 
of the reader. 
But as this work is chiefly recommended to those who know 
how to read itand how to make the good uses of it which the 
story all along recommends to themso it is to be hoped that 
such readers will be more leased with the moral than the fable
with the application than with the relationand with the end 
of the writer than with the life of the person written of. 
There is in this story abundance of delightful incidentsand 
all of them usefully applied. There is an agreeable turn artfully 
given them in the relatingthat naturally instructs the reader
either one way or other. The first part of her lewd life with the 
young gentleman at Colchester has so many happy turns given 
it to expose the crimeand warn all whose circumstances are 
adapted to itof the ruinous end of such thingsand the foolish
thoughtlessand abhorred conduct of both the partiesthat it 
abundantly atones for all the lively description she gives of her 
folly and wickedness. 
The repentance of her lover at the Bathand how brought by 
the just alarm of his fit of sickness to abandon her; the just 
caution given there against even the lawful intimacies of the 
dearest friendsand how unable they are to preserve the most 
solemn resolutions of virtue without divine assistance; these 
are parts whichto a just discernmentwill appear to have 
more real beauty in them all the amorous chain of story which 
introduces it. 
In a wordas the whole relation is carefully garbled of all the 
levity and looseness that was in itso it all appliedand with 
the utmost careto virtuous and religious uses. None can
without being guilty of manifest injusticecast any reproach 
upon itor upon our design in publishing it. 
The advocates for the stage havein all agesmade this the 
great argument to persuade people that their plays are useful
and that they ought to be allowed in the most civilised and in 
the most religious government; namelythat they are applied 
to virtuous purposesand that by the most lively representations
they fail not to recommend virtue and generous principlesand 
to discourage and expose all sorts of vice and corruption of 
manners; and were it true that they did soand that they 
constantly adhered to that ruleas the test of their acting on 
the theatremuch might be said in their favour. 
Throughout the infinite variety of this bookthis fundamental 
is most strictly adhered to; there is not a wicked action in any 
part of itbut is first and last rendered unhappy and unfortunate; 
there is not a superlative villain brought upon the stagebut 
either he is brought to an unhappy endor brought to be a 
penitent; there is not an ill thing mentioned but it is condemned
even in the relationnor a virtuousjust thing but it carries its 
praise along with it. What can more exactly answer the rule 
laid downto recommend even those representations of things 
which have so many other just objections leaving against them? 
namelyof exampleof bad companyobscene languageand 
the like. 
Upon this foundation this book is recommended to the reader 
as a work from every part of which something may be learned
and some just and religious inference is drawnby which the 
reader will have something of instructionif he pleases to make 
use of it. 
All the exploits of this lady of famein her depredations upon 
mankindstand as so many warnings to honest people to 
beware of themintimating to them by what methods innocent 
people are drawn inplundered and robbedand by consequence 
how to avoid them. Her robbing a little innocent childdressed 
fine by the vanity of the motherto go to the dancing-school
is a good memento to such people hereafteras is likewise her 
picking the gold watch from the young lady's side in the Park. 
Her getting a parcel from a hare-brained wench at the coaches 
in St. John Street; her booty made at the fireand again at 
Harwichall give us excellent warnings in such cases to be 
more present to ourselves in sudden surprises of every sort. 
Her application to a sober life and industrious management at 
last in Virginiawith her transported spouseis a story fruitful 
of instruction to all the unfortunate creatures who are obliged 
to seek their re-establishment abroadwhether by the misery 
of transportation or other disaster; letting them know that 
diligence and application have their due encouragementeven 
in the remotest parts of the worldand that no case can be so 
lowso despicableor so empty of prospectbut that an 
unwearied industry will go a great way to deliver us from it
will in time raise the meanest creature to appear again the 
worldand give him a new case for his life. 
There are a few of the serious inferences which we are led 
by the hand to in this bookand these are fully sufficient to 
justify any man in recommending it to the worldand much 
more to justify the publication of it. 
There are two of the most beautiful parts still behindwhich 
this story gives some idea ofand lets us into the parts of them
but they are either of them too long to be brought into the same 
volumeand indeed areas I may call themwhole volumes of 
themselvesviz.: 1. The life of her governessas she calls her
who had run throughit seemsin a few yearsall the eminent 
degrees of a gentlewomana whoreand a bawd; a midwife 
and a midwife-keeperas they are called; a pawnbrokera 
childtakera receiver of thievesand of thieves' purchase
that is to sayof stolen goods; and in a wordherself a thief
a breeder up of thieves and the likeand yet at last a penitent. 
The second is the life of her transported husbanda highwayman
who it seemslived a twelve years' life of successful villainy 
upon the roadand even at last came off so well as to be a 
volunteer transportnot a convict; and in whose life there is 
an incredible variety. 
Butas I have saidthese are things too long to bring in here
so neither can I make a promise of the coming out by 
themselves. 
We cannot sayindeedthat this history is carried on quite to
the end of the life of this famous Moll Flandersas she calls
herselffor nobody can write their own life to the full end of it
unless they can write it after they are dead. But her husband's
lifebeing written by a third handgives a full account of them
bothhow long they lived together in that countryand how
they both came to England againafter about eight yearsin
which time they were grown very richand where she lived
it seemsto be very oldbut was not so extraordinary a penitent
as she was at first; it seems only that indeed she always spoke
with abhorrence of her former lifeand of every part of it.
In her last sceneat Maryland and Virginiamany pleasant
things happenedwhich makes that part of her life very
agreeablebut they are not told with the same elegancy as those
accounted for by herself; so it is still to the more advantage that
we break off here.
My true name is so well known in the records or registers
at Newgateand in the Old Baileyand there are some things
of such consequence still depending thererelating to my
particular conductthat it is not be expected I should set my
name or the account of my family to this work; perhapsafter
my deathit may be better known; at present it would not be
properno not though a general pardon should be issuedeven
without exceptions and reserve of persons or crimes.
It is enough to tell youthat as some of my worst comrades
who are out of the way of doing me harm (having gone out of
the world by the steps and the stringas I often expected to go )
knew me by the name of Moll Flandersso you may give me
leave to speak of myself under that name till I dare own who
I have beenas well as who I am.
I have been told that in one of neighbour nationswhether it
be in France or where else I know notthey have an order from
the kingthat when any criminal is condemnedeither to die
or to the galleysor to be transportedif they leave any children
as such are generally unprovided forby the poverty or forfeiture
of their parentsso they are immediately taken into the care of
the Governmentand put into a hospital called the House of
Orphanswhere they are bred upclothedfedtaughtand
when fit to go outare placed out to trades or to servicesso
as to be well able to provide for themselves by an honest
industrious behaviour.
Had this been the custom in our countryI had not been left
a poor desolate girl without friendswithout clotheswithout
help or helper in the worldas was my fate; and by which I
was not only exposed to very great distresseseven before I
was capable either of understanding my case or how to amend
itbut brought into a course of life which was not only scandalous
in itselfbut which in its ordinary course tended to the swift
destruction both of soul and body.
But the case was otherwise here. My mother was convicted
of felony for a certain petty theft scarce worth namingviz.
having an opportunity of borrowing three pieces of fine holland
of a certain draper in Cheapside. The circumstances are too
long to repeatand I have heard them related so many ways
that I can scarce be certain which is the right account.
However it wasthis they all agree inthat my mother pleaded 
her bellyand being found quick with childshe was respited 
for about seven months; in which time having brought me into 
the worldand being about againshe was called downas they 
term itto her former judgmentbut obtained the favour of 
being transported to the plantationsand left me about half a 
year old; and in bad handsyou may be sure. 
This is too near the first hours of my life for me to relate 
anything of myself but by hearsay; it is enough to mention
that as I was born in such an unhappy placeI had no parish 
to have recourse to for my nourishment in my infancy; nor 
can I give the least account how I was kept aliveother than 
thatas I have been toldsome relation of my mother's took 
me away for a while as a nursebut at whose expenseor by 
whose directionI know nothing at all of it. 
The first account that I can recollector could ever learn of 
myselfwas that I had wandered among a crew of those people 
they call gypsiesor Egyptians; but I believe it was but a very 
little while that I had been among themfor I had not had my 
skin discoloured or blackenedas they do very young to all the 
children they carry about with them; nor can I tell how I came 
among themor how I got from them. 
It was at Colchesterin Essexthat those people left me; and 
I have a notion in my head that I left them there (that isthat 
I hid myself and would not go any farther with them)but I am 
not able to be particular in that account; only this I remember
that being taken up by some of the parish officers of Colchester
I gave an account that I came into the town with the gypsies
but that I would not go any farther with themand that so they 
had left mebut whither they were gone that I knew notnor 
could they expect it of me; for though they send round the 
country to inquire after themit seems they could not be found. 
I was now in a way to be provided for; for though I was not a 
parish charge upon this or that part of the town by lawyet as 
my case came to be knownand that I was too young to do any 
workbeing not above three years oldcompassion moved the 
magistrates of the town to order some care to be taken of me
and I became one of their own as much as if I had been born 
in the place. 
In the provision they made for meit was my good hap to be 
put to nurseas they call itto a woman who was indeed poor 
but had been in better circumstancesand who got a little 
livelihood by taking such as I was supposed to beand keeping 
them with all necessariestill they were at a certain agein 
which it might be supposed they might go to service or get 
their own bread. 
This woman had also had a little schoolwhich she kept to 
teach children to read and to work; and havingas I have said
lived before that in good fashionshe bred up the children she 
took with a great deal of artas well as with a great deal of care. 
But that which was worth all the restshe bred them up very 
religiouslybeing herself a very soberpious womanvery housewifely 
and cleanand very mannerlyand with good behaviour. 
So that in a wordexpecting a plain dietcoarse lodgingand 
mean clotheswe were brought up as mannerly and as genteelly 
as if we had been at the dancing-school. 
I was continued here till I was eight years oldwhen I was 
terrified with news that the magistrates (as I think they called 
them) had ordered that I should go to service. I was able to 
do but very little service wherever I was to goexcept it was 
to run of errands and be a drudge to some cookmaidand this 
they told me of oftenwhich put me into a great fright; for I 
had a thorough aversion to going to serviceas they called it 
(that isto be a servant)though I was so young; and I told my 
nurseas we called herthat I believed I could get my living 
without going to serviceif she pleased to let me; for she had 
taught me to work with my needleand spin worstedwhich 
is the chief trade of that cityand I told her that if she would 
keep meI would work for herand I would work very hard. 
I talked to her almost every day of working hard; andin short
I did nothing but work and cry all daywhich grieved the good
kind woman so muchthat at last she began to be concerned 
for mefor she loved me very well. 
One day after thisas she came into the room where all we 
poor children were at workshe sat down just over against me
not in her usual place as mistressbut as if she set herself on 
purpose to observe me and see me work. I was doing something 
she had set me to; as I rememberit was marking some shirts 
which she had taken to makeand after a while she began to 
talk to me. 'Thou foolish child' says she'thou art always 
crying (for I was crying then); 'pritheewhat dost cry for?' 
'Because they will take me away' says I'and put me to service
and I can't work housework.' 'Wellchild' says she'but 
though you can't work houseworkas you call ityou will learn 
it in timeand they won't put you to hard things at first.' 'Yes
they will' says I'and if I can't do it they will beat meand the 
maids will beat me to make me do great workand I am but a 
little girl and I can't do it'; and then I cried againtill I could 
not speak any more to her. 
This moved my good motherly nurseso that she from that 
time resolved I should not go to service yet; so she bid me not 
cryand she would speak to Mr. Mayorand I should not go to 
service till I was bigger. 
Wellthis did not satisfy mefor to think of going to service 
was such a frightful thing to methat if she had assured me I 
should not have gone till I was twenty years oldit would have 
been the same to me; I should have criedI believeall the 
timewith the very apprehension of its being to be so at last. 
When she saw that I was not pacified yetshe began to be 
angry with me. 'And what would you have?' says she; 'don't 
I tell you that you shall not go to service till your are bigger?' 
'Ay' said I'but then I must go at last.' 'Whywhat?' said she; 
'is the girl mad? What would you be -- a gentlewoman?' 
'Yes' says Iand cried heartily till I roard out again. 
This set the old gentlewoman a-laughing at meas you may be 
sure it would. 'Wellmadamforsooth' says shegibing at me
'you would be a gentlewoman; and pray how will you come to 
be a gentlewoman? What! will you do it by your fingers' end?' 
'Yes' says I againvery innocently. 
'Whywhat can you earn?' says she; 'what can you get at your 
work?' 
'Threepence' said I'when I spinand fourpence when I work 
plain work.' 
'Alas! poor gentlewoman' said she againlaughing'what will 
that do for thee?' 
'It will keep me' says I'if you will let me live with you.' And 
this I said in such a poor petitioning tonethat it made the poor 
woman's heart yearn to meas she told me afterwards. 
'But' says she'that will not keep you and buy you clothes 
too; and who must buy the little gentlewoman clothes?' says 
sheand smiled all the while at me. 
'I will work harderthen' says I'and you shall have it all.' 
'Poor child! it won't keep you' says she; 'it will hardly keep 
you in victuals.' 
'Then I will have no victuals' says Iagain very innocently; 
'let me but live with you.' 
'Whycan you live without victuals?' says she. 
'Yes' again says Ivery much like a childyou may be sure
and still I cried heartily. 
I had no policy in all this; you may easily see it was all nature; 
but it was joined with so much innocence and so much passion 
thatin shortit set the good motherly creature a-weeping too
and she cried at last as fast as I didand then took me and led 
me out of the teaching-room. 'Come' says she'you shan't 
go to service; you shall live with me'; and this pacified me 
for the present. 
Some time after thisshe going to wait on the Mayorand 
talking of such things as belonged to her businessat last my 
story came upand my good nurse told Mr. Mayor the whole 
tale. He was so pleased with itthat he would call his lady 
and his two daughters to hear itand it made mirth enough 
among themyou may be sure. 
Howevernot a week had passed overbut on a sudden comes 
Mrs. Mayoress and her two daughters to the house to see my 
old nurseand to see her school and the children. When they 
had looked about them a little'WellMrs.----' says the 
Mayoress to my nurse'and pray which is the little lass that 
intends to be a gentlewoman?' I heard herand I was terribly 
frighted at firstthough I did not know why neither; but Mrs. 
Mayoress comes up to me. 'Wellmiss' says she'and what 
are you at work upon?' The word miss was a language that 
had hardly been heard of in our schooland I wondered what 
sad name it was she called me. HoweverI stood upmade a 
curtsyand she took my work out of my handlooked on it
and said it was very well; then she took up one of the hands. 
'Nay' says she'the child may come to be a gentlewoman for 
aught anybody knows; she has a gentlewoman's hand' says she. 
This pleased me mightilyyou may be sure; but Mrs. Mayoress 
did not stop therebut giving me my work againshe put her 
hand in her pocketgave me a shillingand bid me mind my 
workand learn to work welland I might be a gentlewoman 
for aught she knew. 
Now all this while my good old nurseMrs. Mayoressand all 
the rest of them did not understand me at allfor they meant 
one sort of thing by the word gentlewomanand I meant quite 
another; for alas! all I understood by being a gentlewoman was 
to be able to work for myselfand get enough to keep me 
without that terrible bugbear going to servicewhereas they 
meant to live greatrich and highand I know not what. 
Wellafter Mrs. Mayoress was goneher two daughters came 
inand they called for the gentlewoman tooand they talked 
a long while to meand I answered them in my innocent way; 
but alwaysif they asked me whether I resolved to be a 
gentlewomanI answered Yes. At last one of them asked me 
what a gentlewoman was? That puzzled me much; but
howeverI explained myself negativelythat it was one that 
did not go to serviceto do housework. They were pleased 
to be familiar with meand like my little prattle to themwhich
it seemswas agreeable enough to themand they gave me 
money too. 
As for my moneyI gave it all to my mistress-nurseas I called 
herand told her she should have all I got for myself when I 
was a gentlewomanas well as now. By this and some other 
of my talkmy old tutoress began to understand me about what 
I meant by being a gentlewomanand that I understood by it 
no more than to be able to get my bread by my own work; and 
at last she asked me whether it was not so. 
I told heryesand insisted on itthat to do so was to be a 
gentlewoman; 'for' says I'there is such a one' naming a 
woman that mended lace and washed the ladies' laced-heads; 
'she' says I'is a gentlewomanand they call her madam.' 
Poor child,' says my good old nurse, 'you may soon be such 
a gentlewoman as that, for she is a person of ill fame, and has 
had two or three bastards.' 
I did not understand anything of that; but I answered, 'I am 
sure they call her madam, and she does not go to service nor 
do housework'; and therefore I insisted that she was a 
gentlewoman, and I would be such a gentlewoman as that. 
The ladies were told all this again, to be sure, and they made 
themselves merry with it, and every now and then the young 
ladies, Mr. Mayor's daughters, would come and see me, and 
ask where the little gentlewoman was, which made me not a 
little proud of myself. 
This held a great while, and I was often visited by these young 
ladies, and sometimes they brought others with them; so that I 
was known by it almost all over the town. 
I was now about ten years old, and began to look a little 
womanish, for I was mighty grave and humble, very mannerly, 
and as I had often heard the ladies say I was pretty, and would 
be a very handsome woman, so you may be sure that hearing 
them say so made me not a little proud. However, that pride 
had no ill effect upon me yet; only, as they often gave me 
money, and I gave it to my old nurse, she, honest woman, 
was so just to me as to lay it all out again for me, and gave 
me head-dresses, and linen, and gloves, and ribbons, and I 
went very neat, and always clean; for that I would do, and if 
I had rags on, I would always be clean, or else I would dabble 
them in water myself; but, I say, my good nurse, when I had 
money given me, very honestly laid it out for me, and would 
always tell the ladies this or that was bought with their money; 
and this made them oftentimes give me more, till at last I was 
indeed called upon by the magistrates, as I understood it, to 
go out to service; but then I was come to be so good a 
workwoman myself, and the ladies were so kind to me, that it 
was plain I could maintain myself--that is to say, I could earn 
as much for my nurse as she was able by it to keep me--so she 
told them that if they would give her leave, she would keep 
the gentlewoman, as she called me, to be her assistant and 
teach the children, which I was very well able to do; for I was 
very nimble at my work, and had a good hand with my needle, 
though I was yet very young. 
But the kindness of the ladies of the town did not end here, 
for when they came to understand that I was no more maintained 
by the public allowance as before, they gave me money oftener 
than formerly; and as I grew up they brought me work to do 
for them, such as linen to make, and laces to mend, and heads 
to dress up, and not only paid me for doing them, but even 
taught me how to do them; so that now I was a gentlewoman 
indeed, as I understood that word, I not only found myself 
clothes and paid my nurse for my keeping, but got money in 
my pocket too beforehand. 
The ladies also gave me clothes frequently of their own or 
their children's; some stockings, some petticoats, some gowns, 
some one thing, some another, and these my old woman 
managed for me like a mere mother, and kept them for me, 
obliged me to mend them, and turn them and twist them to 
the best advantage, for she was a rare housewife. 
At last one of the ladies took so much fancy to me that she 
would have me home to her house, for a month, she said, to 
be among her daughters. 
Now, though this was exceeding kind in her, yet, as my old 
good woman said to her, unless she resolved to keep me for 
good and all, she would do the little gentlewoman more harm 
than good. 'Well,' says the lady, 'that's true; and therefore I'll 
only take her home for a week, then, that I may see how my 
daughters and she agree together, and how I like her temper, 
and then I'll tell you more; and in the meantime, if anybody 
comes to see her as they used to do, you may only tell them 
you have sent her out to my house.' 
This was prudently managed enough, and I went to the lady's 
house; but I was so pleased there with the young ladies, and 
they so pleased with me, that I had enough to do to come away, 
and they were as unwilling to part with me. 
However, I did come away, and lived almost a year more with 
my honest old woman, and began now to be very helpful to 
her; for I was almost fourteen years old, was tall of my age, 
and looked a little womanish; but I had such a taste of genteel 
living at the lady's house that I was not so easy in my old 
quarters as I used to be, and I thought it was fine to be a 
gentlewoman indeed, for I had quite other notions of a 
gentlewoman now than I had before; and as I thought, I say, 
that it was fine to be a gentlewoman, so I loved to be among 
gentlewomen, and therefore I longed to be there again. 
About the time that I was fourteen years and a quarter old, 
my good nurse, mother I rather to call her, fell sick and died. 
I was then in a sad condition indeed, for as there is no great 
bustle in putting an end to a poor body's family when once 
they are carried to the grave, so the poor good woman being 
buried, the parish children she kept were immediately removed 
by the church-wardens; the school was at an end, and the 
children of it had no more to do but just stay at home till they 
were sent somewhere else; and as for what she left, her daughter, 
a married woman with six or seven children, came and swept 
it all away at once, and removing the goods, they had no more 
to say to me than to jest with me, and tell me that the little 
gentlewoman might set up for herself if she pleased. 
I was frighted out of my wits almost, and knew not what to do, 
for I was, as it were, turned out of doors to the wide world, and 
that which was still worse, the old honest woman had two-andtwenty 
shillings of mine in her hand, which was all the estate the 
little gentlewoman had in the world; and when I asked the 
daughter for it, she huffed me and laughed at me, and told me 
she had nothing to do with it. 
It was true the good, poor woman had told her daughter of it, 
and that it lay in such a place, that it was the child's money, 
and had called once or twice for me to give it me, but I was, 
unhappily, out of the way somewhere or other, and when I 
came back she was past being in a condition to speak of it. 
However, the daughter was so honest afterwards as to give it 
me, though at first she used me cruelly about it. 
Now was I a poor gentlewoman indeed, and I was just that 
very night to be turned into the wide world; for the daughter 
removed all the goods, and I had not so much as a lodging to 
go to, or a bit of bread to eat. But it seems some of the neighbours, 
who had known my circumstances, took so much compassion 
of me as to acquaint the lady in whose family I had been a week, 
as I mentioned above; and immediately she sent her maid to 
fetch me away, and two of her daughters came with the maid 
though unsent. So I went with them, bag and baggage, and 
with a glad heart, you may be sure. The fright of my condition 
had made such an impression upon me, that I did not want now 
to be a gentlewoman, but was very willing to be a servant, and 
that any kind of servant they thought fit to have me be. 
But my new generous mistress, for she exceeded the good 
woman I was with before, in everything, as well as in the 
matter of estate; I say, in everything except honesty; and for 
that, though this was a lady most exactly just, yet I must not 
forget to say on all occasions, that the first, though poor, was 
as uprightly honest as it was possible for any one to be. 
I was no sooner carried away, as I have said, by this good 
gentlewoman, but the first lady, that is to say, the Mayoress 
that was, sent her two daughters to take care of me; and another 
family which had taken notice of me when I was the little 
gentlewoman, and had given me work to do, sent for me after 
her, so that I was mightily made of, as we say; nay, and they 
were not a little angry, especially madam the Mayoress, that 
her friend had taken me away from her, as she called it; for, 
as she said, I was hers by right, she having been the first that 
took any notice of me. But they that had me would not part 
with me; and as for me, though I should have been very well 
treated with any of the others, yet I could not be better than 
where I was. 
Here I continued till I was between seventeen and eighteen 
years old, and here I had all the advantages for my education 
that could be imagined; the lady had masters home to the 
house to teach her daughters to dance, and to speak French, 
and to write, and other to teach them music; and I was always 
with them, I learned as fast as they; and though the masters 
were not appointed to teach me, yet I learned by imitation and 
inquiry all that they learned by instruction and direction; so 
that, in short, I learned to dance and speak French as well as 
any of them, and to sing much better, for I had a better voice 
than any of them. I could not so readily come at playing on 
the harpsichord or spinet, because I had no instrument of my 
own to practice on, and could only come at theirs in the intervals 
when they left it, which was uncertain; but yet I learned tolerably 
well too, and the young ladies at length got two instruments, 
that is to say, a harpsichord and a spinet too, and then they 
taught me themselves. But as to dancing, they could hardly 
help my learning country-dances, because they always wanted 
me to make up even number; and, on the other hand, they were 
as heartily willing to learn me everything that they had been 
taught themselves, as I could be to take the learning. 
By this means I had, as I have said above, all the advantages 
of education that I could have had if I had been as much a 
gentlewoman as they were with whom I lived; and in some 
things I had the advantage of my ladies, though they were my 
superiors; but they were all the gifts of nature, and which all 
their fortunes could not furnish. First, I was apparently 
handsomer than any of them; secondly, I was better shaped; 
and, thirdly, I sang better, by which I mean I had a better voice; 
in all which you will, I hope, allow me to say, I do not speak 
my own conceit of myself, but the opinion of all that knew 
the family. 
I had with all these the common vanity of my sex, viz. that 
being really taken for very handsome, or, if you please, for a 
great beauty, I very well knew it, and had as good an opinion 
of myself as anybody else could have of me; and particularly 
I loved to hear anybody speak of it, which could not but happen 
to me sometimes, and was a great satisfaction to me. 
Thus far I have had a smooth story to tell of myself, and in all 
this part of my life I not only had the reputation of living in a 
very good family, and a family noted and respected everywhere 
for virtue and sobriety, and for every valuable thing; but I had 
the character too of a very sober, modest, and virtuous young 
woman, and such I had always been; neither had I yet any 
occasion to think of anything else, or to know what a temptation 
to wickedness meant. 
But that which I was too vain of was my ruin, or rather my 
vanity was the cause of it. The lady in the house where I was 
had two sons, young gentlemen of very promising parts and 
of extraordinary behaviour, and it was my misfortune to be 
very well with them both, but they managed themselves with 
me in a quite different manner. 
The eldest, a gay gentleman that knew the town as well as the 
country, and though he had levity enough to do an ill-natured 
thing, yet had too much judgment of things to pay too dear 
for his pleasures; he began with the unhappy snare to all 
women, viz. taking notice upon all occasions how pretty I was, 
as he called it, how agreeable, how well-carriaged, and the 
like; and this he contrived so subtly, as if he had known as 
well how to catch a woman in his net as a partridge when he 
went a-setting; for he would contrive to be talking this to his 
sisters when, though I was not by, yet when he knew I was 
not far off but that I should be sure to hear him. His sisters 
would return softly to him, 'Hush, brother, she will hear you; 
she is but in the next room.' Then he would put it off and talk 
softlier, as if he had not know it, and begin to acknowledge he 
was wrong; and then, as if he had forgot himself, he would 
speak aloud again, and I, that was so well pleased to hear it, 
was sure to listen for it upon all occasions. 
After he had thus baited his hook, and found easily enough 
the method how to lay it in my way, he played an opener game; 
and one day, going by his sister's chamber when I was there, 
doing something about dressing her, he comes in with an air 
of gaiety. 'Oh, Mrs. Betty,' said he to me, 'how do you do, 
Mrs. Betty? Don't your cheeks burn, Mrs. Betty?' I made a 
curtsy and blushed, but said nothing. 'What makes you talk so, 
brother?' says the lady. 'Why,' says he, 'we have been talking 
of her below-stairs this half-hour.' 'Well,' says his sister, 
'you can say no harm of her, that I am sure, so 'tis no matter 
what you have been talking about.' 'Nay,' says he, ''tis so far 
from talking harm of her, that we have been talking a great 
deal of good, and a great many fine things have been said of 
Mrs. Betty, I assure you; and particularly, that she is the 
handsomest young woman in Colchester; and, in short, they 
begin to toast her health in the town.' 
'I wonder at you, brother,' says the sister. Betty wants but one 
thing, but she had as good want everything, for the market is 
against our sex just now; and if a young woman have beauty, 
birth, breeding, wit, sense, manners, modesty, and all these to 
an extreme, yet if she have not money, she's nobody, she had 
as good want them all for nothing but money now recommends 
a woman; the men play the game all into their own hands.' 
Her younger brother, who was by, cried, 'Hold, sister, you run 
too fast; I am an exception to your rule. I assure you, if I find 
a woman so accomplished as you talk of, I say, I assure you, I 
would not trouble myself about the money.' 
'Oh,' says the sister, 'but you will take care not to fancy one, 
then, without the money.' 
'You don't know that neither,' says the brother. 
'But why, sister,' says the elder brother, 'why do you exclaim 
so at the men for aiming so much at the fortune? You are none 
of them that want a fortune, whatever else you want.' 
'I understand you, brother,' replies the lady very smartly; 'you 
suppose I have the money, and want the beauty; but as times 
go now, the first will do without the last, so I have the better 
of my neighbours.' 
'Well,' says the younger brother, 'but your neighbours, as you 
call them, may be even with you, for beauty will steal a husband 
sometimes in spite of money, and when the maid chances to be 
handsomer than the mistress, she oftentimes makes as good a 
market, and rides in a coach before her.' 
I thought it was time for me to withdraw and leave them, and 
I did so, but not so far but that I heard all their discourse, in 
which I heard abundance of the fine things said of myself, 
which served to prompt my vanity, but, as I soon found, was 
not the way to increase my interest in the family, for the sister 
and the younger brother fell grievously out about it; and as he 
said some very disobliging things to her upon my account, so 
I could easily see that she resented them by her future conduct 
to me, which indeed was very unjust to me, for I had never 
had the least thought of what she suspected as to her younger 
brother; indeed, the elder brother, in his distant, remote way, 
had said a great many things as in jest, which I had the folly 
to believe were in earnest, or to flatter myself with the hopes 
of what I ought to have supposed he never intended, and 
perhaps never thought of. 
It happened one day that he came running upstairs, towards 
the room where his sisters used to sit and work, as he often 
used to do; and calling to them before he came in, as was his 
way too, I, being there alone, stepped to the door, and said, 
'Sir, the ladies are not here, they are walked down the garden.' 
As I stepped forward to say this, towards the door, he was just 
got to the door, and clasping me in his arms, as if it had been 
by chance, 'Oh, Mrs. Betty,' says he, 'are you here? That's 
better still; I want to speak with you more than I do with them'; 
and then, having me in his arms, he kissed me three or four times. 
I struggled to get away, and yet did it but faintly neither, and 
he held me fast, and still kissed me, till he was almost out of 
breath, and then, sitting down, says, 'Dear Betty, I am in love 
with you.' 
His words, I must confess, fired my blood; all my spirits flew 
about my heart and put me into disorder enough, which he 
might easily have seen in my face. He repeated it afterwards 
several times, that he was in love with me, and my heart spoke 
as plain as a voice, that I liked it; nay, whenever he said, 'I am 
in love with you,' my blushes plainly replied, 'Would you 
were, sir.' 
However, nothing else passed at that time; it was but a surprise, 
and when he was gone I soon recovered myself again. 
He had stayed longer with me, but he happened to look out 
at the window and see his sisters coming up the garden, so 
he took his leave, kissed me again, told me he was very serious, 
and I should hear more of him very quickly, and away he went, 
leaving me infinitely pleased, though surprised; and had there 
not been one misfortune in it, I had been in the right, but the 
mistake lay here, that Mrs. Betty was in earnest and the 
gentleman was not. 
From this time my head ran upon strange things, and I may 
truly say I was not myself; to have such a gentleman talk to 
me of being in love with me, and of my being such a charming 
creature, as he told me I was; these were things I knew not 
how to bear, my vanity was elevated to the last degree. It is 
true I had my head full of pride, but, knowing nothing of the 
wickedness of the times, I had not one thought of my own 
safety or of my virtue about me; and had my young master 
offered it at first sight, he might have taken any liberty he 
thought fit with me; but he did not see his advantage, which 
was my happiness for that time. 
After this attack it was not long but he found an opportunity 
to catch me again, and almost in the same posture; indeed, it 
had more of design in it on his part, though not on my part. It 
was thus: the young ladies were all gone a-visiting with their 
mother; his brother was out of town; and as for his father, he 
had been in London for a week before. He had so well watched 
me that he knew where I was, though I did not so much as know 
that he was in the house; and he briskly comes up the stairs and, 
seeing me at work, comes into the room to me directly, and 
began just as he did before, with taking me in his arms, and 
kissing me for almost a quarter of an hour together. 
It was his younger sister's chamber that I was in, and as there 
was nobody in the house but the maids below-stairs, he was, 
it may be, the ruder; in short, he began to be in earnest with me 
indeed. Perhaps he found me a little too easy, for God knows 
I made no resistance to him while he only held me in his arms 
and kissed me; indeed, I was too well pleased with it to resist 
him much. 
However, as it were, tired with that kind of work, we sat down, 
and there he talked with me a great while; he said he was 
charmed with me, and that he could not rest night or day till 
he had told me how he was in love with me, and, if I was able 
to love him again, and would make him happy, I should be the 
saving of his life, and many such fine things. I said little to 
him again, but easily discovered that I was a fool, and that I 
did not in the least perceive what he meant. 
Then he walked about the room, and taking me by the hand, 
I walked with him; and by and by, taking his advantage, he 
threw me down upon the bed, and kissed me there most 
violently; but, to give him his due, offered no manner of 
rudeness to me, only kissed a great while. After this he 
thought he had heard somebody come upstairs, so got off from 
the bed, lifted me up, professing a great deal of love for me, 
but told me it was all an honest affection, and that he meant 
no ill to me; and with that he put five guineas into my hand, 
and went away downstairs. 
I was more confounded with the money than I was before with 
the love, and began to be so elevated that I scarce knew the 
ground I stood on. I am the more particular in this part, that 
if my story comes to be read by any innocent young body, they 
may learn from it to guard themselves against the mischiefs 
which attend an early knowledge of their own beauty. If a 
young woman once thinks herself handsome, she never doubts 
the truth of any man that tells her he is in love with her; for if 
she believes herself charming enough to captivate him, 'tis 
natural to expect the effects of it. 
This young gentleman had fired his inclination as much as he 
had my vanity, and, as if he had found that he had an opportunity 
and was sorry he did not take hold of it, he comes up again in 
half an hour or thereabouts, and falls to work with me again as 
before, only with a little less introduction. 
And first, when he entered the room, he turned about and shut 
the door. 'Mrs. Betty,' said he, 'I fancied before somebody 
was coming upstairs, but it was not so; however,' adds he, 
'if they find me in the room with you, they shan't catch me 
a-kissing of you.' I told him I did not know who should be 
coming upstairs, for I believed there was nobody in the house 
but the cook and the other maid, and they never came up those 
stairs. 'Well, my dear,' says he, ''tis good to be sure, however'; 
and so he sits down, and we began to talk. And now, though 
I was still all on fire with his first visit, and said little, he did 
as it were put words in my mouth, telling me how passionately 
he loved me, and that though he could not mention such a thing 
till he came to this estate, yet he was resolved to make me happy 
then, and himself too; that is to say, to marry me, and abundance 
of such fine things, which I, poor fool, did not understand the 
drift of, but acted as if there was no such thing as any kind of 
love but that which tended tomatrimony; and if he had spoke 
of that, I had no room, as well as no power, to have said no; 
but we were not come that length yet. 
We had not sat long, but he got up, and, stopping my very 
breath with kisses, threw me upon the bed again; but then 
being both well warmed, he went farther with me than decency 
permits me to mention, nor had it been in my power to have 
denied him at that moment, had he offered much more than 
he did. 
However, though he took these freedoms with me, it did not 
go to that which they call the last favour, which, to do him 
justice, he did not attempt; and he made that self-denial of his 
a plea for all his freedoms with me upon other occasions after 
this. When this was over, he stayed but a little while, but he 
put almost a handful of gold in my hand, and left me, making 
a thousand protestations of his passion for me, and of his 
loving me above all the women in the world. 
It will not be strange if I now began to think, but alas! it was 
but with very little solid reflection. I had a most unbounded 
stock of vanity and pride, and but a very little stock of virtue. 
I did indeed case sometimes with myself what young master 
aimed at, but thought of nothing but the fine words and the 
gold; whether he intended to marry me, or not to marry me, 
seemed a matter of no great consequence to me; nor did my 
thoughts so much as suggest to me the necessity of making 
any capitulation for myself, till he came to make a kind of 
formal proposal to me, as you shall hear presently. 
Thus I gave up myself to a readiness of being ruined without 
the least concern and am a fair memento to all young women 
whose vanity prevails over their virtue. Nothing was ever so 
stupid on both sides. Had I acted as became me, and resisted 
as virtue and honour require, this gentleman had either desisted 
his attacks, finding no room to expect the accomplishment of 
his design, or had made fair and honourable proposals of 
marriage; in which case, whoever had blamed him, nobody 
could have blamed me. In short, if he had known me, and 
how easy the trifle he aimed at was to be had, he would have 
troubled his head no farther, but have given me four or five 
guineas, and have lain with me the next time he had come at me. 
And if I had known his thoughts, and how hard he thought I 
would be to be gained, I might have made my own terms with 
him; and if I had not capitulated for an immediate marriage, 
I might for a maintenance till marriage, and might have had 
what I would; for he was already rich to excess, besides what 
he had in expectation; but I seemed wholly to have abandoned 
all such thoughts as these, and was taken up only with the pride 
of my beauty, and of being beloved by such a gentleman. As 
for the gold, I spent whole hours in looking upon it; I told the 
guineas over and over a thousand times a day. Never poor 
vain creature was so wrapt up with every part of the story as 
I was, not considering what was before me, and how near my 
ruin was at the door; indeed, I think I rather wished for that 
ruin than studied to avoid it. 
In the meantime, however, I was cunning enough not to give 
the least room to any in the family to suspect me, or to imagine 
that I had the least correspondence with this young gentleman. 
I scarce ever looked towards him in public, or answered if he 
spoke to me when anybody was near us; but for all that, we 
had every now and then a little encounter, where we had room 
for a word or two, an now and then a kiss, but no fair opportunity 
for the mischief intended; and especially considering that he 
made more circumlocution than, if he had known by thoughts, 
he had occasion for; and the work appearing difficult to him, 
he really made it so. 
But as the devil is an unwearied tempter, so he never fails to 
find opportunity for that wickedness he invites to. It was one
 evenine that I was in the garden, with his two younger sisters 
and himself, and all very innocently merry, when he found 
means to convey a note into my hand, by which he directed 
me to understand that he would to-morrow desire me publicly 
to go of an errand for him into the town, and that I should see 
him somewhere by the way. 
Accordingly, after dinner, he very gravely says to me, his 
sisters being all by, 'Mrs. Betty, I must ask a favour of you.' 
'What's that?' says his second sister. 'Nay, sister,' says he 
very gravely, 'if you can't spare Mrs. Betty to-day, any other 
time will do.' Yes, they said, they could spare her well enough, 
and the sister begged pardon for asking, which they did but of 
mere course, without any meaning. 'Well, but, brother,' says 
the eldest sister, 'you must tell Mrs. Betty what it is; if it be 
any private business that we must not hear, you may call her 
out. There she is.' 'Why, sister,' says the gentleman very 
gravely, 'what do you mean? I only desire her to do into the 
High Street' (and then he pulls out a turnover), 'to such a shop'; 
and then he tells them a long story of two fine neckcloths he 
had bid money for, and he wanted to have me go and make an 
errand to buy a neck to the turnover that he showed, to see if 
they would take my money for the neckcloths; to bid a shilling 
more, and haggle with them; and then he made more errands, 
and so continued to have such petty business to do, that I should 
be sure to stay a good while. 
When he had given me my errands, he told them a long story 
of a visit he was going to make to a family they all knew, and 
where was to be such-and-such gentlemen, and how merry 
they were to be, and very formally asks his sisters to go with 
him, and they as formally excused themselves, because of 
company that they had notice was to come and visit them that 
afternoon; which, by the way, he had contrived on purpose. 
He had scarce done speaking to them, and giving me my 
errand, but his man came up to tell him that Sir W---- H----'s 
coach stopped at the door; so he runs down, and comes up 
again immediately. 'Alas!' says he aloud, 'there's all my 
mirth spoiled at once; sir W---- has sent his coach for me, 
and desires to speak with me upon some earnest business.' 
It seems this Sir W--- was a gentleman who lived about three 
miles out of town, to whom he had spoken on purpose the day 
before, to lend him his chariot for a particular occasion, and 
had appointed it to call for him, as it did, about three o'clock. 
Immediately he calls for his best wig, hat, and sword, and 
ordering his man to go to the other place to make his excuse-that 
was to say, he made an excuse to send his man away--he 
prepares to go into the coach. As he was going, he stopped a 
while, and speaks mighty earnestly to me about his business, 
and finds an opportunity to say very softly to me, 'Come away, 
my dear, as soon as ever you can.' I said nothing, but made a 
curtsy, as if I had done so to what he said in public. In about 
a quarter of an hour I went out too; I had no dress other than 
before, except that I had a hood, a mask, a fan, and a pair of 
gloves in my pocket; so that there was not the least suspicion 
in the house. He waited for me in the coach in a back-lane, 
which he knew I must pass by, and had directed the coachman 
whither to go, which was to a certain place, called Mile End, 
where lived a confidant of his, where we went in, and where 
was all the convenience in the world to be as wicked as we 
pleased. 
When we were together he began to talk very gravely to me, 
and to tell me he did not bring me there to betray me; that his 
passion for me would not suffer him to abuse me; that he 
resolved to marry me as soon as he came to his estate; that in 
the meantime, if I would grant his request, he would maintain 
me very honourably; and made me a thousand protestations 
of his sincerity and of his affection to me; and that he would 
never abandon me, and as I may say, made a thousand more 
preambles than he need to have done. 
However, as he pressed me to speak, I told him I had no 
reason to question the sincerity of his love to me after so many 
protestations, but--and there I stopped, as if I left him to 
guess the rest. 'But what, my dear?' says he. 'I guess what 
you mean: what if you should be with child? Is not that it? 
Why, then,' says he, 'I'll take care of you and provide for you, 
and the child too; and that you may see I am not in jest,' says 
he, 'here's an earnest for you,' and with that he pulls out a silk 
purse, with an hundred guineas in it, and gave it me. 'And I'll 
give you such another,' says he, 'every year till I marry you.' 
My colour came and went, at the sight of the purse and with 
the fire of his proposal together, so that I could not say a word, 
and he easily perceived it; so putting the purse into my bosom, 
I made no more resistance to him, but let him do just what he 
pleased, and as often as he pleased; and thus I finished my 
own destruction at once, for from this day, being forsaken of 
my virtue and my modesty, I had nothing of value left to 
recommend me, either to God's blessing or man's assistance. 
But things did not end here. I went back to the town, did the 
business he publicly directed me to, and was at home before 
anybody thought me long. As for my gentleman, he stayed 
out, as he told me he would, till late at night, and there was 
not the least suspicion in the family either on his account or 
on mine. 
We had, after this, frequent opportunities to repeat our crime 
--chiefly by his contrivance--especially at home, when his 
mother and the young ladies went abroad a-visiting, which he 
watched so narrowly as never to miss; knowing always 
beforehand when they went out, and then failed not to catch 
me all alone, and securely enough; so that we took our fill of 
our wicked pleasure for near half a year; and yet, which was 
the most to my satisfaction, I was not with child. 
But before this half-year was expired, his younger brother, of 
whom I have made some mention in the beginning of the story, 
falls to work with me; and he, finding me along in the garden 
one evening, begins a story of the same kind to me, made 
good honest professions of being in love with me, and in short, 
proposes fairly and honourably to marry me, and that before 
he made any other offer to me at all. 
I was now confounded, and driven to such an extremity as 
the like was never known; at least not to me. I resisted the 
proposal with obstinacy; and now I began to arm myself with 
arguments. I laid before him the inequality of the match; the 
treatment I should meet with in the family; the ingratitude it 
would be to his good father and mother, who had taken me 
into their house upon such generous principles, and when I 
was in such a low condition; and, in short, I said everything 
to dissuade him from his design that I could imagine, except 
telling him the truth, which would indeed have put an end to 
It all, but that I durst not think of mentioning. 
But here happened a circumstance that I did not expect 
indeed, which put me to my shifts; for this young gentleman, 
as he was plain and honest, so he pretended to nothing with 
me but what was so too; and, knowing his own innocence, he 
was not so careful to make his having a kindness for Mrs. Betty 
a secret I the house, as his brother was. And though he did 
not let them know that he had talked to me about it, yet he 
said enough to let his sisters perceive he loved me, and his 
mother saw it too, which, though they took no notice of it to 
me, yet they did to him, an immediately I found their carriage 
to me altered, more than ever before. 
I saw the cloud, though I did not foresee the storm. It was 
easy, I say, to see that their carriage to me was altered, and 
that it grew worse and worse every day; till at last I got 
information among the servants that I should, in a very little 
while, be desired to remove. 
I was not alarmed at the news, having a full satisfaction that 
I should be otherwise provided for; and especially considering 
that I had reason every day to expect I should be with child, 
and that then I should be obliged to remove without any 
pretences for it. 
After some time the younger gentleman took an opportunity 
to tell me that the kindness he had for me had got vent in the 
family. He did not charge me with it, he said, for he know 
well enough which way it came out. He told me his plain way 
of talking had been the occasion of it, for that he did not make 
his respect for me so much a secret as he might have done, 
and the reason was, that he was at a point, that if I would 
consent to have him, he would tell them all openly that he 
loved me, and that he intended to marry me; that it was true 
his father and mother might resent it, and be unkind, but that 
he was now in a way to live, being bred to the law, and he did 
not fear maintaining me agreeable to what I should expect; 
and that, in short, as he believed I would not be ashamed of 
him, so he was resolved not to be ashamed of me, and that he 
scorned to be afraid to own me now, whom he resolved to 
own after I was his wife, and therefore I had nothing to do but 
to give him my hand, and he would answer for all the rest. 
I was now in a dreadful condition indeed, and now I repented 
heartily my easiness with the eldest brother; not from any 
reflection of conscience, but from a view of the happiness I 
might have enjoyed, and had now made impossible; for though 
I had no great scruples of conscience, as I have said, to struggle 
with, yet I could not think of being a whore to one brother and 
a wife to the other. But then it came into my thoughts that the 
first brother had promised to made me his wife when he came 
to his estate; but I presently remembered what I had often 
thought of, that he had never spoken a word of having me for 
a wife after he had conquered me for a mistress; and indeed, 
till now, though I said I thought of it often, yet it gave me no 
disturbance at all, for as he did not seem in the least to lessen 
his affection to me, so neither did he lessen his bounty, though 
he had the discretion himself to desire me not to lay out a 
penny of what he gave me in clothes, or to make the least show 
extraordinary, because it would necessarily give jealousy in 
the family, since everybody know I could come at such things 
no manner of ordinary way, but by some private friendship, 
which they would presently have suspected. 
But I was now in a great strait, and knew not what to 
do. The main difficulty was this: the younger brother not 
only laid close siege to me, but suffered it to be seen. He 
would come into his sister's room, and his mother's room, 
and sit down, and talk a thousand kind things of me, and to 
me, even before their faces, and when they were all there. 
This grew so public that the whole house talked of it, and his 
mother reproved him for it, and their carriage to me appeared 
quite altered. In short, his mother had let fall some speeches, 
as if she intended to put me out of the family; that is, in 
English, to turn me out of doors. Now I was sure this could 
not be a secret to his brother, only that he might not think, as 
indeed nobody else yet did, that the youngest brother had made 
any proposal to me about it; but as I easily could see that it 
would go farther, so I saw likewise there was an absolute 
necessity to speak of it to him, or that he would speak of it to 
me, and which to do first I knew not; that is, whether I should 
break it to him or let it alone till he should break it to me. 
Upon serious consideration, for indeed now I began to consider 
things very seriously, and never till now; I say, upon serious 
consideration, I resolved to tell him of it first; and it was not 
long before I had an opportunity, for the very next day his 
brother went to London upon some business, and the family 
being out a-visiting, just as it had happened before, and as 
indeed was often the case, he came according to his custom, 
to spend an hour or two with Mrs. Betty. 
When he came had had sat down a while, he easily perceived 
there was an alteration in my countenance, that I was not so 
free and pleasant with him as I used to be, and particularly, 
that I had been a-crying; he was not long before he took notice 
of it, and asked me in very kind terms what was the matter, 
and if anything troubled me. I would have put it off if I could, 
but it was not to be concealed; so after suffering many 
importunities to draw that out of me which I longed as much 
as possible to disclose, I told him that it was true something 
did trouble me, and something of such a nature that I could 
not conceal from him, and yet that I could not tell how to tell 
him of it neither; that it was a thing that not only surprised me, 
but greatly perplexed me, and that I knew not what course to 
take, unless he would direct me. He told me with great 
tenderness, that let it be what it would, I should not let it 
trouble me, for he would protect me from all the world. 
I then began at a distance, and told him I was afraid the ladies 
had got some secret information of our correspondence; for 
that it was easy to see that their conduct was very much 
changed towards me for a great while, and that now it was 
come to that pass that they frequently found fault with me, 
and sometimes fell quite out with me, though I never gave 
them the least occasion; that whereas I used always to lie 
with the eldest sister, I was lately put to lie by myself, or with 
one of the maids; and that I had overheard them several times 
talking very unkindly about me; but that which confirmed it 
all was, that one of the servants had told me that she had heard 
was to be turned out, and that it was not safe for the family 
that I should be any longer in the house. 
He smiled when he herd all this, and I asked him how he 
could make so light of it, when he must needs know that if 
there was any discovery I was undone for ever, and that even 
it would hurt him, though not ruin him as it would me. I 
upbraided him, that he was like all the rest of the sex, that, 
when they had the character and honour of a woman at their 
mercy, oftentimes made it their jest, and at least looked upon 
it as a trifle, and counted the ruin of those they had had their 
will of as a thing of no value. 
He saw me warm and serious, and he changed his style 
immediately; he told me he was sorry I should have such a 
thought of him; that he had never given me the least occasion 
for it, but had been as tender of my reputation as he could be 
of his own; that he was sure our correspondence had been 
managed with so much address, that not one creature in the 
family had so much as a suspicion of it; that if he smiled when 
I told him my thoughts, it was at the assurance he lately 
received, that our understanding one another was not so much 
as known or guessed at; and that when he had told me how 
much reason he had to be easy, I should smile as he did, for 
he was very certain it would give me a full satisfaction. 
'This is a mystery I cannot understand,' says I, 'or how it 
should be to my satisfaction that I am to be turned out of 
doors; for if our correspondence is not discovered, I know 
not what else I have done to change the countenances of the 
whole family to me, or to have them treat me as they do now, 
who formerly used me with so much tenderness, as if I had 
been one of their own children.' 
'Why, look you, child,' says he, 'that they are uneasy about 
you, that is true; but that they have the least suspicion of the 
case as it is, and as it respects you and I, is so far from being 
true, that they suspect my brother Robin; and, in short, they 
are fully persuaded he makes love to you; nay, the fool has 
put it into their heads too himself, for he is continually bantering 
them about it, and making a jest of himself. I confess I think 
he is wrong to do so, because he cannot but see it vexes them, 
and makes them unkind to you; but 'tis a satisfaction to me, 
because of the assurance it gives me, that they do not suspect 
me in the least, and I hope this will be to your satisfaction too.' 
'So it is,' says I, 'one way; but this does not reach my case at 
all, nor is this the chief thing that troubles me, though I have 
been concerned about that too.' 'What is it, then?' says he. 
With which I fell to tears, and could say nothing to him at all. 
He strove to pacify me all he could, but began at last to be 
very pressing upon me to tell what it was. At last I answered 
that I thought I ought to tell him too, and that he had some 
right to know it; besides, that I wanted his direction in the case, 
for I was in such perplexity that I knew not what course to take, 
and then I related the whole affair to him. I told him how 
imprudently his brother had managed himself, in making 
himself so public; for that if he had kept it a secret, as such a 
thing out to have been, I could but have denied him positively, 
without giving any reason for it, and he would in time have 
ceased his solicitations; but that he had the vanity, first, to 
depend upon it that I would not deny him, and then had taken 
the freedom to tell his resolution of having me to the whole house. 
I told him how far I had resisted him, and told him how sincere 
and honourable his offers were. 'But,' says I, 'my case will 
be doubly hard; for as they carry it ill to me now, because he 
desires to have me, they'll carry it worse when they shall find 
I have denied him; and they will presently say, there's something 
else in it, and then out it comes that I am married already to 
somebody else, or that I would never refuse a match so much 
above me as this was.' 
This discourse surprised him indeed very much. He told me 
that it was a critical point indeed for me to manage, and he 
did not see which way I should get out of it; but he would 
consider it, and let me know next time we met, what resolution 
he was come to about it; and in the meantime desired I would 
not give my consent to his brother, nor yet give him a flat 
denial, but that I would hold him in suspense a while. 
I seemed to start at his saying I should not give him my 
consent. I told him he knew very well I had no consent to 
give; that he had engaged himself to marry me, and that my 
consent was the same time engaged to him; that he had all 
along told me I was his wife, and I looked upon myself as 
effectually so as if the ceremony had passed; and that it was 
from his own mouth that I did so, he having all along persuaded 
me to call myself his wife. 
'Well, my dear,' says he, 'don't be concerned at that now; 
if I am not your husband, I'll be as good as a husband to you; 
and do not let those things trouble you now, but let me look 
a little farther into this affair, and I shall be able to say more 
next time we meet.' 
He pacified me as well as he could with this, but I found he 
was very thoughtful, and that though he was very kind to me 
and kissed me a thousand times, and more I believe, and gave 
me money too, yet he offered no more all the while we were 
together, which was above two hours, and which I much 
wondered at indeed at that time, considering how it used to be, 
and what opportunity we had. 
His brother did not come from London for five or six days, 
and it was two days more before he got an opportunity to talk 
with him; but then getting him by himself he began to talk 
very close to him about it, and the same evening got an 
opportunity (for we had a long conference together) to repeat 
all their discourse to me, which, as near as I can remember, 
was to the purpose following. He told him he heard strange 
news of him since he went, viz. that he made love to Mrs. 
Betty. 'Well, says his brother a little angrily, 'and so I do. 
And what then? What has anybody to do with that?' 'Nay,' 
says his brother, 'don't be angry, Robin; I don't pretend to 
have anything to do with it; nor do I pretend to be angry with 
you about it. But I find they do concern themselves about it, 
and that they have used the poor girl ill about it, which I should 
take as done to myself.' 'Whom do you mean by THEY?' 
says Robin. 'I mean my mother and the girls,' says the elder 
brother. 'But hark ye,' says his brother, 'are you in earnest? 
Do you really love this girl? You may be free with me, you 
know.' 'Why, then,' says Robin, 'I will be free with you; I do 
love her above all the women in the world, and I will have her, 
let them say and do what they will. I believe the girl will not 
deny me.' 
It struck me to the heart when he told me this, for though 
it was most rational to think I would not deny him, yet I knew 
in my own conscience I must deny him, and I saw my ruin in 
my being obliged to do so; but I knew it was my business to 
talk otherwise then, so I interrupted him in his story thus. 
'Ay!,' said I, 'does he think I cannot deny him? But he shall 
find I can deny him, for all that.' 
'Well, my dear,' says he, 'but let me give you the whole story 
as it went on between us, and then say what you will.' 
Then he went on and told me that he replied thus: 'But, 
brother, you know she has nothing, and you may have several 
ladies with good fortunes.' 
''Tis no matter for that,' said Robin; 'I love the girl, and I will 
never please my pocket in marrying, and not please my fancy.' 
'And so, my dear,' adds he, 'there is no opposing him.' 
'Yes, yes,' says I, 'you shall see I can oppose him; I have 
learnt to say No, now though I had not learnt it before; if the 
best lord in the land offered me marriage now, I could very 
cheerfully say No to him.' 
'Well, but, my dear,' says he, 'what can you say to him? You 
know, as you said when we talked of it before, he well ask 
you many questions about it, and all the house will wonder 
what the meaning of it should be.' 
'Why,' says I, smiling, 'I can stop all their mouths at one clap 
by telling him, and them too, that I am married already to his 
elder brother.' 
He smiled a little too at the word, but I could see it startled 
him, and he could not hide the disorder it put him into. 
However, he returned, 'Why, though that may be true in some 
sense, yet I suppose you are but in jest when you talk of 
giving such an answer as that; it may not be convenient on 
many accounts.' 
'No, no,' says I pleasantly, 'I am not so fond of letting the 
secret come out without your consent.' 
'But what, then, can you say to him, or to them,' says he, 
'when they find you positive against a match which would 
be apparently so much to your advantage?' 
'Why,' says I, 'should I be at a loss? First of all, I am not 
obliged to give me any reason at all; on the other hand, I may 
tell them I am married already, and stop there, and that will 
be a full stop too to him, for he can have no reason to ask one 
question after it.' 
'Ay,' says he; 'but the whole house will tease you about that, 
even to father and mother, and if you deny them positively, 
they will be disobliged at you, and suspicious besides.' 
'Why,' says I, 'what can I do? What would have me do? I 
was in straight enough before, and as I told you, I was in 
perplexity before, and acquainted you with the circumstances, 
that I might have your advice.' 
'My dear,' says he, 'I have been considering very much upon 
it, you may be sure, and though it is a piece of advice that has 
a great many mortifications in it to me, and may at first seem 
strange to you, yet, all things considered, I see no better way 
for you than to let him go on; and if you find him hearty and 
in earnest, marry him.' 
I gave him a look full of horror at those words, and, turning 
pale as death, was at the very point of sinking down out of the 
chair I sat in; when, giving a start, 'My dear,' says he aloud, 
'what's the matter with you? Where are you a-going?' and a 
great many such things; and with jogging and called to me, 
fetched me a little to myself, though it was a good while before 
I fully recovered my senses, and was not able to speak for 
several minutes more. 
When I was fully recovered he began again. 'My dear,' says 
he, 'what made you so surprised at what I said? I would have 
you consider seriously of it? You may see plainly how the 
family stand in this case, and they would be stark mad if it 
was my case, as it is my brother's; and for aught I see, it 
would be my ruin and yours too.' 
'Ay!' says I, still speaking angrily; 'are all your protestations 
and vows to be shaken by the dislike of the family? Did I not 
always object that to you, and you made light thing of it, as 
what you were above, and would value; and is it come to 
this now?' said I. 'Is this your faith and honour, your love, 
and the solidity of your promises?' 
He continued perfectly calm, notwithstanding all my reproaches, 
and I was not sparing of them at all; but he replied at last, 
'My dear, I have not broken one promise with you yet; I did 
tell you I would marry you when I was come to my estate; but 
you see my father is a hale, healthy man, and may live these 
thirty years still, and not be older than several are round us in 
town; and you never proposed my marrying you sooner, 
because you knew it might be my ruin; and as to all the rest, I 
have not failed you in anything, you have wanted for nothing.' 
I could not deny a word of this, and had nothing to say to it 
in general. 'But why, then,' says I, 'can you persuade me to 
such a horrid step as leaving you, since you have not left me? 
Will you allow no affection, no love on my side, where there 
has been so much on your side? Have I made you no returns? 
Have I given no testimony of my sincerity and of my passion? 
Are the sacrifices I have made of honour and modesty to you 
no proof of my being tied to you in bonds too strong to be 
broken?' 
'But here, my dear,' says he, 'you may come into a safe station, 
and appear with honour and with splendour at once, and the 
remembrance of what we have done may be wrapt up in an 
eternal silence, as if it had never happened; you shall always 
have my respect, and my sincere affection, only then it shall 
be honest, and perfectly just to my brother; you shall be my 
dear sister, asnow you are my dear----' and there he stopped. 
'Your dear whore,' says I, 'you would have said if you had 
gone on, and you might as well have said it; but I understand 
you. However, I desire you to remember the long discourses 
you have had with me, and the many hours' pains you have 
taken to persuade me to believe myself an honest woman; 
that I was your wife intentionally, though not in the eyes of 
the world, and that it was as effectual a marriage that had 
passed between us as is we had been publicly wedded by the 
parson of the parish. You know and cannot but remember 
that these have been your own words to me.' 
I found this was a little too close upon him, but I made it up 
in what follows. He stood stock-still for a while and said 
nothing, and I went on thus: 'You cannot,' says I, 'without 
the highest injustice, believe that I yielded upon all these 
persuasions without a love not to be questioned, not to be 
shaken again by anything that could happen afterward. If you 
have such dishonourable thoughts of me, I must ask you what 
foundation in any of my behaviour have I given for such a 
suggestion? 
'If, then, I have yielded to the importunities of my affection, 
and if I have been persuaded to believe that I am really, and 
in the essence of the thing, your wife, shall I now give the lie 
to all those arguments and call myself your whore, or mistress, 
which is the same thing? And will you transfer me to your 
brother? Canyou transfer my affection? Can you bid me 
cease loving you, and bid me love him? It is in my power, 
think you, to make such a change at demand? No, sir,' said I, 
'depend upon it 'tis impossible, and whatever the change of 
your side may be, I will ever be true; and I had much rather, 
since it is come that unhappy length, be your whore than your 
brother's wife.' 
He appeared pleased and touched with the impression of this 
last discourse, and told me that he stood where he did before; 
that he had not been unfaithful to me in any one promise he 
had ever made yet, but that there were so many terrible things 
presented themselves to his view in the affair before me, and 
that on my account in particular, that he had thought of the 
other as a remedy so effectual as nothing could come up to it. 
That he thought this would not be entire parting us, but we 
might love as friends all our days, and perhaps with more 
satisfaction than we should in the station we were now in, 
as things might happen; that he durst say, I could not apprehend 
anything from him as to betraying a secret, which could not 
but be the destruction of us both, if it came out; that he had 
but one question to ask of me that could lie in the way of it, 
and if that question was answered in the negative, he could 
not but think still it was the only step I could take. 
I guessed at his question presently, namely, whether I was 
sure I was not with child? As to that, I told him he need not 
be concerned about it, for I was not with child. 'Why, then, 
my dear,' says he, 'we have no time to talk further now. 
Consider of it, and think closely about it; I cannot but be of 
the opinion still, that it will be the best course you can take.' 
And with this he took his leave, and the more hastily too, his 
mother and sisters ringing at the gate, just at the moment that 
he had risen up to go. 
He left me in the utmost confusion of thought; and he easily 
perceived it the next day, and all the rest of the week, for it 
was but Tuesday evening when we talked; but he had no 
opportunity to come at me all that week, till the Sunday after, 
when I, being indisposed, did not go to church, and he, making 
some excuse for the like, stayed at home. 
And now he had me an hour and a half again by myself, and 
we fell into the same arguments all over again, or at least so 
near the same, as it would be to no purpose to repeat them. 
At last I asked him warmly, what opinion he must have of my 
modesty, that he could suppose I should so much as entertain 
a thought of lying with two brothers, and assured him it could 
never be. I added, if he was to tell me that he would never 
see me more, than which nothing but death could be more 
terrible, yet I could never entertain a thought so dishonourable 
to myself, and so base to him; and therefore, I entreated him, 
if he had one grain of respect or affection left for me, that he 
would speak no more of it to me, or that he would pull his 
sword out and kill me. He appeared surprised at my obstinacy, 
as he called it; told me I was unkind to myself, and unkind to 
him in it; that it was a crisis unlooked for upon us both, and 
impossible for either of us to foresee, but that he did not see 
any other way to save us both from ruin, and therefore he 
thought it the more unkind; but that if he must say no more 
of it to me, he added with an unusual coldness, that he did 
not know anything else we had to talk of; and so he rose up to 
take his leave. I rose up too, as if with the same indifference; 
but when he came to give me as it were a parting kiss, I burst 
out into such a passion of crying, that though I would have spoke, 
I could not, and only pressing his hand, seemed to give him the 
adieu, but cried vehemently. 
He was sensibly moved with this; so he sat down again, and 
said a great many kind things to me, to abate the excess of my 
passion, but still urged the necessity of what he had proposed; 
all the while insisting, that if I did refuse, he would notwithstanding 
provide for me; but letting me plainly see that he 
would decline me in the main point--nay, even as a mistress; 
making it a point of honour not to lie with the woman that, 
for aught he knew, might come to be his brother's wife. 
The bare loss of him as a gallant was not so much my affliction 
as the loss of his person, whom indeed I loved to distraction; 
and the loss of all the expectations I had, and which I always 
had built my hopes upon, of having him one day for my 
husband. These things oppressed my mind so much, that, in 
short, I fell very ill; the agonies of my mind, in a word, threw
 me into a high fever, and long it was, that none in the family 
expected my life. 
I was reduced very low indeed, and was often delirious and 
light-headed; but nothing lay so near me as the fear that, when 
I was light-headed, I should say something or other to his 
prejudice. I was distressed in my mind also to see him, and 
so he was to see me, for he really loved me most passionately; 
but it could not be; there was not the least room to desire it 
on one side or other, or so much as to make it decent. 
It was near five weeks that I kept my bed and though the 
violence of my fever abated in three weeks, yet it several 
times returned; and the physicians said two or three times, 
they could do no more for me, but that they must leave nature 
and the distemper to fight it out, only strengthening the first 
with cordials to maintain the struggle. After the end of five 
weeks I grew better, but was so weak, so altered, so melancholy, 
and recovered so slowly, that they physicians apprehended I 
should go into a consumption; and which vexed me most, 
they gave it as their opinion that my mind was oppressed, 
that something troubled me, and, in short, that I was in love. 
Upon this, the whole house was set upon me to examine me, 
and to press me to tell whether I was in love or not, and with 
whom; but as I well might, I denied my being in love at all. 
They had on this occasion a squabble one day about me at 
table, that had like to have put the whole family in an uproar, 
and for some time did so. They happened to be all at table but 
the father; as for me, I was ill, and in my chamber. At the 
beginning of the talk, which was just as they had finished 
their dinner, the old gentlewoman, who had sent me somewhat 
to eat, called her maid to go up and ask me if I would have any 
more; but the maid brought down word I had not eaten half 
what she had sent me already. 
'Alas, says the old lady, 'that poor girl! I am afraid she will 
never be well.' 
'Well!' says the elder brother, 'how should Mrs. Betty be well? 
They say she is in love.' 
'I believe nothing of it,' says the old gentlewoman. 
'I don't know,' says the eldest sister, 'what to say to it; 
they have made such a rout about her being so handsome, and 
so charming, and I know not what, and that in her hearing too, 
that has turned the creature's head, I believe, and who knows 
what possessions may follow such doings? For my part, I 
don't know what to make of it.' 
'Why, sister, you must acknowledge she is very handsome,' 
says the elder brother.' 
'Ay, and a great deal handsomer than you, sister,' says Robin, 
'and that's your mortification.' 
'Well, well, that is not the question,' says his sister; 'that girl 
is well enough, and she knows it well enough; she need not 
be told of it to make her vain.' 
'We are not talking of her being vain,' says the elder brother, 
'but of her being in love; it may be she is in love with herself; 
it seems my sisters think so.' 
'I would she was in love with me,' says Robin; 'I'd quickly 
put her out of her pain.' 
'What d'ye mean by that, son,' says the old lady; 'how can 
you talk so?' 
'Why, madam,' says Robin, again, very honestly, 'do you 
think I'd let the poor girl die for love, and of one that is near 
at hand to be had, too?' 
'Fie, brother!', says the second sister, 'how can you talk so? 
Would you take a creature that has not a groat in the world?' 
'Prithee, child,' says Robin, 'beauty's a portion, and goodhumour 
with it is a double portion; I wish thou hadst half her 
stock of both for thy portion.' So there was her mouth stopped. 
'I find,' says the eldest sister, 'if Betty is not in love, my 
brother is. I wonder he has not broke his mind to Betty; I 
warrant she won't say No.' 
'They that yield when they're asked,' says Robin, 'are one 
step before them that were never asked to yield, sister, and 
two steps before them that yield before they are asked; and 
that's an answer to you, sister.' 
This fired the sister, and she flew into a passion, and said, 
things were some to that pass that it was time the wench, 
meaning me, was out of the family; and but that she was not 
fit to be turned out, she hoped her father and mother would 
consider of it as soon as she could be removed. 
Robin replied, that was business for the master and mistress 
of the family, who where not to be taught by one that had so 
little judgment as his eldest sister. 
It ran up a great deal farther; the sister scolded, Robin rallied 
and bantered, but poor Betty lost ground by it extremely in 
the family. I heard of it, and I cried heartily, and the old lady 
came up to me, somebody having told her that I was so much 
concerned about it. I complained to her, that it was very hard 
the doctors should pass such a censure upon me, for which 
they had no ground; and that it was still harder, considering 
the circumstances I was under in the family; that I hoped I 
had done nothing to lessen her esteem for me, or given any 
occasion for the bickering between her sons and daughters, 
and I had more need to think of a coffin than of being in love, 
and begged she would not let me suffer in her opinion for 
anybody's mistakes but my own. 
She was sensible of the justice of what I said, but told me, 
since there had been such a clamour among them, and that her 
younger son talked after such a rattling way as he did, she 
desired I would be so faithful to her as to answer her but one 
question sincerely. I told her I would, with all my heart, and 
with the utmost plainness and sincerity. Why, then, the 
question was, whether there way anything between her son 
Robert and me. I told her with all the protestations of sincerity 
that I was able to make, and as I might well, do, that there was 
not, nor every had been; I told her that Mr. Robert had rattled 
and jested, as she knew it was his way, and that I took it always, 
as I supposed he meant it, to be a wild airy way of discourse 
that had no signification in it; and again assured her, that there 
was not the least tittle of what she understood by it between 
us; and that those who had suggested it had done me a great 
deal of wrong, and Mr. Robert no service at all. 
The old lady was fully satisfied, and kissed me, spoke 
cheerfully to me, and bid me take care of my health and want 
for nothing, and so took her leave. But when she came down 
she found the brother and all his sisters together by the ears; 
they were angry, even to passion, at his upbraiding them with 
their being homely, and having never had any sweethearts, 
never having been asked the question, and their being so 
forward as almost to ask first. He rallied them upon the 
subject of Mrs. Betty; how pretty, how good-humoured, how 
she sung better then they did, and danced better, and how 
much handsomer she was; and in doing this he omitted no 
ill-natured thing that could vex them, and indeed, pushed too 
hard upon them. The old lady came down in the height of it, 
and to put a stop it to, told them all the discourse she had had 
with me, and how I answered, that there was nothing between 
Mr. Robert and I. 
'She's wrong there,' says Robin, 'for if there was not a great 
deal between us, we should be closer together than we are. 
I told her I lover her hugely,' says he, 'but I could never make 
the jade believe I was in earnest.' 'I do not know how you 
should,' says his mother; 'nobody in their senses could believe 
you were in earnest, to talk so to a poor girl, whose circumstances 
you know so well. 
'But prithee, son,' adds she, 'since you tell me that you could 
not make her believe you were in earnest, what must we 
believe about it? For you ramble so in your discourse, that 
nobody knows whether you are in earnest or in jest; but as I 
find the girl, by your own confession, has answered truly, I 
wish you would do so too, and tell me seriously, so that I may 
depend upon it. Is there anything in it or no? Are you in 
earnest or no? Are you distracted, indeed, or are you not? 
'Tis a weighty question, and I wish you would make us easy 
about it.' 
'By my faith, madam,' says Robin, ''tis in vain to mince the 
matter or tell any more lies about it; I am in earnest, as much 
as a man is that's going to be hanged. If Mrs. Betty would 
say she loved me, and that she would marry me, I'd have her 
tomorrow morning fasting, and say, 'To have and to hold,' 
instead of eating my breakfast.' 
'Well,' says the mother, 'then there's one son lost'; and she 
said it in a very mournful tone, as one greatly concerned at it. 
'I hope not, madam,' says Robin; 'no man is lost when a good 
wife has found him.' 
'Why, but, child,' says the old lady, 'she is a beggar.' 
'Why, then, madam, she has the more need of charity,' says 
Robin; 'I'll take her off the hands of the parish, and she and 
I'll beg together.' 
'It's bad jesting with such things,' says the mother. 
'I don't jest, madam,' says Robin. 'We'll come and beg your 
pardon, madam; and your blessing, madam, and my father's.' 
'This is all out of the way, son,' says the mother. 'If you are 
in earnest you are undone.' 
'I am afraid not,' says he, 'for I am really afraid she won't 
have me; after all my sister's huffing and blustering, I believe 
I shall never be able to persuade her to it.' 
'That's a fine tale, indeed; she is not so far out of her senses 
neither. Mrs. Betty is no fool,' says the younger sister. 'Do 
you think she has learnt to say No, any more than other people?' 
'No, Mrs. Mirth-wit,' says Robin, 'Mrs. Betty's no fool; but 
Mrs. Betty may be engaged some other way, and what then?' 
'Nay,' says the eldest sister, 'we can say nothing to that. Who 
must it be to, then? She is never out of the doors; it must be 
between you.' 
'I have nothing to say to that,' says Robin. 'I have been 
examined enough; there's my brother. If it must be between 
us, go to work with him.' 
This stung the elder brother to the quick, and he concluded 
that Robin had discovered something. However, he kept 
himself from appearing disturbed. 'Prithee,' says he, 'don't 
go to shame your stories off upon me; I tell you, I deal in no 
such ware; I have nothing to say to Mrs. Betty, nor to any of 
the Mrs. Bettys in the parish'; and with that he rose up and 
brushed off. 
'No,' says the eldest sister, 'I dare answer for my brother; he 
knows the world better.' 
Thus the discourse ended, but it left the elder brother quite 
confounded. He concluded his brother had made a full 
discovery, and he began to doubt whether I had been concerned 
in it or not; but with all his management he could not bring 
it about to get at me. At last he was so perplexed that he was 
quite desperate, and resolved he would come into my chamber 
and see me, whatever came of it. In order to do this, he 
contrived it so, that one day after dinner, watching his eldest 
sister till he could see her go upstairs, he runs after her. 'Hark 
ye, sister,' says he, 'where is this sick woman? May not a 
body see her?' 'Yes,' says the sister, 'I believe you may; but 
let me go first a little, and I'll tell you.' So she ran up to the 
door and gave me notice, and presently called to him again. 
'Brother,' says she, 'you may come if you please.' So in he 
came, just in the same kind of rant. 'Well,' says he at the door 
as he came in, 'where is this sick body that's in love? How 
do ye do, Mrs. Betty?' I would have got up out of my chair, 
but was so weak I could not for a good while; and he saw it, 
and his sister to, and she said, 'Come, do not strive to stand 
up; my brother desires no ceremony, especially now you are 
so weak.' 'No, no, Mrs. Betty, pray sit still,' says he, and so 
sits himself down in a chair over against me, and appeared as 
if he was mighty merry. 
He talked a lot of rambling stuff to his sister and to me, 
sometimes of one thing, sometimes of another, on purpose 
to amuse his sister, and every now and then would turn it 
upon the old story, directing it to me. 'Poor Mrs. Betty,' says 
he, 'it is a sad thing to be in love; why, it has reduced you 
sadly.' At last I spoke a little. 'I am glad to see you so merry, 
sir,' says I; 'but I think the doctor might have found something 
better to do than to make his game at his patients. If I had 
been ill of no other distemper, I know the proverb too well to 
have let him come to me.' 'What proverb?' says he, 'Oh! I 
remember it now. What-
Where love is the case
The doctor's an ass."
Is not that itMrs. Betty?' I smiled and said nothing. 'Nay' 
says he'I think the effect has proved it to be lovefor it 
seems the doctor has been able to do you but little service; 
you mend very slowlythey say. I doubt there's somewhat in 
itMrs. Betty; I doubt you are sick of the incurablesand that 
is love.' I smiled and said'Noindeedsirthat's none of my 
distemper.' 
We had a deal of such discourseand sometimes others that 
signified as little. By and by he asked me to sing them a song
at which I smiledand said my singing days were over. At last 
he asked me if he should play upon his flute to me; his sister 
said she believe it would hurt meand that my head could 
not bear it. I bowedand saidNoit would not hurt me. 
'Andpraymadam.' said I'do not hinder it; I love the music 
of the flute very much.' Then his sister said'Welldothen
brother.' With that he pulled out the key of his closet. 'Dear 
sister' says he'I am very lazy; do step to my closet and fetch 
my flute; it lies in such a drawer' naming a place where he 
was sure it was notthat she might be a little while a-looking 
for it. 
As soon as she was gonehe related the whole story to me 
of the discourse his brother had about meand of his pushing 
it at himand his concern about itwhich was the reason of 
his contriving this visit to me. I assured him I had never 
opened my mouth either to his brother or to anybody else. 
I told him the dreadful exigence I was in; that my love to him
and his offering to have me forget that affection and remove 
it to anotherhad thrown me down; and that I had a thousand 
times wished I might die rather than recoverand to have the 
same circumstances to struggle with as I had beforeand that 
his backwardness to life had been the great reason of the 
slowness of my recovering. I added that I foresaw that as soon 
as I was wellI must quit the familyand that as for marrying 
his brotherI abhorred the thoughts of it after what had been 
my case with himand that he might depend upon it I would 
never see his brother again upon that subject; that if he would 
break all his vows and oaths and engagements with mebe 
that between his conscience and his honour and himself; but 
he should never be able to say that Iwhom he had persuaded 
to call myself his wifeand who had given him the liberty to 
use me as a wifewas not as faithful to him as a wife ought to 
bewhatever he might be to me. 
He was going to replyand had said that he was sorry I could 
not be persuadedand was a-going to say morebut he heard 
his sister a-comingand so did I; and yet I forced out these 
few words as a replythat I could never be persuaded to love 
one brother and marry another. He shook his head and said
'Then I am ruined' meaning himself; and that moment his 
sister entered the room and told him she could not find the 
flute. 'Well' says he merrily'this laziness won't do'; so he 
gets up and goes himself to go to look for itbut comes back 
without it too; not but that he could have found itbut because 
his mind was a little disturbedand he had no mind to play; 
andbesidesthe errand he sent his sister on was answered 
another way; for he only wanted an opportunity to speak to 
mewhich he gainedthough not much to his satisfaction. 
I hadhowevera great deal of satisfaction in having spoken 
my mind to him with freedomand with such an honest 
plainnessas I have related; and though it did not at all work 
the way I desiredthat is to sayto oblige the person to me 
the moreyet it took from him all possibility of quitting me 
but by a downright breach of honourand giving up all the 
faith of a gentleman to mewhich he had so often engaged by
never to abandon mebut to make me his wife as soon as he 
came to his estate. 
It was not many weeks after this before I was about the house 
againand began to grow well; but I continued melancholy
silentdulland retiredwhich amazed the whole familyexcept 
he that knew the reason of it; yet it was a great while before 
he took any notice of itand Ias backward to speak as he
carried respectfully to himbut never offered to speak a word 
to him that was particular of any kind whatsoever; and this 
continued for sixteen or seventeen weeks; so thatas I expected 
every day to be dismissed the familyon account of what 
distaste they had taken another wayin which I had no guilt
so I expected to hear no more of this gentlemanafter all his 
solemn vows and protestationsbut to be ruined and abandoned. 
At last I broke the way myself in the family for my removing; 
for being talking seriously with the old lady one dayabout 
my own circumstances in the worldand how my distemper 
had left a heaviness upon my spiritsthat I was not the same 
thing I was beforethe old lady said'I am afraidBettywhat 
I have said to you about my son has had some influence upon 
youand that you are melancholy on his account; praywill 
you let me know how the matter stands with you bothif it 
may not be improper? Foras for Robinhe does nothing but 
rally and banter when I speak of it to him.' 'Whytruly
madam' said I 'that matter stands as I wish it did notand I 
shall be very sincere with you in itwhatever befalls me for it. 
Mr. Robert has several times proposed marriage to mewhich 
is what I had no reason to expectmy poor circumstances 
considered; but I have always resisted himand that perhaps 
in terms more positive than became meconsidering the regard 
that I ought to have for every branch of your family; but' said 
I'madamI could never so far forget my obligation to you 
and all your houseto offer to consent to a thing which I know 
must needs be disobliging to youand this I have made my 
argument to himand have positively told him that I would 
never entertain a though of that kind unless I had your consent
and his father's alsoto whom I was bound by so many 
invincible obligations.' 
'And is this possibleMrs. Betty?' says the old lady. 'Then 
you have been much juster to us than we have been to you; 
for we have all looked upon you as a kind of snare to my son
and I had a proposal to make to you for your removingfor 
fear of it; but I had not yet mentioned it to youbecause I 
thought you were not thorough welland I was afraid of 
grieving you too muchlest it should throw you down again; 
for we have all a respect for you stillthough not so much as 
to have it be the ruin of my son; but if it be as you saywe have 
all wronged you very much.' 
'As to the truth of what I saymadam' said I'refer you to 
your son himself; if he will do me any justicehe must tell you 
the story just as I have told it.' 
Away goes the old lady to her daughters and tells them the 
whole storyjust as I had told it her; and they were surprised 
at ityou may be sureas I believed they would be. One said 
she could never have thought it; another said Robin was a fool; 
a third said she would not believe a word of itand she would 
warrant that Robin would tell the story another way. But the 
old gentlewomanwho was resolved to go to the bottom of it 
before I could have the least opportunity of acquainting her 
son with what had passedresolved too that she would talk 
with her son immediatelyand to that purpose sent for him
for he was gone but to a lawyer's house in the townupon 
some petty business of his ownand upon her sending he 
returned immediately. 
Upon his coming up to themfor they were all still together
'Sit downRobin' says the old lady'I must have some talk 
with you.' 'With all my heartmadam' says Robinlooking 
very merry. 'I hope it is about a good wifefor I am at a great 
loss in that affair.' 'How can that be?' says his mother; 'did 
not you say you resolved to have Mrs. Betty?' 'Aymadam' 
says Robin'but there is one has forbid the banns.' 'Forbid
the banns!' says his mother; 'who can that be?' 'Even Mrs.
Betty herself' says Robin. 'How so?' says his mother. 'Have
you asked her the questionthen?' 'Yesindeedmadam' says
Robin. 'I have attacked her in form five times since she was sick
and am beaten off; the jade is so stout she won't capitulate nor
yield upon any termsexcept such as I cannot effectually grant.'
'Explain yourself' says the mother'for I am surprised; I do
not understand you. I hope you are not in earnest.'
'Whymadam' says he'the case is plain enough upon me
it explains itself; she won't have meshe says; is not that plain
enough? I think 'tis plainand pretty rough too.' 'Wellbut'
says the mother'you talk of conditions that you cannot grant;
what does she want--a settlement? Her jointure ought to be
according to her portion; but what fortune does she bring you?'
'Nayas to fortune' says Robin'she is rich enough; I am
satisfied in that point; but 'tis I that am not able to come up
to her termsand she is positive she will not have me without.'
Here the sisters put in. 'Madam' says the second sister''tis
impossible to be serious with him; he will never give a direct
answer to anything; you had better let him aloneand talk no
more of it to him; you know how to dispose of her out of his
way if you thought there was anything in it.' Robin was a little
warmed with his sister's rudenessbut he was even with her
and yet with good manners too. 'There are two sorts of people
madam' says heturning to his mother'that there is no
contending with; that isa wise body and a fool; 'tis a little
hard I should engage with both of them together.'
The younger sister then put in. 'We must be fools indeed'
says she'in my brother's opinionthat he should think we can
believe he has seriously asked Mrs. Betty to marry himand
that she has refused him.'
'Answerand answer notsay Solomon' replied her brother.
'When your brother had said to your mother that he had asked
her no less than five timesand that it was sothat she positively
denied himmethinks a younger sister need not question the
truth of it when her mother did not.' 'My motheryou see
did not understand it' says the second sister. 'There's some
difference' says Robin'between desiring me to explain it
and telling me she did not believe it.'
'Wellbutson' says the old lady'if you are disposed to let
us into the mystery of itwhat were these hard conditions?'
'Yesmadam' says Robin'I had done it before nowif the
teasers here had not worried my by way of interruption. The
conditions arethat I bring my father and you to consent to it
and without that she protests she will never see me more upon
that head; and to these conditionsas I saidI suppose I shall
never be able to grant. I hope my warm sisters will be
answered nowand blush a little; if notI have no more to say
till I hear further.'
This answer was surprising to them allthough less to the
motherbecause of what I had said to her. As to the daughters
they stood mute a great while; but the mother said with some
passion'WellI had heard this beforebut I could not believe
it; but if it is sothey we have all done Betty wrongand she
has behaved better than I ever expected.' 'Nay' says the eldest
sister'if it be soshe has acted handsomely indeed.' 'I confess'
saysthe mother'it was none of her faultif he was fool enough
totake a fancy to her; but to give such an answer to himshows
more respect to your father and me than I can tell how to
express; I shall value the girl the better for it as long as I know
her.' 'But I shall not' says Robin'unless you will give your
consent.' 'I'll consider of that a while' says the mother; 'I
assure youif there were not some other objections in the way
this conduct of hers would go a great way to bring me to
consent.' 'I wish it would go quite through it' says Robin;
'if you had a much thought about making me easy as you have
about making me richyou would soon consent to it.'
'WhyRobin' says the mother again'are you really in earnest?
Would you so fain have her as you pretend?' "Reallymadam'
says Robin'I think 'tis hard you should question me upon
that head after all I have said. I won't say that I will have her;
how can I resolve that pointwhen you see I cannot have her
without your consent? BesidesI am not bound to marry at
all. But this I will sayI am in earnest inthat I will never have
anybody else if I can help it; so you may determine for me.
Betty or nobody is the wordand the question which of the
two shall be in your breast to decidemadamprovided only
that my good-humoured sisters here may have no vote in it.'
All this was dreadful to mefor the mother began to yield
and Robin pressed her home on it. On the other handshe
advised with the eldest sonand he used all the arguments in
the world to persuade her to consent; alleging his brother's
passionate love for meand my generous regard to the family
in refusing my own advantages upon such a nice point of
honourand a thousand such things. And as to the fatherhe
was a man in a hurry of public affairs and getting money
seldom at homethoughtful of the main chancebut left all
those things to his wife.
You may easily believethat when the plot was thusas they
thoughtbroke outand that every one thought they knew how
things were carriedit was not so difficult or so dangerous for
the elder brotherwhom nobody suspected of anythingto have
a freer access to me than before; naythe motherwhich was
just as he wishedproposed it to him to talk with Mrs. Betty.
'For it may beson' said she'you may see farther into the
thing than Iand see if you think she has been so positive as
Robin says she has beenor no.' This was as well as he could
wishand heas it wereyielding to talk with me at his mother's
requestshe brought me to him into her own chambertold me
her son had some business with me at her requestand desired
me to be very sincere with himand then she left us together
and he went and shut the door after her.
He came back to me and took me in his armsand kissed me
very tenderly; but told me he had a long discourse to hold
with meand it was not come to that crisisthat I should make
myself happy or miserable as long as I lived; that the thing
was now gone so farthat if I could not comply with his desire
we would both be ruined. Then he told the whole story
between Robinas he called himand his mother and sisters
and himselfas it is above. 'And nowdear child' says he
'consider what it will be to marry a gentleman of a good family
in good circumstancesand with the consent of the whole house
and to enjoy all that he world can give you; and whaton the
other handto be sunk into the dark circumstances of a woman
that has lost her reputation; and that though I shall be a private
friend to you while I liveyet as I shall be suspected always
so you will be afraid to see meand I shall be afraid to own you.'
He gave me no time to replybut went on with me thus: 'What 
has happened between uschildso long as we both agree to do 
somay be buried and forgotten. I shall always be your sincere 
friendwithout any inclination to nearer intimacywhen you 
become my sister; and we shall have all the honest part of 
conversation without any reproaches between us of having 
done amiss. I beg of you to consider itand to not stand in the 
way of your own safety and prosperity; and to satisfy you that 
I am sincere' added he'I here offer you #500 in moneyto 
make you some amends for the freedoms I havetaken with 
youwhich we shall look upon as some of the folliesof our 
liveswhich 'tis hoped we may repent of.' 
He spoke this in so much more moving terms than it is possible 
for me to expressand with so much greater force of argument 
than I can repeatthat I only recommend it to those who read 
the storyto supposethat as he held me above an hour and a 
half in that discourseso he answered all my objectionsand 
fortified his discourse with all the arguments that human wit 
and art could devise. 
I cannot sayhoweverthat anything he said made impression 
enough upon me so as to give me any thought of the matter
till he told me at last very plainlythat if I refusedhe was 
sorry to add that he could never go on with me in that station 
as we stood before; that though he loved me as well as ever
and that I was as agreeable to him as everyet sense of virtue 
had not so far forsaken him as to suffer him to lie with a 
woman that his brother courted to make his wife; and if he 
took his leave of mewith a denial in this affairwhatever he 
might do for me in the point of supportgrounded on his first 
engagement of maintaining meyet he would not have me be 
surprised that he was obliged to tell me he could not allow 
himself to see me any more; and thatindeedI could not 
expect it of him. 
I received this last part with some token of surprise and 
disorderand had much ado to avoid sinking downfor indeed 
I loved him to an extravagance not easy to imagine; but he 
perceived my disorder. He entreated me to consider seriously 
of it; assured me that it was the only way to preserve our 
mutual affection; that in this station we might love as friends
with the utmost passionand with a love of relation untainted
free from our just reproachesand free from other people's 
suspicions; that he should ever acknowledge his happiness 
owing to me; that he would be debtor to me as long as he 
livedand would be paying that debt as long as he had breath. 
Thus he wrought me upin shortto a kind of hesitation in the 
matter; having the dangers on one side represented in lively 
figuresand indeedheightened by my imagination of being 
turned out to the wide world a mere cast-off whorefor it was 
no lessand perhaps exposed as suchwith little to provide for
myselfwith no friendno acquaintance in the whole world
out of that townand there I could not pretend to stay. All 
this terrified me to the last degreeand he took care upon all 
occasions to lay it home to me in the worst colours that it could 
be possible to be drawn in. On the other handhe failed not to 
set forth the easyprosperous life which I was going to live. 
He answered all that I could object from affectionand from 
former engagementswith telling me the necessity that was 
before us of taking other measures now; and as to his promises 
of marriagethe nature of thingshe saidhad put an end to 
thatby the probability of my being his brother's wifebefore 
the time to which his promises all referred. 
Thusin a wordI may sayhe reasoned me out of my reason; 
he conquered all my argumentsand I began to see a danger 
that I was inwhich I had not considered of beforeand that 
wasof being dropped by both of them and left alone in the 
world to shift for myself. 
Thisand his persuasionat length prevailed with me to 
consentthough with so much reluctancethat it was easy to 
see I should go to church like a bear to the stake. I had some 
little apprehensions about metoolest my new spousewho
by the wayI had not the least affection forshould be skillful 
enough to challenge me on another accountupon our first 
coming to bed together. But whether he did it with design or 
notI know notbut his elder brother took care to make him 
very much fuddled before he went to bedso that I had the 
satisfaction of a drunken bedfellow the first night. How he 
did it I know notbut I concluded that he certainly contrived 
itthat his brother might be able to make no judgment of the 
difference between a maid and a married woman; nor did he 
ever entertain any notions of itor disturb his thoughts about it. 
I should go back a little here to where I left off. The elder 
brother having thus managed mehis next business was to 
manage his motherand he never left till he had brought her 
to acquiesce and be passive in the thingeven without 
acquainting the fatherother than by post letters; so that she 
consented to our marrying privatelyand leaving her to mange 
the father afterwards. 
Then he cajoled with his brotherand persuaded him what 
service he had done himand how he had brought his mother 
to consentwhichthough truewas not indeed done to serve 
himbut to serve himself; but thus diligently did he cheat him
and had the thanks of a faithful friend for shifting off his whore 
into his brother's arms for a wife. So certainly does interest 
banish all manner of affectionand so naturally do men give 
up honour and justicehumanityand even Christianityto 
secure themselves. 
I must now come back to brother Robinas we always called 
himwho having got his mother's consentas abovecame 
big with the news to meand told me the whole story of it
with a sincerity so visiblethat I must confess it grieved me 
that I must be the instrument to abuse so honest a gentleman. 
But there was no remedy; he would have meand I was not 
obliged to tell him that I was his brother's whorethough I had 
no other way to put him off; so I came gradually into itto his 
satisfactionand behold we were married. 
Modesty forbids me to reveal the secrets of the marriage-bed
but nothing could have happened more suitable to my 
circumstances than thatas abovemy husband was so fuddled 
when he came to bedthat he could not remember in the 
morning whether he had had any conversation with me or no
and I was obliged to tell him he hadthough in reality he had 
notthat I might be sure he could make to inquiry about 
anything else. 
It concerns the story in hand very little to enter into the further 
particulars of the familyor of myselffor the five years that I 
lived with this husbandonly to observe that I had two children 
by himand that at the end of five years he died. He had been 
really a very good husband to meand we lived very agreeably 
together; but as he had not received much from themand had 
in the little time he lived acquired no great mattersso my 
circumstances were not greatnor was I much mended by the 
match. IndeedI had preserved the elder brother's bonds to 
meto pay #500which he offered me for my consentto marry 
his brother; and thiswith what I had saved of the moneyhe 
formerly gave meabout as much more by my husbandleft me 
a widow with about #1200 in my pocket. 
My two children wereindeedtaken happily off my hands by 
my husband's father and motherand thatby the waywas all 
they got by Mrs. Betty. 
I confess I was not suitably affected with the loss of my husband
nor indeed can I say that I ever loved him as I ought to have 
doneor as was proportionable to the good usage I had from 
himfor he was a tenderkindgood-humoured man as any 
woman could desire; but his brother being so always in my 
sightat least while we were in the countrywas a continual 
snare to meand I never was in bed with my husband but I 
wished myself in the arms of his brother; and though his brother 
never offered me the least kindness that way after our marriage
but carried it just as a brother out to doyet it was impossible 
for me to do so to him; in shortI committed adultery and incest 
with him every day in my desireswhichwithout doubtwas as 
effectually criminal in the nature of the guilt as if I had actually 
done it. 
Before my husband died his elder brother was marriedand 
webeing then removed to Londonwere written to by the old 
lady to come and be at the wedding. My husband wentbut I 
pretended indispositionand that I could not possibly travel
so I stayed behind; forin shortI could not bear the sight of 
his being given to another womanthough I knew I was never 
to have him myself. 
I was nowas aboveleft loose to the worldand being still 
young and handsomeas everybody said of meand I assure 
you I thought myself soand with a tolerable fortune in my 
pocketI put no small value upon myself. I was courted by 
several very considerable tradesmenand particularly very 
warmly by onea linen-draperat whose houseafter my 
husband's deathI took a lodginghis sister being my acquaintance. 
Here I had all the liberty and all the opportunity to be gay and 
appear in company that I could desiremy landlord's sister 
being one of the maddestgayest things aliveand not so much 
mistress of her virtue as I thought as first she had been. She 
brought me into a world of wild companyand even brought 
home several personssuch as she liked well enough to gratify
to see her pretty widowso she was pleased to call meand 
that name I got in a little time in public. Nowas fame and 
fools make an assemblyI was here wonderfully caressedhad 
abundance of admirersand such as called themselves lovers; 
but I found not one fair proposal among them all. As for their 
common designthat I understood too well to be drawn into 
any more snares of that kind. The case was altered with me: 
I had money in my pocketand had nothing to say to them. I 
had been tricked once by that cheat called lovebut the game 
was over; I was resolved now to be married or nothingand 
to be well married or not at all. 
I loved the companyindeedof men of mirth and witmen of 
gallantry and figureand was often entertained with suchas 
I was also with others; but I found by just observationthat the 
brightest men came upon the dullest errand--that is to saythe 
dullest as to what I aimed at. On the other handthose who 
came with the best proposals were the dullest and most 
disagreeable part of the world. I was not averse to a tradesman
but then I would have a tradesmanforsooththat was 
something of a gentleman too; that when my husband had a 
mind to carry me to the courtor to the playhe might become 
a swordand look as like a gentleman as another man; and not 
be one that had the mark of his apron-strings upon his coat
or the mark of his hat upon his periwig; that should look as if 
he was set on to his swordwhen his sword was put on to him
and that carried his trade in his countenance. 
Wellat last I found this amphibious creaturethis land-water 
thing called a gentleman-tradesman; and as a just plague upon 
my follyI was catched in the very snare whichas I might say
I laid for myself. I said for myselffor I was not trepanned
I confessbut I betrayed myself. 
This was a drapertoofor though my comrade would have 
brought me to a bargain with her brotheryet when it came to 
the pointit wasit seemsfor a mistressnot a wife; and I kept 
true to this notionthat a woman should never be kept for a 
mistress that had money to keep herself. 
Thus my pridenot my principlemy moneynot my virtue
kept me honest; thoughas it provedI found I had much better 
have been sold by my she-comrade to her brotherthan have 
sold myself as I did to a tradesman that was rakegentleman
shopkeeperand beggarall together. 
But I was hurried on (by my fancy to a gentleman) to ruin 
myself in the grossest manner that every woman did; for my 
new husband coming to a lump of money at oncefell into 
such a profusion of expensethat all I hadand all he had 
beforeif he had anything worth mentioningwould not have 
held it out above one year. 
He was very fond of me for about a quarter of a yearand 
what I got by that wasthat I had the pleasure of seeing a great 
deal of my money spent upon myselfandas I may sayhad 
some of the spending it too. 'Comemy dear' says he to me 
one day'shall we go and take a turn into the country for about 
a week?' 'Aymy dear' says I'whither would you go?' 'I 
care not whither' says he'but I have a mind to look like 
quality for a week. We'll go to Oxford' says he. 'How' says 
I'shall we go? I am no horsewomanand 'tis too far for a coach.'
'Too far!' says he; 'no place is too far for a coach-and-six. If 
I carry you outyou shall travel like a duchess.' 'Hum' says 
I'my dear'tis a frolic; but if you have a mind to itI don't 
care.' Wellthe time was appointedwe had a rich coachvery 
good horsesa coachmanpostillionand two footmen in very 
good liveries; a gentleman on horsebackand a page with a 
feather in his hat upon another horse. The servants all called 
him my lordand the inn-keepersyou may be suredid the like
and I was her honour the Countessand thus we traveled to 
Oxfordand a very pleasant journey we had; forgive him his 
duenot a beggar alive knew better how to be a lord than my 
husband. We saw all the rarities at Oxfordtalked with two or 
three Fellows of colleges about putting out a young nephew
that was left to his lordship's careto the Universityand of 
their being his tutors. We diverted ourselves with bantering 
several other poor scholarswith hopes of being at least his 
lordship's chaplains and putting on a scarf; and thus having 
lived like quality indeedas to expensewe went away for 
Northamptonandin a wordin about twelve days' ramble 
came home againto the tune of about #93 expense. 
Vanity is the perfection of a fop. My husband had this 
excellencethat he valued nothing of expense; and as his 
historyyou may be surehas very little weight in it'tis 
enough to tell you that in about two years and a quarter he 
brokeand was not so happy to get over into the Mintbut got 
into a sponging-housebeing arrested in an action too heavy 
from him to give bail toso he sent for me to come to him. 
It was no surprise to mefor I had foreseen some time that 
all was going to wreckand had been taking care to reserve 
something if I couldthough it was not muchfor myself. But 
when he sent for mehe behaved much better than I expected
and told me plainly he had played the fooland suffered 
himself to be surprisedwhich he might have prevented; that 
now he foresaw he could not stand itand therefore he would 
have me go homeand in the night take away everything I had 
in the house of any valueand secure it; and after thathe told 
me that if I could get away one hundred or two hundred pounds 
in goods out of the shopI should do it; 'only' say she'let me 
know nothing of itneither what you take nor whither you 
carry it; for as for me' says he'I am resolved toget out of 
this house and be gone; and if you never hear of me moremy 
dear' says he'I wish you well; I am only sorry for the injury 
I have done you.' He said some very hand somethings to me 
indeed at parting; for I told you he was a gentlemanand that 
was all the benefit I had of his being so; that he used me very 
handsomely and with good manners upon all occasionseven 
to the lastonly spent all I hadand left me to rob the creditors 
for something to subsist on. 
HoweverI did as he bade methat you may be sure; and 
having thus taken my leave of himI never saw him morefor 
he found means to break out of the bailiff's house that night 
or the nextand go over into Franceand for the rest of the 
creditors scrambled for it as well as they could. HowI knew 
notfor I could come at no knowledge of anythingmore than 
thisthat he came home about three o'clock in the morning
caused the rest of his goods to be removed into the Mintand 
the shop to be shut up; and having raised what money he could 
get togetherhe got overas I saidto Francefrom whence I 
had one or two letters from himand no more. I did not see him 
when he came homefor he having given me such instructions 
as aboveand I having made the best of my timeI had no more 
business back again at the housenot knowing but I might have 
been stopped there by the creditors; for a commission of 
bankrupt being soon after issuedthey might have stopped me 
by orders from the commissioners. But my husbandhaving 
so dexterously got out of the bailiff's house by letting himself 
down in a most desperate manner from almost the top of the 
house to the top of another buildingand leaping from thence
which was almost two storeysand which was enough indeed 
to have broken his neckhe came home and got away his goods 
before the creditors could come to seize; that is to saybefore 
they could get out the commissionand be ready to send their 
officers to take possession. 
My husband was so civil to mefor still I say he was much 
of a gentlemanthat in the first letter he wrote me from France
he let me know where he had pawned twenty pieces of fine 
holland for #30which were really worth #90and enclosed 
me the token and an order for the taking them uppaying the 
moneywhich I didand made in time above #100 of them
having leisure to cut them and sell themsome and someto 
private familiesas opportunity offered. 
Howeverwith all thisand all that I had secured beforeI 
foundupon casting things upmy case was very much altered
any my fortune much lessened; forincluding the hollands and 
a parcel of fine muslinswhich I carried off beforeand some 
plateand other thingsI found I could hardly muster up #500; 
and my condition was very oddfor though I had no child (I 
had had one by my gentleman draperbut it was buried)yet I 
was a widow bewitched; I had a husband and no husbandand 
I could not pretend to marry againthough I knew well enough 
my husband would never see England any moreif he lived fifty 
years. ThusI sayI was limited from marriagewhat offer 
mightsoever be made me; and I had not one friend to advise 
with in the condition I was inlease not one I durst trust the 
secret of my circumstances tofor if the commissioners were 
to have been informed where I wasI should have been fetched 
up and examined upon oathand all I have saved be taken aware 
from me. 
Upon these apprehensionsthe first thing I did was to go quite 
out of my knowledgeand go by another name. This I did 
effectuallyfor I went into the Mint tootook lodgings in a 
very private placedressed up in the habit of a widowand 
called myself Mrs. Flanders. 
HerehoweverI concealed myselfand though my new 
acquaintances knew nothing of meyet I soon got a great 
deal of company about me; and whether it be that women are 
scarce among the sorts of people that generally are to be found 
thereor that some consolations in the miseries of the place 
are more requisite than on other occasionsI soon found an 
agreeable woman was exceedingly valuable among the sons 
of affliction thereand that those that wanted money to pay 
half a crown on the pound to their creditorsand that run in debt 
at the sign of the Bull for their dinnerswould yet find money 
for a supperif they liked the woman. 
HoweverI kept myself safe yetthough I beganlike my Lord 
Rochester's mistressthat loved his companybut would not 
admit him fartherto have the scandal of a whorewithout the 
joy; and upon this scoretired with the placeand indeed 
with the company tooI began to think of removing. 
It was indeed a subject of strange reflection to me to see men 
who were overwhelmed in perplexed circumstanceswho 
were reduced some degrees below being ruinedwhose families 
were objects of their own terror and other people's charity
yet while a penny lastednayeven beyond itendeavouring to 
drown themselveslabouring to forget former thingswhich 
not it was the proper time to remembermaking more work for 
repentanceand sinning onas a remedy for sin past. 
But it is none of my talent to preach; these men were too 
wickedeven for me. There was something horrid and absurd 
in their way of sinningfor it was all a force even upon 
themselves; they did not only act against consciencebut 
against nature; they put a rape upon their temper to drown the 
reflectionswhich their circumstances continually gave them; 
and nothing was more easy than to see how sighs would 
interrupt their songsand paleness and anguish sit upon their 
browsin spite of the forced smiles they put on; naysometimes 
it would break out at their very mouths when they had parted 
with their money for a lewd treat or a wicked embrace. I have 
heard themturning aboutfetch a deep sighand cry'What a 
dog am I! WellBettymy dearI'll drink thy healththough'; 
meaning the honest wifethat perhaps had not a half-crown 
for herself and three or four children. The next morning they 
are at their penitentials again; and perhaps the poor weeping 
wife comes over to himeither brings him some account of 
what his creditors are doingand how she and the children are 
turned out of doorsor some other dreadful news; and this 
adds to his self-reproaches; but when he has thought and pored 
on it till he is almost madhaving no principles to support him
nothing within him or above him to comfort himbut finding 
it all darkness on every sidehe flies to the same relief again
viz. to drink it awaydebauch it awayand falling into 
company of men in just the same condition with himselfhe 
repeats the crimeand thus he goes every day one step 
onward of his way to destruction. 
I was not wicked enough for such fellows as these yet. On 
the contraryI began to consider here very seriously what I 
had to do; how things stood with meand what course I ought 
to take. I knew I had no friendsnonot one friend or relation 
in the world; and that little I had left apparently wastedwhich 
when it was goneI saw nothing but misery and starving was 
before me. Upon these considerationsI sayand filled with 
horror at the place I was inand the dreadful objects which I 
had always before meI resolved to be gone. 
I had made an acquaintance with a very sobergood sort of a 
womanwho was a widow toolike mebut in better circumstances. 
Her husband had been a captain of a merchant shipand having 
had the misfortune to be cast away coming home on a voyage 
from the West Indieswhich would have been very profitable 
if he had come safewas so reduced by the lossthat though 
he had saved his life thenit broke his heartand killed him 
afterwards; and his widowbeing pursued by the creditorswas 
forced to take shelter in the Mint. She soon made things up 
with the help of friendsand was at liberty again; and finding 
that I rather was there to be concealedthan by any particular 
prosecutions and finding also that I agreed with heror rather 
she with mein a just abhorrence of the place and of the 
companyshe invited to go home with her till I could put 
myself in some posture of settling in the world to my mind; 
withal telling methat it was ten to one but some good captain 
of a ship might take a fancy to meand court mein that part 
of the town where she lived. 
I accepted her offerand was with her half a yearand should 
have been longerbut in that interval what she proposed to me 
happened to herselfand she married very much to her advantage. 
But whose fortune soever was upon the increasemine seemed 
to be upon the waneand I found nothing presentexcept two 
or three boatswainsor such fellowsbut as for the commanders
they were generally of two sorts: 1. Such ashaving good 
businessthat is to saya good shipresolved not to marry 
but with advantagethat iswith a good fortune; 2. Such as
being out of employwanted a wife to help them to a ship; I 
mean (1) a wife whohaving some moneycould enable them 
to holdas they call ita good part of a ship themselvesso to 
encourage owners to come in; or (2) a wife whoif she had not 
moneyhad friends who were concerned in shippingand so 
could help to put the young man into a good shipwhich to 
them is as good as a portion; and neither of these was my case
so I looked like one that was to lie on hand. 
This knowledge I soon learned by experienceviz. that the 
state of things was altered as to matrimonyand that I was not 
to expect at London what I had found in the country: that 
marriages were here the consequences of politic schemes for 
forming interestsand carrying on businessand that Love had 
no shareor but very littlein the matter. 
That as my sister-in-law at Colchester had saidbeautywit
mannerssensegood humourgood behavioureducation
virtuepietyor any other qualificationwhether of body or 
mindhad no power to recommend; that money only made a 
woman agreeable; that men chose mistresses indeed by the 
gust of their affectionand it was requisite to a whore to be 
handsomewell-shapedhave a good mien and a graceful 
behaviour; but that for a wifeno deformity would shock the 
fancyno ill qualities the judgment; the money was the thing; 
the portion was neither crooked nor monstrousbut the money 
was always agreeablewhatever the wife was. 
On the other handas the market ran very unhappily on the 
men's sideI found the women had lost the privilege of saying 
No; that it was a favour now for a woman to have the Question 
askedand if any young lady had so much arrogance as to 
counterfeit a negativeshe never had the opportunity given 
her of denying twicemuch less of recovering that false step
and accepting what she had but seemed to decline. The men 
had such choice everywherethat the case of the women was 
very unhappy; for they seemed to ply at every doorand if the 
man was by great chance refused at one househe was sure to 
be received at the next. 
Besides thisI observed that the men made no scruple to set 
themselves outand to go a-fortunehuntingas they call it
when they had really no fortune themselves to demand itor 
merit to deserve it; and that they carried it so highthat a woman 
was scarce allowed to inquire after the character or estate of 
the person that pretended to her. This I had an example ofin 
a young lady in the next house to meand with whom I had 
contracted an intimacy; she was courted by a young captain
and though she had near #2000 to her fortuneshe did but 
inquire of some of his neighbours about his characterhis 
moralsor substanceand he took occasion at the next visit to 
let her knowtrulythat he took it very illand that he should 
not give her the trouble of his visits any more. I heard of it
and I had begun my acquaintance with herI went to see her 
upon it. She entered into a close conversation with me about 
itand unbosomed herself very freely. I perceived presently 
that though she thought herself very ill usedyet she had no 
power to resent itand was exceedingly piqued that she had 
lost himand particularly that another of less fortune had 
gained him. 
I fortified her mind against such a meannessas I called it; I 
told herthat as low as I was in the worldI would have 
despised a man that should think I ought to take him upon his 
own recommendation onlywithout having the liberty to 
inform myself of his fortune and of his character; also I told 
herthat as she had a good fortuneshe had no need to stoop 
to the disaster of the time; that it was enough that the men 
could insult us that had but little money to recommend usbut 
if she suffered such an affront to pass upon her without resenting 
itshe would be rendered low-prized upon all occasionsand 
would be the contempt of all the women in that part of the town; 
that a woman can never want an opportunity to be revenged 
of a man that has used her illand that there were ways enough 
to humble such a fellow as thator else certainly women were 
the most unhappy creatures in the world. 
I found she was very well pleased with the discourseand she 
told me seriously that she would be very glad to make him 
sensible of her just resentmentand either to bring him on again
or have the satisfaction of her revenge being as public as possible. 
I told herthat if she would take my adviceI would tell her 
how she should obtain her wishes in both those thingsand 
that I would engage I would bring the man to her door again
and make him beg to be let in. She smiled at thatand soon 
let me seethat if he came to her doorher resentment was 
not so great as to give her leave to let him stand long there. 
Howevershe listened very willingly to my offer of advice; 
so I told her that the first thing she ought to do was a piece 
of justice to herselfnamelythat whereas she had been told 
by several people that he had reported among the ladies that 
he had left herand pretended to give the advantage of the 
negative to himselfshe should take care to have it well spread 
among the women--which she could not fail of an opportunity 
to do in a neighbourhood so addicted to family news as that 
she live in was--that she had inquired into his circumstances
and found he was not the man as to estate he pretended to be. 
'Let them be toldmadam' said I'that you had been well 
informed that he was not the man that you expectedand that 
you thought it was not safe to meddle with him; that you heard 
he was of an ill temperand that he boasted how he had used 
the women ill upon many occasionsand that particularly he 
was debauched in his morals'etc. The last of whichindeed
had some truth in it; but at the same time I did not find that 
she seemed to like him much the worse for that part. 
As I had put this into her headshe came most readily into it. 
Immediately she went to work to find instrumentsand she 
had very little difficulty in the searchfor telling her story in 
general to a couple of gossips in the neighbourhoodit was the 
chat of the tea-table all over that part of the townand I met 
with it wherever I visited; alsoas it was known that I was 
acquainted with the young lady herselfmy opinion was asked 
very oftenand I confirmed it with all the necessary aggravations
and set out his character in the blackest colours; but then as a 
piece of secret intelligenceI addedas what the other gossips 
knew nothing ofviz. that I had heard he was in very bad 
circumstances; that he was under a necessity of a fortune to 
support his interest with the owners of the ship he commanded; 
that his own part was not paid forand if it was not paid quickly
his owners would put him out of the shipand his chief mate 
was likely to command itwho offered to buy that part which 
the captain had promised to take. 
I addedfor I confess I was heartily piqued at the rogueas I 
called himthat I had heard a rumourtoothat he had a wife 
alive at Plymouthand another in the West Indiesa thing which 
they all knew was not very uncommon for such kind of gentlemen. 
This worked as we both desire itfor presently the young lady 
next doorwho had a father and mother that governed both 
her and her fortunewas shut upand her father forbid him the 
house. Also in one place more where he wentthe woman had 
the couragehowever strange it wasto say No; and he could 
try nowhere but he was reproached with his prideand that he 
pretended not to give the women leave to inquire into his 
characterand the like. 
Wellby this time he began to be sensible of his mistake; and 
having alarmed all the women on that side of the waterhe 
went over to Ratcliffand got access to some of the ladies 
there; but though the young women there too wereaccording 
to the fate of the daypretty willing to be askedyet such was 
his ill-luckthat his character followed him over the water and 
his good name was much the same there as it was on our side; 
so that though he might have had wives enoughyet it did not 
happen among the women that had good fortuneswhich was 
what he wanted. 
But this was not all; she very ingeniously managed another 
thing herselffor she got a young gentlemanwho as a relation
and was indeed a married manto come and visit her two or 
three times a week in a very fine chariot and good liveriesand 
her two agentsand I alsopresently spread a report all over
that this gentleman came to court her; that he was a gentleman 
of a #1000 a yearand that he was fallen in love with herand 
that she was going to her aunt's in the citybecause it was 
inconvenient for the gentleman to come to her with his coach 
in Redriffthe streets being so narrow and difficult. 
This took immediately. The captain was laughed at in all 
companiesand was ready to hang himself. He tried all the 
ways possible to come at her againand wrote the most 
passionate letters to her in the worldexcusing his former 
rashness; and in shortby great applicationobtained leave to 
wait on her againas he saidto clear his reputation. 
At this meeting she had her full revenge of him; for she told 
him she wondered what he took her to bethat she should 
admit any man to a treaty of so much consequence as that to 
marriagewithout inquiring very well into his circumstances; 
that if he thought she was to be huffed into wedlockand that 
she was in the same circumstances which her neighbours might 
be inviz. to take up with the first good Christian that came
he was mistaken; thatin a wordhis character was really bad
or he was very ill beholden to his neighbours; and that unless 
he could clear up some pointsin which she had justly been 
prejudicedshe had no more to say to himbut to do herself 
justiceand give him the satisfaction of knowing that she was 
not afraid to say Noeither to him or any man else. 
With that she told him what she had heardor rather raised 
herself by my meansof his character; his not having paid for 
the part he pretended to own of the ship he commanded; of 
the resolution of his owners to put him out of the command
and to put his mate in his stead; and of the scandal raised on 
his morals; his having been reproached with such-and-such 
womenand having a wife at Plymouth and in the West Indies
and the like; and she asked him whether he could deny that she 
had good reasonif these things were not cleared upto refuse 
himand in the meantime to insist upon having satisfaction in 
points to significant as they were. 
He was so confounded at her discourse that he could not 
answer a wordand she almost began to believe that all was 
trueby his disorderthough at the same time she knew that 
she had been the raiser of all those reports herself. 
After some time he recovered himself a littleand from that 
time became the most humblethe most modestand most 
importunate man alive in his courtship. 
She carried her jest on a great way. She asked himif he 
thought she was so at her last shift that she could or ought to 
bear such treatmentand if he did not see that she did not 
want those who thought it worth their while to come farther 
to her than he did; meaning the gentleman whom she had 
brought to visit her by way of sham. 
She brought him by these tricks to submit to all possible 
measures to satisfy heras well of his circumstances as of his 
behaviour. He brought her undeniable evidence of his having 
paid for his part of the ship; he brought her certificates from 
his ownersthat the report of their intending to remove him 
from the command of the ship and put his chief mate in was 
false and groundless; in shorthe was quite the reverse of what 
he was before. 
Thus I convinced herthat if the men made their advantage 
of our sex in the affair of marriageupon the supposition of 
there being such choice to be hadand of the women being 
so easyit was only owing to thisthat the women wanted 
courage to maintain their ground and to play their part; and 
thataccording to my Lord Rochester
'A woman's ne'er so ruined but she can 
Revenge herself on her undoerMan.'
After these things this young lady played her part so wellthat 
though she resolved to have himand that indeed having him 
was the main bent of her designyet she made his obtaining 
her be to him the most difficult thing in the world; and this she 
didnot by a haughty reserved carriagebut by a just policy
turning the tables upon himand playing back upon him his 
own game; for as he pretendedby a kind of lofty carriageto 
place himself above the occasion of a characterand to make 
inquiring into his character a kind of an affront to himshe 
broke with him upon that subjectand at the same time that 
she make him submit to all possible inquiry after his affairs
she apparently shut the door against his looking into her own. 
It was enough to him to obtain her for a wife. As to what 
she hadshe told him plainlythat as he knew her circumstances
it was but just she should know his; and though at the same 
time he had only known her circumstances by common fame
yet he had made so many protestations of his passion for her
that he could ask no more but her hand to his grand request
and the like ramble according to the custom of lovers. In short
he left himself no room to ask any more questions about her 
estateand she took the advantage of it like a prudent woman
for she placed part of her fortune so in trusteeswithout letting 
him know anything of itthat it was quite out of his reachand 
made him be very well content with the rest. 
It is true she was pretty well besidesthat is to sayshe had 
about #1400 in moneywhich she gave him; and the other
after some timeshe brought to light as a perquisite to herself
which he was to accept as a mighty favourseeing though it 
was not to be hisit might ease him in the article of her particular 
expenses; and I must addthat by this conduct the gentleman 
himself became not only the more humble in his applications 
to her to obtain herbut also was much the more an obliging 
husband to her when he had her. I cannot but remind the ladies 
here how much they place themselves below the common 
station of a wifewhichif I may be allowed not to be partial
is low enough already; I saythey place themselves below their 
common stationand prepare their own mortificationsby their 
submitting so to be insulted by the men beforehandwhich I 
confess I see no necessity of. 
This relation may servethereforeto let the ladies see that 
the advantage is not so much on the other side as the men 
think it is; and though it may be true that the men have but too 
much choice among usand that some women may be found 
who will dishonour themselvesbe cheapand easy to come 
atand will scarce wait to be askedyet if they will have women
as I may sayworth havingthey may find them as uncomeatable 
as ever and that those that are otherwise are a sort of people 
that have such deficiencieswhen hadas rather recommend 
the ladies that are difficult than encourage the men to go on 
with their easy courtshipand expect wives equally valuable 
that will come at first call. 
Nothing is more certain than that the ladies always gain of the 
men by keeping their groundand letting their pretended 
lovers see they can resent being slightedand that they are not 
afraid of saying No. TheyI observeinsult us mightily with 
telling us of the number of women; that the warsand the sea
and tradeand other incidents have carried the men so much 
awaythat there is no proportion between the numbers of the 
sexesand therefore the women have the disadvantage; but I 
am far from granting that the number of women is so great
or the number of men so small; but if they will have me tell 
the truththe disadvantage of the women is a terrible scandal 
upon the menand it lies hereand here only; namelythat the 
age is so wickedand the sex so debauchedthatin shortthe 
number of such men as an honest woman ought to meddle 
with is small indeedand it is but here and there that a man is 
to be found who is fit for a woman to venture upon. 
But the consequence even of that too amounts to no more 
than thisthat women ought to be the more nice; for how do 
we know the just character of the man that makes the offer? 
To say that the woman should be the more easy on this 
occasionis to say we should be the forwarder to venture 
because of the greatness of the dangerwhichin my way of 
reasoningis very absurd. 
On the contrarythe women have ten thousand times the more 
reason to be wary and backwardby how much the hazard of 
being betrayed is the greater; and would the ladies consider 
thisand act the wary partthey would discover every cheat 
that offered; forin shortthe lives of very few men nowadays 
will bear a character; and if the ladies do but make a little 
inquirythey will soon be able to distinguish the men and 
deliver themselves. As for women that do not think they own 
safety worth their thoughthatimpatient of their perfect state
resolveas they call itto take the first good Christian that 
comesthat run into matrimony as a horse rushes into the battle
I can say nothing to them but thisthat they are a sort of ladies 
that are to be prayed for among the rest of distempered people
and to me they look like people that venture their whole estates 
in a lottery where there is a hundred thousand blanks to one prize. 
No man of common-sense will value a woman the less for not 
giving up herself at the first attackor for accepting his proposal 
without inquiring into his person or character; on the contrary
he must think her the weakest of all creatures in the worldas 
the rate of men now goes. In shorthe must have a very 
contemptible opinion of her capacitiesnayevery of her 
understandingthathaving but one case of her lifeshall call 
that life away at onceand make matrimonylike deathbe a 
leap in the dark. 
I would fain have the conduct of my sex a little regulated in 
this particularwhich is the thing in whichof all the parts of 
lifeI think at this time we suffer most in; 'tis nothing but lack 
of couragethe fear of not being married at alland of that 
frightful state of life called an old maidof which I have a 
story to tell by itself. ThisI sayis the woman's snare; but 
would the ladies once but get above that fear and manage 
rightlythey would more certainly avoid it by standing their 
groundin a case so absolutely necessary to their felicitythat 
by exposing themselves as they do; and if they did not marry 
so soon as they may do otherwisethey would make themselves 
amends by marrying safer. She is always married too soon who 
gets a bad husbandand she is never married too late who gets 
a good one; in a wordthere is no womandeformity or lost 
reputation exceptedbut if she manages wellmay be married 
safely one time or other; but if she precipitates herselfit is ten 
thousand to one but she is undone. 
But I come now to my own casein which there was at this 
time no little nicety. The circumstances I was in made the 
offer of a good husband the most necessary thing in the world 
to mebut I found soon that to be made cheap and easy was 
not the way. It soon began to be found that the widow had 
no fortuneand to say this was to say all that was ill of me
for I began to be dropped in all the discourses of matrimony. 
Being well-bredhandsomewittymodestand agreeable; all 
which I had allowed to my character--whether justly or no is 
not the purpose--I sayall these would not do without the 
drosswhich way now become more valuable than virtue itself. 
In shortthe widowthey saidhad no money. 
I resolvedthereforeas to the state of my present circumstances
that it was absolutely necessary to change my stationand make 
a new appearance in some other place where I was not known
and even to pass by another name if I found occasion. 
I communicated my thoughts to my intimate friendthe captain's 
ladywhom I had so faithfully served in her case with the 
captainand who was as ready to serve me in the same kind 
as I could desire. I made no scruple to lay my circumstances 
open to her; my stock was but lowfor I had made but about 
#540 at the close of my last affairand I had wasted some of 
that; howeverI had about #460 lefta great many very rich 
clothesa gold watchand some jewelsthough of no 
extraordinary valueand about #30 or #40 left in linen not 
disposed of. 
My dear and faithful friendthe captain's wifewas so sensible 
of the service I had done her in the affair abovethat she was 
not only a steady friend to mebutknowing my circumstances
she frequently made me presents as money came into her 
handssuch as fully amounted to a maintenanceso that I spent 
none of my own; and at last she made this unhappy proposal
to meviz. that as we had observedas abovehow the men
made no scruple to set themselves out as persons meriting a
woman of fortunewhen they had really no fortune of their
ownit was but just to deal with them in their own way and
if it was possibleto deceive the deceiver.
The captain's ladyin shortput this project into my headand
told me if I would be ruled by her I should certainly get a
husband of fortunewithout leaving him any room to reproach
me with want of my own. I told heras I had reason to do
that I would give up myself wholly to her directionsand that
I would have neither tongue to speak nor feet to step in that
affair but as she should direct medepending that she would
extricate me out of every difficulty she brought me into
which she said she would answer for.
The first step she put me upon was to call her cousinand to
to a relation's house of hers in the countrywhere she directed
meand where she brought her husband to visit me; and calling
me cousinshe worked matters so aboutthat her husband
and she together invited me most passionately to come to town
and be with themfor they now live in a quite different place
from where they were before. In the next placeshe tells her
husband that I had at least #1500 fortuneand that after some
of my relations I was like to have a great deal more.
It was enough to tell her husband this; there needed nothing
on my side. I was but to sit still and wait the eventfor it
presently went all over the neighbourhood that the young
widow at Captain ----'s was a fortunethat she had at least
#1500and perhaps a great deal moreand that the captain
said so; and if the captain was asked at any timeabout me
he made no scruple to affirm itthough he knew not one word
of the matterother than that his wife had told him so; and in
this he thought no harmfor he really believed it to be so
because he had it from his wife: so slender a foundation will
those fellows build uponif they do but think there is a fortune
in the game. With the reputation of this fortuneI presently
found myself blessed with admirers enoughand that I had my
choice of menas scarce as they said they werewhichby the
wayconfirms what I was saying before. This being my case
Iwho had a subtle game to playhad nothing now to do but
to single out from them all the properest man that might be
for my purpose; that is to saythe man who was most likely
to depend upon the hearsay of a fortuneand not inquire too
far into the particulars; and unless I did this I did nothingfor
my case would not bear much inquiry.
I picked out my man without much difficultyby the judgment
I made of his way of courting me. I had let him run on with
his protestations and oaths that he loved me above all the world;
that if I would make him happythat was enough; all which I
knew was upon suppositionnayit was upon a full satisfaction
that I was very richthough I never told him a word of it myself.
This was my man; but I was to try him to the bottomand
indeed in that consisted my safety; for if he baulkedI knew I
was undoneas surely as he was undone if he took me; and
if I did not make some scruple about his fortuneit was the
way to lead him to raise some about mine; and firsttherefore
I pretended on all occasions to doubt his sincerityand told
himperhaps he only courted me for my fortune. He stopped
my mouth in that part with the thunder of his protestations
as abovebut still I pretended to doubt. 
One morning he pulls off his diamond ringand writes upon 
the glass of the sash in my chamber this line-
'You I loveand you alone.' 
I read itand asked him to lend me his ringwith which I wrote 
under itthus-
'And so in love says every one.' 
He takes his ring againand writes another line thus-
'Virtue alone is an estate.' 
I borrowed it againand I wrote under it-
'But money's virtuegold is fate.' 
He coloured as red as fire to see me turn so quick upon him
and in a kind of a rage told me he would conquer meand 
writes again thus-
'I scorn your goldand yet I love.' 
I ventured all upon the last cast of poetryas you'll seefor I 
wrote boldly under his last-
'I'm poor: let's see how kind you'll prove.' 
This was a sad truth to me; whether he believed me or noI 
could not tell; I supposed then that he did not. Howeverhe 
flew to metook me in his armsandkissing me very eagerly
and with the greatest passion imaginablehe held me fast till 
he called for a pen and inkand then told me he could not wait 
the tedious writing on the glassbutpulling out a piece of 
paperhe began and wrote again-
'Be minewith all your poverty.' 
I took his penand followed him immediatelythus-
'Yet secretly you hope I lie.' 
He told me that was unkindbecause it was not justand that 
I put him upon contradicting mewhich did not consist with 
good mannersany more than with his affection; and therefore
since I had insensibly drawn him into this poetical scribblehe 
begged I would not oblige him to break it off; so he writes 
again-
'Let love alone be our debate.' 
I wrote again-
'She loves enough that does not hate.' 
This he took for a favourand so laid down the cudgelsthat 
is to saythe pen; I sayhe took if for a favourand a mighty 
one it wasif he had known all. Howeverhe took it as I meant 
itthat isto let him think I was inclined to go on with himas 
indeed I had all the reason in the world to dofor he was the 
best-humouredmerry sort of a fellow that I ever met with
and I often reflected on myself how doubly criminal it was to 
deceive such a man; but that necessitywhich pressed me to 
a settlement suitable to my conditionwas my authority for it; 
and certainly his affection to meand the goodness of his temper
however they might argue against using him illyet they strongly 
argued to me that he would better take the disappointment 
than some fiery-tempered wretchwho might have nothing to 
recommend him but those passions which would serve only to 
make a woman miserable all her days. 
Besidesthough I jested with him (as he supposed it) so 
often about my povertyyetwhen he found it to be truehe 
had foreclosed all manner of objectionseeingwhether he 
was in jest or in earnesthe had declared he took me without 
any regard to my portionandwhether I was in jest or in 
earnestI had declared myself to be very poor; so thatin a 
wordI had him fast both ways; and though he might say 
afterwards he was cheatedyet he could never say that I had 
cheated him. 
He pursued me close after thisand as I saw there was no need 
to fear losing himI played the indifferent part with him longer 
than prudence might otherwise have dictated to me. But I 
considered how much this caution and indifference would give 
me the advantage over himwhen I should come to be under 
the necessity of owning my own circumstances to him; and I 
managed it the more warilybecause I found he inferred from 
thenceas indeed he ought to dothat I either had the more 
money or the more judgmentand would not venture at all. 
I took the freedom one dayafter we had talked pretty close 
to the subjectto tell him that it was true I had received the 
compliment of a lover from himnamelythat he would take 
me without inquiring into my fortuneand I would make him 
a suitable return in thisviz. that I would make as little inquiry 
into his as consisted with reasonbut I hoped he would allow 
me to ask a few questionswhich he would answer or not as 
he thought fit; and that I would not be offended if he did not 
answer me at all; one of these questions related to our manner 
of livingand the place wherebecause I had heard he had a 
great plantation in Virginiaand that he had talked of going 
to live thereand I told him I did not care to be transported. 
He began from this discourse to let me voluntarily into all 
his affairsand to tell me in a frankopen way all his 
circumstancesby which I found he was very well to pass in 
the world; but that great part of his estate consisted of three 
plantationswhich he had in Virginiawhich brought him in a 
very good incomegenerally speakingto the tune of #300a 
yearbut that if he was to live upon themwould bring him in 
four times as much. 'Very well' thought I; 'you shall carry 
me thither as soon as you pleasethough I won't tell you so 
beforehand.' 
I jested with him extremely about the figure he would make 
in Virginia; but I found he would do anything I desiredthough 
he did not seem glad to have me undervalue his plantations
so I turned my tale. I told him I had good reason not to go 
there to livebecause if his plantations were worth so much 
thereI had not a fortune suitable to a gentleman of #1200 a 
yearas he said his estate would be. 
He replied generouslyhe did not ask what my fortune was; 
he had told me from the beginning he would notand he would 
be as good as his word; but whatever it washe assured me he 
would never desire me to go to Virginia with himor go thither 
himself without meunless I was perfectly willingand made 
it my choice. 
All thisyou may be surewas as I wishedand indeed nothing 
could have happened more perfectly agreeable. I carried it on 
as far as this with a sort of indifferency that he often wondered 
atmore than at firstbut which was the only support of his 
courtship; and I mention it the rather to intimate again to the 
ladies that nothing but want of courage for such an indifferency 
makes our sex so cheapand prepares them to be ill-used as 
they are; would they venture the loss of a pretending fop now 
and thenwho carries it high upon the point of his own merit
they would certainly be less slightedand courted more. Had 
I discovered really and truly what my great fortune wasand 
that in all I had not full #500 when he expected #1500yet I 
had hooked him so fastand played him so longthat I was 
satisfied he would have had me in my worst circumstances; 
and indeed it was less a surprise to him when he learned the 
truth than it would have beenbecause having not the least 
blame to lay on mewho had carried it with an air of indifference 
to the lasthe would not say one wordexcept that indeed he 
thought it had been morebut that if it had been less he did 
not repent his bargain; only that he should not be able to 
maintain me so well as he intended. 
In shortwe were marriedand very happily married on my 
sideI assure youas to the man; for he was the best-humoured 
man that every woman hadbut his circumstances were not so 
good as I imaginedason the other handhe had not bettered 
himself by marrying so much as he expected. 
When we were marriedI was shrewdly put to it to bring him 
that little stock I hadand to let him see it was no more; but 
there was a necessity for itso I took my opportunity one day 
when we were aloneto enter into a short dialogue with him 
about it. 'My dear' said I'we have been married a fortnight; 
is it not time to let you know whether you have got a wife 
with something or with nothing?' 'Your own time for that
my dear' says he; 'I am satisfied that I have got the wife I 
love; I have not troubled you much' says he'with my inquiry 
after it.' 
'That's true' says I'but I have a great difficulty upon me 
about itwhich I scarce know how to manage.' 
'What's thatm dear?' says he. 
'Why' says I''tis a little hard upon meand 'tis harder upon 
you. I am told that Captain ----' (meaning my friend's husband) 
'has told you I had a great deal more money than I ever 
pretended to haveand I am sure I never employed him to do so.' 
'Well' says he'Captain ---- may have told me sobut what 
then? If you have not so muchthat may lie at his doorbut 
you never told me what you hadso I have no reason to blame 
you if you have nothing at all.' 
'That's is so just' said I'and so generousthat it makes my 
having but a little a double affliction to me.' 
'The less you havemy dear' says he'the worse for us both; 
but I hope your affliction you speak of is not caused for fear 
I should be unkind to youfor want of a portion. Nonoif 
you have nothingtell me plainlyand at once; I may perhaps 
tell the captain he has cheated mebut I can never say you 
have cheated mefor did you not give it under your hand that 
you were poor? and so I ought to expect you to be.' 
'Well' said I'my dearI am glad I have not been concerned 
in deceiving you before marriage. If I deceive you since'tis 
ne'er the worse; that I am poor is too truebut not so poor as 
to have nothing neither'; so I pulled out some bank billsand 
gave him about #160. 'There's somethingmy dear' said I
'and not quite all neither.' 
I had brought him so near to expecting nothingby what I had 
said beforethat the moneythough the sum was small in itself
was doubly welcome to him; he owned it was more than he 
looked forand that he did not question by my discourse to 
himbut that my fine clothesgold watchand a diamond ring 
or twohad been all my fortune. 
I let him please himself with that #160 two or three daysand 
thenhaving been abroad that dayand as if I had been to fetch 
itI brought him #100 more home in goldand told him there 
was a little more portion for him; andin shortin about a week 
more I brought him #180 moreand about #60 in linenwhich 
I made him believe I had been obliged to take with the #100 
which I gave him in goldas a composition for a debt of #600
being little more than five shillings in the poundand overvalued too. 
'And nowmy dear' says I to him'I am very sorry to tell you
that there is alland that I have given you my whole fortune.' 
I addedthat if the person who had my #600 had not abused 
meI had been worth #1000 to himbut that as it wasI had 
been faithful to himand reserved nothing to myselfbut if it 
had been more he should have had it. 
He was so obliged by the mannerand so pleased with the sum
for he had been in a terrible fright lest it had been nothing at 
allthat he accepted it very thankfully. And thus I got over 
the fraud of passing for a fortune without moneyand cheating 
a man into marrying me on pretence of a fortune; whichby 
the wayI take to be one of the most dangerous steps a woman 
can takeand in which she runs the most hazard of being 
ill-used afterwards. 
My husbandto give him his duewas a man of infinite good 
naturebut he was no fool; and finding his income not suited 
to the manner of living which he had intendedif I had brought 
him what he expectedand being under a disappointment in 
his return of his plantations in Virginiahe discovered many 
times his inclination of going over to Virginiato live upon 
his own; and often would be magnifying the way of living 
therehow cheaphow plentifulhow pleasantand the like. 
I began presently to understand this meaningand I took 
him up very plainly one morningand told him that I did so; 
that I found his estate turned to no account at this distance
compared to what it would do if he lived upon the spotand 
that I found he had a mind to go and live there; and I added
that I was sensible he had been disappointed in a wifeand 
that finding his expectations not answered that wayI could 
do no lessto make him amendsthan tell him that I was very 
willing to go over to Virginia with him and live there. 
He said a thousand kind things to me upon the subject of my 
making such a proposal to him. He told methat however 
he was disappointed in his expectations of a fortunehe was 
not disappointed in a wifeand that I was all to him that a 
wife could beand he was more than satisfied on the whole 
when the particulars were put togetherbut that this offer was 
so kindthat it was more than he could express. 
To bring the story shortwe agreed to go. He told me that he 
had a very good house therethat it was well furnishedthat 
his mother was alive and lived in itand one sisterwhich was 
all the relations he had; that as soon as he came therehis 
mother would remove to another housewhich was her own 
for lifeand his after her decease; so that I should have all the 
house to myself; and I found all this to be exactly as he had 
said. 
To make this part of the story shortwe put on board the ship 
which we went ina large quantity of good furniture for our 
housewith stores of linen and other necessariesand a good 
cargo for saleand away we went. 
To give an account of the manner of our voyagewhich was 
long and full of dangersis out of my way; I kept no journal
neither did my husband. All that I can say isthat after a 
terrible passagefrighted twice with dreadful stormsand once 
with what was still more terribleI mean a pirate who came 
on board and took away almost all our provisions; and which 
would have been beyond all to methey had once taken my 
husband to go along with thembut by entreaties were prevailed 
with to leave him;--I sayafter all these terrible thingswe 
arrived in York River in Virginiaand coming to our plantation
we were received with all the demonstrations of tenderness 
and affectionby my husband's motherthat were possible to 
be expressed. 
We lived here all togethermy mother-in-lawat my entreaty
continuing in the housefor she was too kind a mother to be 
parted with; my husband likewise continued the same as at 
firstand I thought myself the happiest creature alivewhen 
an odd and surprising event put an end to all that felicity in a 
momentand rendered my condition the most uncomfortable
if not the most miserablein the world. 
My mother was a mighty cheerfulgood-humoured old woman 
--I may call her old womanfor her son was above thirty; I 
say she was very pleasantgood companyand used to entertain 
mein particularwith abundance of stories to divert meas 
well of the country we were in as of the people. 
Among the restshe often told me how the greatest part of 
the inhabitants of the colony came thither in very indifferent 
circumstances from England; thatgenerally speakingthey 
were of two sorts; eitherfirstsuch as were brought over by 
masters of ships to be sold as servants. 'Such as we call them
my dear' says she'but they are more properly called slaves.' 
Orsecondlysuch as are transported from Newgate and other 
prisonsafter having been found guilty of felony and other 
crimes punishable with death. 
'When they come here' says she'we make no difference; the 
planters buy themand they work together in the field till 
their time is out. When 'tis expired' said she'they have 
encouragement given them to plant for themselves; for they 
have a certain number of acres of land allotted them by the 
countryand they go to work to clear and cure the landand 
then to plant it with tobacco and corn for their own use; and 
as the tradesmen and merchants will trust them with tools and 
clothes and other necessariesupon the credit of their crop 
before it is grownso they again plant every year a little more 
than the year beforeand so buy whatever they want with the 
crop that is before them. 
'Hencechild' says she'man a Newgate-bird becomes a great 
manand we have' continued she'several justices of the peace
officers of the trained bandsand magistrates of the towns they 
live inthat have been burnt in the hand.' 
She was going on with that part of the storywhen her own 
part in it interrupted herand with a great deal of good-humoured 
confidence she told me she was one of the second sort of 
inhabitants herself; that she came away openlyhaving ventured 
too far in a particular caseso that she was become a criminal. 
'And here's the mark of itchild' says she; andpulling off her 
glove'look ye here' says sheturning up the palm of her 
handand showed me a very fine white arm and handbut 
branded in the inside of the handas in such cases it must be. 
This story was very moving to mebut my mothersmiling
said'You need not thing a thing strangedaughterfor as I 
told yousome of the best men in this country are burnt in the 
handand they are not ashamed to own it. There's Major ----' 
says she'he was an eminent pickpocket; there's Justice Ba----r
was a shoplifterand both of them were burnt in the hand; and 
I could name you several such as they are.' 
We had frequent discourses of this kindand abundance of 
instances she gave me of the like. After some timeas she was 
telling some stories of one that was transported but a few 
weeks agoI began in an intimate kind of way to ask her to 
tell me something of her own storywhich she did with the 
utmost plainness and sincerity; how she had fallen into very ill 
company in London in her young daysoccasioned by her 
mother sending her frequently to carry victuals and other relief 
to a kinswoman of hers who was a prisoner in Newgateand 
who lay in a miserable starving conditionwas afterwards 
condemned to be hangedbut having got respite by pleading 
her bellydies afterwards in the prison. 
Here my mother-in-law ran out in a long account of the wicked 
practices in that dreadful placeand how it ruined more young 
people that all the town besides. 'And child' says my mother
'perhaps you may know little of itorit may behave heard 
nothing about it; but depend upon it' says she'we all know 
here that there are more thieves and rogues made by that one 
prison of Newgate than by all the clubs and societies of villains 
in the nation; 'tis that cursed place' says my mother'that half 
peopled this colony.' 
Here she went on with her own story so longand in so particular 
a mannerthat I began to be very uneasy; but coming to one 
particular that required telling her nameI thought I should 
have sunk down in the place. She perceived I was out of 
orderand asked me if I was not welland what ailed me. I 
told her I was so affected with the melancholy story she had 
toldand the terrible things she had gone throughthat it had 
overcome meand I begged of her to talk no more of it. 'Why
my dear' says she very kindly'what need these things trouble 
you? These passages were long before your timeand they 
give me no trouble at all now; nayI look back on them with 
a particular satisfactionas they have been a means to bring 
me to this place.' Then she went on to tell me how she very 
luckily fell into a good familywherebehaving herself well
and her mistress dyingher master married herby whom she 
had my husband and his sisterand that by her diligence and 
good management after her husband's deathshe had improved 
the plantations to such a degree as they then wereso that most 
of the estate was of her gettingnot her husband'sfor she had 
been a widow upwards of sixteen years. 
I heard this part of they story with very little attentionbecause 
I wanted much to retire and give vent to my passionswhich 
I did soon after; and let any one judge what must be the anguish 
of my mindwhen I came to reflect that this was certainly no 
more or less than my own motherand I had now had two 
childrenand was big with another by my own brotherand 
lay with him still every night. 
I was now the most unhappy of all women in the world. Oh! 
had the story never been told meall had been well; it had been 
no crime to have lain with my husbandsince as to his being 
my relation I had known nothing of it. 
I had now such a load on my mind that it kept me perpetually 
waking; to reveal itwhich would have been some ease to me
I could not find would be to any purposeand yet to conceal 
it would be next to impossible; nayI did not doubt but I should 
talk of it in my sleepand tell my husband of it whether I would 
or no. If I discovered itthe least thing I could expect was to 
lose my husbandfor he was too nice and too honest a man 
to have continued my husband after he had known I had been 
his sister; so that I was perplexed to the last degree. 
I leave it to any man to judge what difficulties presented to 
my view. I was away from my native countryat a distance 
prodigiousand the return to me unpassable. I lived very well
but in a circumstance insufferable in itself. If I had discovered 
myself to my motherit might be difficult to convince her of 
the particularsand I had no way to prove them. On the other 
handif she had questioned or doubted meI had been undone
for the bare suggestion would have immediately separated me 
from my husbandwithout gaining my mother or himwho 
would have been neither a husband nor a brother; so that 
between the surprise on one handand the uncertainty on the 
otherI had been sure to be undone. 
In the meantimeas I was but too sure of the factI lived 
therefore in open avowed incest and whoredomand all under 
the appearance of an honest wife; and though I was not much 
touched with the crime of ityet the action had something in 
it shocking to natureand made my husbandas he thought 
himselfeven nauseous to me. 
Howeverupon the most sedate considerationI resolved that 
it was absolutely necessary to conceal it all and not make the 
least discovery of it either to mother or husband; and thus I 
lived with the greatest pressure imaginable for three years 
morebut had no more children. 
During this time my mother used to be frequently telling me 
old stories of her former adventureswhichhoweverwere 
no ways pleasant to me; for by itthough she did not tell it me 
in plain termsyet I could easily understandjoined with what 
I had heard myselfof my first tutorsthat in her younger days 
she had been both whore and thief; but I verily believed she 
had lived to repent sincerely of bothand that she was then a 
very pioussoberand religious woman. 
Welllet her life have been what it would thenit was certain 
that my life was very uneasy to me; for I livedas I have said
but in the worst sort of whoredomand as I could expect no 
good of itso really no good issue came of itand all my 
seeming prosperity wore offand ended in misery and 
destruction. It was some timeindeedbefore it came to this
forbut I know not by what ill fate guidedeverything went 
wrong with us afterwardsand that which was worsemy 
husband grew strangely alteredforwardjealousand unkind
and I was as impatient of bearing his carriageas the carriage 
was unreasonable and unjust. These things proceeded so far
that we came at last to be in such ill terms with one another
that I claimed a promise of himwhich he entered willingly 
into with me when I consented to come from England with 
himviz. that if I found the country not to agree with meor 
that I did not like to live thereI should come away to England 
again when I pleasedgiving him a year's warning to settle 
his affairs. 
I sayI now claimed this promise of himand I must confess 
I did it not in the most obliging terms that could be in the 
world neither; but I insisted that he treated me illthat I was 
remote from my friendsand could do myself no justiceand 
that he was jealous without causemy conversation having 
been unblamableand he having no pretense for itand that to 
remove to England would take away all occasion from him. 
I insisted so peremptorily upon itthat he could not avoid 
coming to a pointeither to keep his word with me or to break 
it; and thisnotwithstanding he used all the skill he was master 
ofand employed his mother and other agents to prevail with 
me to alter my resolutions; indeedthe bottom of the thing lay 
at my heartand that made all his endeavours fruitlessfor my 
heart was alienated from him as a husband. I loathed the 
thoughts of bedding with himand used a thousand pretenses 
of illness and humour to prevent his touching mefearing 
nothing more than to be with child by himwhich to be sure 
would have preventedor at least delayedmy going over to 
England. 
Howeverat last I put him so out of humourthat he took up 
a rash and fatal resolution; in shortI should not go to England; 
and though he had promised meyet it was an unreasonable 
thing for me to desire it; that it would be ruinous to his affairs
would unhinge his whole familyand be next to an undoing 
him in the world; that therefore I ought not to desire it of him
and that no wife in the world that valued her family and her 
husband's prosperity would insist upon such a thing. 
This plunged me againfor when I considered the thing 
calmlyand took my husband as he really wasa diligent
careful man in the main work of laying up an estate for his 
childrenand that he knew nothing of the dreadful circumstances 
that he was inI could not but confess to myself that my 
proposal was very unreasonableand what no wife that had 
the good of her family at heart would have desired. 
But my discontents were of another nature; I looked upon him 
no longer as a husbandbut as a near relationthe son of my 
own motherand I resolved somehow or other to be clear of 
himbut which way I did not knownor did it seem possible. 
It is said by the ill-natured worldof our sexthat if we are 
set on a thingit is impossible to turn us from our resolutions; 
in shortI never ceased poring upon the means to bring to 
pass my voyageand came that length with my husband at last
as to propose going without him. This provoked him to the 
last degreeand he called me not only an unkind wifebut an 
unnatural motherand asked me how I could entertain such a 
thought without horroras that of leaving my two children 
(for one was dead) without a motherand to be brought up by 
strangersand never to see them more. It was truehad things 
been rightI should not have done itbut now it was my real 
desire never to see themor him eitherany more; and as to the 
charge of unnaturalI could easily answer it to myselfwhile 
I knew that the whole relation was unnatural in the highest 
degree in the world. 
Howeverit was plain there was no bringing my husband to 
anything; he would neither go with me nor let me go without 
himand it was quite out of my power to stir without his 
consentas any one that knows the constitution of the country 
I was inknows very well. 
We had many family quarrels about itand they began in 
time to grow up to a dangerous height; for as I was quite 
estranged form my husband (as he was called) in affectionso 
I took no heed to my wordsbut sometimes gave him language 
that was provoking; andin shortstrove all I could to bring 
him to a parting with mewhich was what above all things in 
the world I desired most. 
He took my carriage very illand indeed he might well do so
for at last I refused to bed with himand carrying on the breach 
upon all occasions to extremityhe told me once he thought I 
was madand if I did not alter my conducthe would put me 
under cure; that is to sayinto a madhouse. I told him he 
should find I was far enough from madand that it was not in 
his poweror any other villain'sto murder me. I confess at 
the same time I was heartily frighted at his thoughts of putting 
me into a madhousewhich would at once have destroyed all 
the possibility of breaking the truth outwhatever the occasion 
might be; for that then no one would have given credit to a 
word of it. 
This therefore brought me to a resolutionwhatever came of 
itto lay open my whole case; but which way to do itor to 
whomwas an inextricable difficultyand took me many months 
to resolve. In the meantimeanother quarrel with my husband 
happenedwhich came up to such a mad extreme as almost 
pushed me on to tell it him all to his face; but though I kept it 
in so as not to come to the particularsI spoke so much as put 
him into the utmost confusionand in the end brought out the 
whole story. 
He began with a calm expostulation upon my being so resolute 
to go to England; I defended itand one hard word bringing 
on anotheras is usual in all family strifehe told me I did not 
treat him as if he was my husbandor talk of my children as if 
I was a mother; andin shortthat I did not deserve to be used 
as a wife; that he had used all the fair means possible with me; 
that he had argued with all the kindness and calmness that a 
husband or a Christian ought to doand that I made him such
a vile returnthat I treated him rather like a dog than a man
and rather like the most contemptible stranger than a husband;
that he was very loth to use violence with mebut thatin short
he saw a necessity of it nowand that for the future he should
be obliged to take such measures as should reduce me to my
duty.
My blood was now fired to the utmostthough I knew what
he had said was very trueand nothing could appear more
provoked. I told himfor his fair means and his foulthey
were equally contemned by me; that for my going to England
I was resolved on itcome what would; and that as to treating
him not like a husbandand not showing myself a mother to
my childrenthere might be something more in it than he
understood at present; butfor his further considerationI
thought fit to tell him thus muchthat he neither was my lawful
husbandnor they lawful childrenand that I had reason to
regard neither of them more than I did.
I confess I was moved to pity him when I spoke itfor he
turned pale as deathand stood mute as one thunderstruck
and once or twice I thought he would have fainted; in short
it put him in a fit something like an apoplex; he trembleda
sweat or dew ran off his faceand yet he was cold as a clod
so that I was forced to run and fetch something for him to
keep life in him. When he recovered of thathe grew sick and
vomitedand in a little after was put to bedand the next
morning wasas he had been indeed all nightin a violent fever.
Howeverit went off againand he recoveredthough but
slowlyand when he came to be a little betterhe told me I
had given him a mortal wound with my tongueand he had
only one thing to ask before he desired an explanation. I
interrupted himand told him I was sorry I had gone so far
since I saw what disorder it put him intobut I desired him
not to talk to me of explanationsfor that would but make
things worse.
This heightened his impatienceandindeedperplexed him
beyond all bearing; for now he began to suspect that there
was some mystery yet unfoldedbut could not make the least
guess at the real particulars of it; all that ran in his brain was
that I had another husband alivewhich I could not say in fact
might not be truebut I assured himhoweverthere was not
the least of that in it; and indeedas to my other husbandhe
was effectually dead in law to meand had told me I should
look on him as suchso I had not the least uneasiness on that
score.
But now I found the thing too far gone to conceal it much
longerand my husband himself gave me an opportunity to
ease myself of the secretmuch to my satisfaction. He had
laboured with me three or four weeksbut to no purposeonly
to tell him whether I had spoken these words only as the effect
of my passionto put him in a passionor whether there was
anything of truth in the bottom of them. But I continued
inflexibleand would explain nothingunless he would first
consent to my going to Englandwhich he would never do
he saidwhile he lived; on the other handI said it was in my
power to make him willing when I pleased--nayto make him
entreat me to go; and this increased his curiosityand made him
importunate to the highest degreebut it was all to no purpose.
At length he tells all this story to his motherand sets her upon 
me to get the main secret out of meand she used her utmost 
skill with me indeed; but I put her to a full stop at once by 
telling her that the reason and mystery of the whole matter lay 
in herselfand that it was my respect to her that had made me 
conceal it; and thatin shortI could go no fartherand therefore 
conjured her not to insist upon it. 
She was struck dumb at this suggestionand could not tell 
what to say or to think; butlaying aside the supposition as a 
policy of minecontinued her importunity on account of her 
sonandif possibleto make up the breach between us two. 
As to thatI told her that it was indeed a good design in her
but that it was impossible to be done; and that if I should reveal 
to her the truth of what she desiredshe would grant it to be 
impossibleand cease to desire it. At last I seemed to be 
prevailed on by her importunityand told her I dared trust her 
with a secret of the greatest importanceand she would soon 
see that this was soand that I would consent to lodge it in 
her breastif she would engage solemnly not to acquaint her 
son with it without my consent. 
She was long in promising this partbut rather than not come 
at the main secretshe agreed to that tooand after a great 
many other preliminariesI beganand told her the whole story. 
First I told her how much she was concerned in all the unhappy 
breach which had happened between her son and meby telling 
me her own story and her London name; and that the surprise 
she saw I was in was upon that occasion. The I told her my 
own storyand my nameand assured herby such other tokens 
as she could not denythat I was no othernor more or less
than her own childher daughterborn of her body in Newgate; 
the same that had saved her from the gallows by being in her 
bellyand the same that she left in such-and-such hands when 
she was transported. 
It is impossible to express the astonishment she was in; she 
was not inclined to believe the storyor to remember the 
particularsfor she immediately foresaw the confusion that 
must follow in the family upon it. But everything concurred 
so exactly with the stories she had told me of herselfand which
if she had not told meshe would perhaps have been content 
to have deniedthat she had stopped her own mouthand she 
had nothing to do but to take me about the neck and kiss me
and cry most vehemently over mewithout speaking one word 
for a long time together. At last she broke out: 'Unhappy child!' 
says she'what miserable chance could bring thee hither? and 
in the arms of my own sontoo! Dreadful girl' says she'why
we are all undone! Married to thy own brother! Three children
and two aliveall of the same flesh and blood! My son and my 
daughter lying together as husband and wife! All confusion 
and distraction for ever! Miserable family! what will become 
of us? What is to be said? What is to be done?' And thus she 
ran on for a great while; nor had I any power to speakor if 
I haddid I know what to sayfor every word wounded me to 
the soul. With this kind of amazement on our thoughts we 
parted for the first timethough my mother was more surprised 
than I wasbecause it was more news to her than to me. 
Howevershe promised again to me at partingthat she would 
say nothing of it to her sontill we had talked of it again. 
It was not longyou may be surebefore we had a second 
conference upon the same subject; whenas if she had been 
willing to forget the story she had told me of herselfor to 
suppose that I had forgot some of the particularsshe began 
to tell them with alterations and omissions; but I refreshed her 
memory and set her to rights in many things which I supposed 
she had forgotand then came in so opportunely with the 
whole historythat it was impossible for her to go from it; and 
then she fell into her rhapsodies againand exclamations at the 
severity of her misfortunes. When these things were a little 
over with herwe fell into a close debate about what should 
be first done before we gave an account of the matter to my 
husband. But to what purpose could be all our consultations? 
We could neither of us see our way through itnor see how it 
could be safe to open such a scene to him. It was impossible 
to make any judgmentor give any guess at what temper he 
would receive it inor what measures he would take upon it; 
and if he should have so little government of himself as to make 
it publicwe easily foresaw that it would be the ruin of the 
whole familyand expose my mother and me to the last degree; 
and if at last he should take the advantage the law would give 
himhe might put me away with disdain and leave me to sue 
for the little portion that I hadand perhaps waste it all in the 
suitand then be a beggar; the children would be ruined too
having no legal claim to any of his effects; and thus I should 
see himperhapsin the arms of another wife in a few months
and be myself the most miserable creature alive. 
My mother was as sensible of this as I; andupon the whole
we knew not what to do. After some time we came to more 
sober resolutionsbut then it was with this misfortune toothat 
my mother's opinion and mine were quite different from one 
anotherand indeed inconsistent with one another; for my 
mother's opinion wasthat I should bury the whole thing 
entirelyand continue to live with him as my husband till some 
other event should make the discovery of it more convenient; 
and that in the meantime she would endeavour to reconcile us 
together againand restore our mutual comfort and family 
peace; that we might lie as we used to do togetherand so let 
the whole matter remain a secret as close as death. 'Forchild' 
says she'we are both undone if it comes out.' 
To encourage me to thisshe promised to make me easy in my 
circumstancesas far as she was ableand to leave me what 
she could at her deathsecured for me separately from my 
husband; so that if it should come out afterwardsI should not 
be left destitutebut be able to stand on my own feet and 
procure justice from him. 
This proposal did not agree at all with my judgment of the 
thingthough it was very fair and kind in my mother; but my 
thoughts ran quite another way. 
As to keeping the thing in our own breastsand letting it all 
remain as it wasI told her it was impossible; and I asked her 
how she could think I could bear the thoughts of lying with 
my own brother. In the next placeI told her that her being 
alive was the only support of the discoveryand that while she 
owned me for her childand saw reason to be satisfied that I 
was sonobody else would doubt it; but that if she should die 
before the discoveryI should be taken for an impudent creature 
that had forged such a thing to go away from my husbandor 
should be counted crazed and distracted. Then I told her how 
he had threatened already to put me into a madhouseand what 
concern I had been in about itand how that was the thing that 
drove me to the necessity of discovering it to her as I had done. 
From all which I told herthat I hadon the most serious 
reflections I was able to make in the casecome to this resolution
which I hoped she would likeas a medium between bothviz. 
that she should use her endeavours with her son to give me 
leave to go to Englandas I had desiredand to furnish me with 
a sufficient sum of moneyeither in goods along with meor 
in bills for my support thereall along suggesting that he might 
one time or other think it proper to come over to me. 
That when I was goneshe should thenin cold bloodand 
after first obliging him in the solemnest manner possible to 
secrecydiscover the case to himdoing it graduallyand as 
her own discretion should guide herso that he might not be 
surprised with itand fly out into any passions and excesses 
on my accountor on hers; and that she should concern herself 
to prevent his slighting the childrenor marrying againunless 
he had a certain account of my being dead. 
This was my schemeand my reasons were good; I was really 
alienated from him in the consequences of these things; indeed
I mortally hated him as a husbandand it was impossible to 
remove that riveted aversion I had to him. At the same time
it being an unlawfulincestuous livingadded to that aversion
and though I had no great concern about it in point of 
conscienceyet everything added to make cohabiting with him 
the most nauseous thing to me in the world; and I think verily 
it was come to such a heightthat I could almost as willingly 
have embraced a dog as have let him offer anything of that 
kind to mefor which reason I could not bear the thoughts of 
coming between the sheets with him. I cannot say that I was 
right in point of policy in carrying it such a lengthwhile at the 
same time I did not resolve to discover the thing to him; but I 
am giving an account of what wasnot of what ought or ought 
not to be. 
In their directly opposite opinion to one another my mother 
and I continued a long timeand it was impossible to reconcile 
our judgments; many disputes we had about itbut we could 
never either of us yield our ownor bring over the other. 
I insisted on my aversion to lying with my own brotherand 
she insisted upon its being impossible to bring him to consent 
to my going from him to England; and in this uncertainty we 
continuednot differing so as to quarrelor anything like it
but so as not to be able to resolve what we should do to make 
up that terrible breach that was before us. 
At last I resolved on a desperate courseand told my mother 
my resolutionviz. thatin shortI would tell him of it myself. 
My mother was frighted to the last degree at the very thoughts 
of it; but I bid her be easytold her I would do it gradually 
and softlyand with all the art and good-humour I was mistress 
ofand time it also as well as I couldtaking him in good-humour 
too. I told her I did not question butif I could be hypocrite 
enough to feign more affection to him than I really hadI should 
succeed in all my designand we might part by consentand 
with a good agreementfor I might live him well enough for 
a brotherthough I could not for a husband. 
All this while he lay at my mother to find outif possiblewhat 
was the meaning of that dreadful expression of mineas he 
called itwhich I mentioned before: namelythat I was not his 
lawful wifenor my children his legal children. My mother put 
him offtold him she could bring me to no explanationsbut 
found there was something that disturbed me very muchand 
she hoped she should get it out of me in timeand in the 
meantime recommended to him earnestly to use me more 
tenderlyand win me with his usual good carriage; told him 
of his terrifying and affrighting me with his threats of sending 
me to a madhouseand the likeand advised him not to make 
a woman desperate on any account whatever. 
He promised her to soften his behaviourand bid her assure 
me that he loved me as well as everand that he had so such 
design as that of sending me to a madhousewhatever he might 
say in his passion; also he desired my mother to use the same 
persuasions to me toothat our affections might be renewed
and we might lie together in a good understanding as we used 
to do. 
I found the effects of this treaty presently. My husband's 
conduct was immediately alteredand he was quite another 
man to me; nothing could be kinder and more obliging than he 
was to me upon all occasions; and I could do no less than 
make some return to itwhich I did as well as I couldbut it 
was but in an awkward manner at bestfor nothing was more 
frightful to me than his caressesand the apprehensions of being 
with child again by him was ready to throw me into fits; and 
this made me see that there was an absolute necessity of breaking 
the case to him without any more delaywhichhoweverI did 
with all the caution and reserve imaginable. 
He had continued his altered carriage to me near a month
and we began to live a new kind of life with one another; and 
could I have satisfied myself to have gone on with itI believe 
it might have continued as long as we had continued alive 
together. One eveningas we were sitting and talking very 
friendly together under a little awningwhich served as an 
arbour at the entrance from our house into the gardenhe was 
in a very pleasantagreeable humourand said abundance of 
kind things to me relating to the pleasure of our present good 
agreementand the disorders of our past breachand what a 
satisfaction it was to him that we had room to hope we should 
never have any more of it. 
I fetched a deep sighand told him there was nobody in the 
world could be more delighted than I was in the good agreement 
we had always kept upor more afflicted with the breach of it
and should be so still; but I was sorry to tell him that there was 
an unhappy circumstance in our casewhich lay too close to 
my heartand which I knew not how to break to himthat 
rendered my part of it very miserableand took from me all the 
comfort of the rest. 
He importuned me to tell him what it was. I told him I could 
not tell how to do it; that while it was concealed from him 
I alone was unhappybut if he knew it alsowe should be both 
so; and thatthereforeto keep him in the dark about it was 
the kindest thing that I could doand it was on that account 
alone that I kept a secret from himthe very keeping of which
I thoughtwould first or last be my destruction. 
It is impossible to express his surprise at this relationand the 
double importunity which he used with me to discover it to him. 
He told me I could not be called kind to himnayI could not 
be faithful to him if I concealed it from him. I told him I thought 
so tooand yet I could not do it. He went back to what I had 
said before to himand told me he hoped it did not relate to 
what I had said in my passionand that he had resolved to
forget all that as the effect of a rashprovoked spirit. I told
him I wished I could forget it all toobut that it was not to be
donethe impression was too deepand I could not do it: it
was impossible.
He then told me he was resolved not to differ with me in
anythingand that therefore he would importune me no more
about itresolving to acquiesce in whatever I did or said; only
begged I should then agreethat whatever it wasit should no
more interrupt our quiet and our mutual kindness.
This was the most provoking thing he could have said to me
for I really wanted his further importunitiesthat I might be
prevailed with to bring out that which indeed it was like death
to me to conceal; so I answered him plainly that I could not
say I was glad not to be importunedthought I could not tell
how to comply. 'But comemy dear' said I'what conditions
will you make with me upon the opening this affair to you?'
'Any conditions in the world' said he'that you can in reason
desire of me.' 'Well' said I'comegive it me under your
handthat if you do not find I am in any faultor that I am
willingly concerned in the causes of the misfortune that is to
followyou will not blame meuse me the worsedo my any
injuryor make me be the sufferer for that which is not my fault.'
'That' says he'is the most reasonable demand in the world:
not to blame you for that which is not your fault. Give me a
pen and ink' says he; so I ran in and fetched a peninkand
paperand he wrote the condition down in the very words I
had proposed itand signed it with his name. "Well' says he
'what is nextmy dear?'
'Why' says I'the next isthat you will not blame me for not
discovering the secret of it to you before I knew it.'
'Very just again' says he; 'with all my heart'; so he wrote
down that alsoand signed it.
'Wellmy dear' says I'then I have but one condition more
to make with youand that isthat as there is nobody concerned
in it but you and Iyou shall not discover it to any person in
the worldexcept your own mother; and that in all the measures
you shall take upon the discoveryas I am equally concerned
in it with youthough as innocent as yourselfyou shall do
nothing in a passionnothing to my prejudice or to your
mother's prejudicewithout my knowledge and consent.'
This a little amazed himand he wrote down the words distinctly
but read them over and over before he signed them
hesitating at them several timesand repeating them: "My
mother's prejudice! and your prejudice! What mysterious thing
can this be?' Howeverat last he signed it.
'Wellsays I'my dearI'll ask you no more under your hand;
but as you are to hear the most unexpected and surprising thing
that perhaps ever befell any family in the worldI beg you to
promise me you will receive it with composure and a presence
of mind suitable to a man of sense.'
'I'll do my utmost' says he'upon condition you will keep me
no longer in suspensefor you terrify me with all these
preliminaries.'
Well, then,' says I, 'it is this: as I told you before in a heat, 
that I was not your lawful wife, and that our children were not 
legal children, so I must let you know now in calmness and in 
kindness, but with affliction enough, that I am your own sister, 
and you my own brother, and that we are both the children of 
our mother now alive, and in the house, who is convinced of 
the truth of it, in a manner not to be denied or contradicted.' 
I saw him turn pale and look wild; and I said, 'Now remember 
your promise, and receive it with presence of mind; for who 
could have said more to prepare you for it than I have done? 
However, I called a servant, and got him a little glass of rum 
(which is the usual dram of that country), for he was just 
fainting away. When he was a little recovered, I said to him, 
'This story, you may be sure, requires a long explanation, and 
therefore, have patience and compose your mind to hear it out, 
and I'll make it as short as I can'; and with this, I told him 
what I thought was needful of the fact, and particularly how 
my mother came to discover it to me, as above. 'And now, 
my dear,' says I, 'you will see reason for my capitulations, 
and that I neither have been the cause of this matter, nor could 
be so, and that I could know nothing of it before now.' 
'I am fully satisfied of that,' says he, 'but 'tis a dreadful surprise 
to me; however, I know a remedy for it all, and a remedy 
that shall put an end to your difficulties, without your going to 
England.' 'That would be strange,' said I, 'as all the rest.' 
'No, no,' says he, 'I'll make it easy; there's nobody in the way 
of it but myself.' He looked a little disordered when he said 
this, but I did not apprehend anything from it at that time, 
believing, as it used to be said, that they who do those things 
never talk of them, or that they who talk of such things never 
do them. 
But things were not come to their height with him, and I 
observed he became pensive and melancholy; and in a word, 
as I thought, a little distempered in his head. I endeavoured 
to talk him into temper, and to reason him into a kind of scheme 
for our government in the affair, and sometimes he would be 
well, and talk with some courage about it; but the weight of 
it lay too heavy upon his thoughts, and, in short, it went so far 
that he made attempts upon himself, and in one of them had 
actually strangled himself and had not his mother come into 
the room in the very moment, he had died; but with the help 
of a Negro servant she cut him down and recovered him. 
Things were now come to a lamentable height in the family. 
My pity for him now began to revive that affection which at 
first I really had for him, and I endeavoured sincerely, by all 
the kind carriage I could, to make up the breach; but, in short, 
it had gotten too great a head, it preyed upon his spirits, and 
it threw him into a long, lingering consumption, though it 
happened not to be mortal. In this distress I did not know 
what to do, as his life was apparently declining, and I might 
perhaps have married again there, very much to my advantage; 
it had been certainly my business to have stayed in the country, 
but my mind was restless too, and uneasy; I hankered after 
coming to England, and nothing would satisfy me without it. 
In short, by an unwearied importunity, my husband, who was 
apparently decaying, as I observed, was at last prevailed with; 
and so my own fate pushing me on, the way was made clear 
for me, and my mother concurring, I obtained a very good 
cargo for my coming to England. 
When I parted with my brother (for such I am now to call 
him), we agreed that after I arrived he should pretend to have 
an account that I was dead in England, and so might marry 
again when he would. He promised, and engaged to me to 
correspond with me as a sister, and to assist and support me 
as long as I lived; and that if he died before me, he would leave 
sufficient to his mother to take care of me still, in the name of 
asister, and he was in some respects careful of me, when he 
heard of me; but it was so oddly managed that I felt the 
disappointments very sensibly afterwards, as you shall hear in 
its time. 
I came away for England in the month of August, after I had 
been eight years in that country; and now a new scene of 
misfortunes attended me, which perhaps few women have 
gone through the life of. 
We had an indifferent good voyage till we came just upon the 
coast of England, and where we arrived in two-and-thirty days, 
but were then ruffled with two or three storms, one of which 
drove us away to the coast of Ireland, and we put in at Kinsdale. 
We remained there about thirteen days, got some refreshment 
on shore, and put to sea again, though we met with very bad 
weather again, in which the ship sprung her mainmast, as they 
called it, for I knew not what they meant. But we got at last 
into Milford Haven, in Wales, where, though it was remote 
from our port, yet having my foot safe upon the firm ground 
of my native country, the isle of Britain, I resolved to venture 
it no more upon the waters, which had been so terrible to me; 
so getting my clothes and money on shore, with my bills of 
loading and other papers, I resolved to come for London, and 
leave the ship to get to her port as she could; the port whither 
she was bound was to Bristol, where my brother's chief 
correspondent lived. 
I got to London in about three weeks, where I heard a little 
while after that the ship was arrived in Bristol, but at the same 
time had the misfortune to know that by the violent weather 
she had been in, and the breaking of her mainmast, she had 
great damage on board, and that a great part of her cargo was 
spoiled. 
I had now a new scene of life upon my hands, and a dreadful 
appearance it had. I was come away with a kind of final 
farewell. What I brought with me was indeed considerable, 
had it come safe, and by the help of it, I might have married 
again tolerably well; but as it was, I was reduced to between 
two or three hundred pounds in the whole, and this without 
any hope of recruit. I was entirely without friends, nay, even 
so much as without acquaintance, for I found it was absolutely 
necessary not to revive former acquaintances; and as for my 
subtle friend that set me up formerly for a fortune, she was 
dead, and her husband also; as I was informed, upon sending 
a person unknown to inquire. 
The looking after my cargo of goods soon after obliged me to 
take a journey to Bristol, and during my attendance upon that 
affair I took the diversion of going to the Bath, for as I was 
still far from being old, so my humour, which was always gay, 
continued so to an extreme; and being now, as it were, a 
woman of fortune though I was a woman without a fortune, 
I expected something or other might happen in my way that 
might mend my circumstances, as had been my case before. 
The Bath is a place of gallantry enough; expensive, and full 
of snares. I went thither, indeed, in the view of taking anything 
that might offer, but I must do myself justice, as to protest I 
knew nothing amiss; I meant nothing but in an honest way, nor 
had I any thoughts about me at first that looked the way which 
afterwards I suffered them to be guided. 
Here I stayed the whole latter season, as it is called there, 
and contracted some unhappy acquaintances, which rather 
prompted the follies I fell afterwards into than fortified me 
against them. I lived pleasantly enough, kept good company, 
that is to say, gay, fine company; but had the discouragement 
to find this way of living sunk me exceedingly, and that as I 
had no settled income, so spending upon the main stock was 
but a certain kind of bleeding to death; and this gave me many 
sad reflections in the interval of my other thoughts. However, 
I shook them off, and still flattered myself that something or 
other might offer for my advantage. 
But I was in the wrong place for it. I was not now at Redriff, 
where, if I had set myself tolerably up, some honest sea captain 
or other might have talked with me upon the honourable terms 
of matrimony; but I was at the Bath, where men find a mistress 
sometimes, but very rarely look for a wife; and consequently 
all the particular acquaintances a woman can expect to make 
there must have some tendency that way. 
I had spent the first season well enough; for though I had 
contracted some acquaintance with a gentleman who came to 
the Bath for his diversion, yet I had entered into no felonious 
treaty, as it might be called. I had resisted some casual offers 
of gallantry, and had managed that way well enough. I was 
not wicked enough to come into the crime for the mere vice 
of it, and I had no extraordinary offers made me that tempted 
me with the main thing which I wanted. 
However, I went this length the first season, viz. I contracted 
an acquaintance with a woman in whose house I lodged, who, 
though she did not keep an ill house, as we call it, yet had none 
of the best principles in herself. I had on all occasions behaved 
myself so well as not to get the least slur upon my reputation 
on any account whatever, and all the men that I had conversed 
with were of so good reputation that I had not given the least 
reflection by conversing with them; nor did any of them seem 
to think there was room for a wicked correspondence, if they 
had any of them offered it; yet there was one gentleman, as 
above, who always singled me out for the diversion of my 
company, as he called it, which, as he was pleased to say, was 
very agreeable to him, but at that time there was no more in it. 
I had many melancholy hours at the Bath after the company 
was gone; for though I went to Bristol sometime for the 
disposing my effects, and for recruits of money, yet I chose to 
come back to Bath for my residence, because being on good 
terms with the woman in whose house I lodged in the summer, 
I found that during the winter I lived rather cheaper there than 
I could do anywhere else. Here, I say, I passed the winter as 
heavily as I had passed the autumn cheerfully; but having 
contracted a nearer intimacy with the said woman in whose 
house I lodged, I could not avoid communicating to her 
something of what lay hardest upon my mind and particularly 
the narrowness of my circumstances, and the loss of my fortune 
by the damage of my goods at sea. I told her also, that I had 
a mother and a brother in Virginia in good circumstances; and 
as I had really written back to my mother in particular to 
represent my condition, and the great loss I had received, 
which indeed came to almost #500, so I did not fail to let my 
new friend know that I expected a supply from thence, and so 
indeed I did; and as the ships went from Bristol to York River, 
in Virginia, and back again generally in less time from London, 
and that my brother corresponded chiefly at Bristol, I thought 
it was much better for me to wait here for my returns than to 
go to London, where also I had not the least acquaintance. 
My new friend appeared sensibly affected with my condition, 
and indeed was so very kind as to reduce the rate of my living 
with her to so low a price during the winter, that she convinced 
me she got nothing by me; and as for lodging, during the winter 
I paid nothing at all. 
When the spring season came on, she continued to be as king 
to me as she could, and I lodged with her for a time, till it was 
found necessary to do otherwise. She had some persons of 
character that frequently lodged in her house, and in particular 
the gentleman who, as I said, singled me out for his companion 
the winter before; and he came down again with another 
gentleman in his company and two servants, and lodged in the 
same house. I suspected that my landlady had invited him 
thither, letting him know that I was still with her; but she denied 
it, and protested to me that she did not, and he said the same. 
In a word, this gentleman came down and continued to single 
me out for his peculiar confidence as well as conversation. 
He was a complete gentleman, that must be confessed, and 
his company was very agreeable to me, as mine, if I might 
believe him, was to him. He made no professions to be but 
of an extraordinary respect, and he had such an opinion of my 
virtue, that, as he often professed, he believed if he should offer 
anything else, I should reject him with contempt. He soon 
understood from me that I was a widow; that I had arrived at 
Bristol from Virginia by the last ships; and that I waited at Bath 
till the next Virginia fleet should arrive, by which I expected 
considerable effects. I understood by him, and by others of 
him, that he had a wife, but that the lady was distempered in 
her head, and was under the conduct of her own relations, 
which he consented to, to avoid any reflections that might (as 
was not unusual in such cases) be cast on him for mismanaging 
her cure; and in the meantime he came to the Bath to divert his 
thoughts from the disturbance of such a melancholy circumstance 
as that was. 
My landlady, who of her own accord encouraged the 
correspondence on all occasions, gave me an advantageous
 character of him, as a man of honour and of virtue, as well 
as of great estate. And indeed I had a great deal of reason to 
say so of him too; for though we lodged both on a floor, and 
he had frequently come into my chamber, even when I was in 
bed, and I also into his when he was in bed, yet he never offered 
anything to me further than a kiss, or so much as solicited me 
to anything till long after, as you shall hear. 
I frequently took notice to my landlady of his exceeding 
modesty, and she again used to tell me, she believed it was so 
from the beginning; however, she used to tell me that she 
thought I ought to expect some gratification from him for my 
company, for indeed he did, as it were, engross me, and I was 
seldom from him. I told her I had not given him the least 
occasion to think I wanted it, or that I would accept of it from 
him. She told me she would take that part upon her, and she 
did so, and managed it so dexterously, that the first time we 
were together alone, after she had talked with him, he began 
to inquire a little into my circumstances, as how I had subsisted 
myself since I came on shore, and whether I did not want money. 
I stood off very boldly. I told him that though my cargo of 
tobacco was damaged, yet that it was not quite lost; that the 
merchant I had been consigned to had so honestly managed 
for me that I had not wanted, and that I hoped, with frugal 
management, I should make it hold out till more would come, 
which I expected by the next fleet; that in the meantime I had 
retrenched my expenses, and whereas I kept a maid last season, 
now I lived without; and whereas I had a chamber and a 
dining-room then on the first floor, as he knew, I now had but 
one room, two pair of stairs, and the like. 'But I live,' said I, 
'as well satisfied now as I did then'; adding, that his company 
had been a means to make me live much more cheerfully than 
otherwise I should have done, for which I was much obliged 
to him; and so I put off all room for any offer for the present. 
However, it was not long before he attacked me again, and 
told me he found that I was backward to trust him with the 
secret of my circumstances, which he was sorry for; assuring 
me that he inquired into it with no design to satisfy his own 
curiosity, but merely to assist me, if there was any occasion; 
but since I would not own myself to stand in need of any 
assistance, he had but one thing more to desire of me, and that 
was, that I would promise him that when I was any way straitened, 
or like to be so, I would frankly tell him of it, and that I would 
make use of him with the same freedom that he made the offer; 
adding, that I should always find I had a true friend, though 
perhaps I was afraid to trust him. 
I omitted nothing that was fit to be said by one infinitely 
obliged, to let him know that I had a due sense of his kindness; 
and indeed from that time I did not appear so much reserved 
to him as I had done before, though still within the bounds of 
the strictest virtue on both sides; but how free soever our 
conversation was, I could not arrive to that sort of freedom 
which he desired, viz. to tell him I wanted money, though I 
was secretly very glad of his offer. 
Some weeks passed after this, and still I never asked him for 
money; when my landlady, a cunning creature, who had often 
pressed me to it, but found that I could not do it, makes a 
story of her own inventing, and comes in bluntly to me when 
we were together. 'Oh, widow!' says she, 'I have bad news 
to tell you this morning.' 'What is that?' said I; 'are the 
Virginia ships taken by the French?'--for that was my fear. 
'No, no,' says she, 'but the man you sent to Bristol yesterday 
for money is come back, and says he has brought none.' 
Now I could by no means like her project; I though it looked 
too much like prompting him, which indeed he did not want, 
and I clearly that I should lose nothing by being backward to 
ask, so I took her up short. 'I can't image why he should say 
so to you,' said I, 'for I assure you he brought me all the 
money I sent him for, and here it is,' said I (pulling out my 
purse with about twelve guineas in it); and added, 'I intend 
you shall have most of it by and by.' 
He seemed distasted a little at her talking as she did at first, 
as well as I, taking it, as I fancied he would, as something 
forward of her; but when he saw me give such an answer, he 
came immediately to himself again. The next morning we 
talked of it again, when I found he was fully satisfied, and, 
smiling, said he hoped I would not want money and not tell 
him of it, and that I had promised him otherwise. I told him 
I had been very much dissatisfied at my landlady's talking so 
publicly the day before of what she had nothing to do with; 
but I supposed she wanted what I owed her, which was about 
eight guineas, which I had resolved to give her, and had 
accordingly given it her the same night she talked so foolishly. 
He was in a might good humour when he heard me say I had 
paid her, and it went off into some other discourse at that time. 
But the next morning, he having heard me up about my room 
before him, he called to me, and I answering, he asked me to 
come into his chamber. He was in bed when I came in, and 
he made me come and sit down on his bedside, for he said he 
had something to say to me which was of some moment. 
After some very kind expressions, he asked me if I would be 
very honest to him, and give a sincere answer to one thing he 
would desire of me. After some little cavil at the word 'sincere,' 
and asking him if I had ever given him any answers which were 
not sincere, I promised him I would. Why, then, his request 
was, he said, to let him see my purse. I immediately put my 
hand into my pocket, and, laughing to him, pulled it out, and 
there was in it three guineas and a half. Then he asked me if 
there was all the money I had. I told him No, laughing again, 
not by a great deal. 
Well, then, he said, he would have me promise to go and 
fetch him all the money I had, every farthing. I told him I 
would, and I went into my chamber and fetched him a little 
private drawer, where I had about six guineas more, and some 
silver, and threw it all down upon the bed, and told him there 
was all my wealth, honestly to a shilling. He looked a little 
at it, but did not tell it, and huddled it all into the drawer again, 
and then reaching his pocket, pulled out a key, and bade me 
open a little walnut-tree box he had upon the table, and bring 
him such a drawer, which I did. In which drawer there was a 
great deal of money in gold, I believe near two hundred guineas, 
but I knew not how much. He took the drawer, and taking my 
hand, made me put it in and take a whole handful. I was 
backward at that, but he held my hand hard in his hand, and 
put it into the drawer, and made me take out as many guineas 
almost as I could well take up at once. 
When I had done so, he made me put them into my lap, 
and took my little drawer, and poured out all my money among 
his, and bade me get me gone, and carry it all home into my 
own chamber. 
I relate this story the more particularly because of the 
good-humour there was in it, and to show the temper with 
which we conversed. It was not long after this but he began 
every day to find fault with my clothes, with my laces and 
headdresses, and, in a word, pressed me to buy better; which, 
by the way, I was willing enough to do, though I did not seem 
to be so, for I loved nothing in the world better than fine clothes. 
I told him I must housewife the money he had lent me, or else 
I should not be able to pay him again. He then told me, in a 
few words, that as he had a sincere respect for me, and knew 
my circumstances, he had not lent me that money, but given 
it me, and that he thought I had merited it from him by giving 
him my company so entirely as I had done. After this he made 
me take a maid, and keep house, and his friend that come with 
him to Bath being gone, he obliged me to diet him, which I did 
very willingly, believing, as it appeared, that I should lose 
nothing by it, not did the woman of the house fail to find her 
account in it too. 
We had lived thus near three months, when the company 
beginning to wear away at the Bath, he talked of going away, 
and fain he would have me to go to London with him. I was 
not very easy in that proposal, not knowing what posture I 
was to live in there, or how he might use me. But while this 
was in debate he fell very sick; he had gone out to a place in 
Somersetshire, called Shepton, where he had some business 
and was there taken very ill, and so ill that he could not travel; 
so he sent his man back to Bath, to beg me that I would hire 
a coach and come over to him. Before he went, he had left 
all his money and other things of value with me, and what to 
do with them I did not know, but I secured them as well as I 
could, and locked up the lodgings and went to him, where I 
found him very ill indeed; however, I persuaded him to be 
carried in a litter to the Bath, where there was more help and 
better advice to be had. 
He consented, and I brought him to the Bath, which was about 
fifteen miles, as I remember. Here he continued very ill of a 
fever, and kept his bed five weeks, all which time I nursed him 
and tended him myself, as much and as carefully as if I had 
been his wife; indeed, if I had been his wife I could not have 
done more. I sat up with him so much and so often, that at 
last, indeed, he would not let me sit up any longer, and then I 
got a pallet-bed into his room, and lay in it just at his bed's 
feet. 
I was indeed sensibly affected with his condition, and with the 
apprehension of losing such a friend as he was, and was like to 
be to me, and I used to sit and cry by him many hours together. 
However, at last he grew better, and gave hopes that he would 
recover, as indeed he did, though very slowly. 
Were it otherwise than what I am going to say, I should not 
be backward to disclose it, as it is apparent I have done in 
other cases in this account; but I affirm, that through all this 
conversation, abating the freedom of coming into the chamber 
when I or he was in bed, and abating the necessary offices of 
attending him night and day when he was sick, there had not 
passed the least immodest word or action between us. Oh 
that it had been so to the last! 
After some time he gathered strength and grew well apace, 
and I would have removed my pallet-bed, but he would not 
let me, till he was able to venture himself without anybody to 
sit up with him, and then I removed to my own chamber. 
He took many occasions to express his sense of my tenderness 
and concern for him; and when he grew quite well, he made me 
a present of fifty guineas for my care and, as he called it, for 
hazarding my life to save his. 
And now he made deep protestations of a sincere inviolable 
affection for me, but all along attested it to be with the utmost 
reserve for my virtue and his own. I told him I was fully 
satisfied of it. He carried it that length that he protested to me, 
that if he was naked in bed with me, he would as sacredly 
preserve my virtue as he would defend it if I was assaulted by 
a ravisher. I believed him, and told him I did so; but this did 
not satisfy him, he would, he said, wait for some opportunity 
to give me an undoubted testimony of it. 
It was a great while after this that I had occasion, on my own 
business, to go to Bristol, upon which he hired me a coach, 
and would go with me, and did so; and now indeed our intimacy 
increased. From Bristol he carried me to Gloucester, which 
was merely a journey of pleasure, to take the air; and here it 
was our hap to have no lodging in the inn but in one large 
chamber with two beds in it. The master of the house going 
up with us to show his rooms, and coming into that room, 
said very frankly to him, 'Sir, it is none of my business to inquire 
whether the lady be your spouse or no, but if not, you may lie 
as honestly in these two beds as if you were in two chambers,' 
and with that he pulls a great curtain which drew quite across 
the room and effectually divided the beds. 'Well,' says my 
friend, very readily, 'these beds will do, and as for the rest, we 
are too near akin to lie together, though we may lodge near 
one another'; and this put an honest face on the thing too. 
When we came to go to bed, he decently went out of the room 
till I was in bed, and then went to bed in the bed on his own 
side of the room, but lay there talking to me a great while. 
At last, repeating his usual saying, that he could lie naked in 
the bed with me and not offer me the least injury, he starts out 
of his bed. 'And now, my dear,' says he, 'you shall see how 
just I will be to you, and that I can keep my word,' and away 
he comes to my bed. 
I resisted a little, but I must confess I should not have resisted 
him much if he had not made those promises at all; so after a 
little struggle, as I said, I lay still and let him come to bed. 
When he was there he took me in his arms, and so I lay all 
night with him, but he had no more to do with me, or offered 
anything to me, other than embracing me, as I say, in his arms, 
no, not the whole night, but rose up and dressed him in the 
morning, and left me as innocent for him as I was the day I 
was born. 
This was a surprising thing to me, and perhaps may be so to 
others, who know how the laws of nature work; for he was a 
strong, vigorous, brisk person; nor did he act thus on a principle 
of religion at all, but of mere affection; insisting on it, that 
though I was to him to most agreeable woman in the world, 
yet, because he loved me, he could not injure me. 
I own it was a noble principle, but as it was what I never 
understood before, so it was to me perfectly amazing. We 
traveled the rest of the journey as we did before, and came 
back to the Bath, where, as he had opportunity to come to 
me when he would, he often repeated the moderation, and I 
frequently lay with him, and he with me, and although all the 
familiarities between man and wife were common to us, yet 
he never once offered to go any farther, and he valued himself 
much upon it. I do not say that I was so wholly pleased with 
it as he thought I was, for I own much wickeder than he, as 
you shall hear presently. 
We lived thus near two years, only with this exception, that 
he went three times to London in that time, and once he 
continued there four months; but, to do him justice, he always 
supplied me with money to subsist me very handsomely. 
Had we continued thus, I confess we had had much to boast 
of; but as wise men say, it is ill venturing too near the brink of 
a command, so we found it; and here again I must do him the 
justice to own that the first breach was not on his part. It was 
one night that we were in bed together warm and merry, and 
having drunk, I think, a little more wine that night, both of us, 
than usual, although not in the least to disorder either of us, 
when, after some other follies which I cannot name, and being 
clasped close in his arms, I told him (I repeat it with shame 
and horror of soul) that I could find in my heart to discharge 
him of his engagement for one night and no more. 
He took me at my word immediately, and after that there was 
no resisting him; neither indeed had I any mind to resist him 
any more, let what would come of it. 
Thus the government of our virtue was broken, and I 
exchanged the place of friend for that unmusical, harsh-sounding 
title of whore. In the morning we were both at our penitentials; 
I cried very heartily, he expressed himself very sorry; but that 
was all either of us could do at that time, and the way being 
thus cleared, and the bars of virtue and conscience thus removed, 
we had the less difficult afterwards to struggle with. 
It was but a dull kind of conversation that we had together 
for all the rest of that week; I looked on him with blushes, and 
every now and then started that melancholy objection, 'What 
if I should be with child now? What will become of me then?' 
He encouraged me by telling me, that as long as I was true to 
him, he would be so to me; and since it was gone such a length 
(which indeed he never intended), yet if I was with child, he 
would take care of that, and of me too. This hardened us both. 
I assured him if I was with child, I would die for want of a 
midwife rather than name him as the father of it; and he assured 
me I should never want if I should be with child. These mutual 
assurances hardened us in the thing, and after this we repeated 
the crime as often as we pleased, till at length, as I had feared, 
so it came to pass, and I was indeed with child. 
After I was sure it was so, and I had satisfied him of it too, 
we began to think of taking measures for the managing it, and 
I proposed trusting the secret to my landlady, and asking her 
advice, which he agreed to. My landlady, a woman (as I found) 
used to such things, made light of it; she said she knew it would 
come to that at last, and made us very merry about it. As I said 
above, we found her an experienced old lady at such work; she 
undertook everything, engaged to procure a midwife and a nurse, 
to satisfy all inquiries, and bring us off with reputation, and she 
did so very dexterously indeed. 
When I grew near my time she desired my gentleman to go 
away to London, or make as if he did so. When he was gone, 
she acquainted the parish officers that there was a lady ready 
to lie in at her house, but that she knew her husband very well, 
and gave them, as she pretended, an account of his name, which 
she called Sir Walter Cleve; telling them he was a very worthy 
gentleman, and that she would answer for all inquiries, and the 
like. This satisfied the parish officers presently, and I lay in 
with as much credit as I could have done if I had really been 
my Lady Cleve, and was assisted in my travail by three or four 
of the best citizens' wives of Bath who lived in the neighbourhood, 
which, however, made me a little the more expensive to him. 
I often expressed my concern to him about it, but he bid me not 
be concerned at it. 
As he had furnished me very sufficiently with money for the 
extraordinary expenses of my lying in, I had everything very 
handsome about me, but did not affect to be gay or extravagant 
neither; besides, knowing my own circumstances, and knowing 
the world as I had done, and that such kind of things do not 
often last long, I took care to lay up as much money as I could 
for a wet day, as I called it; making him believe it was all spent 
upon the extraordinary appearance of things in my lying in. 
By this means, and including what he had given me as above, 
I had at the end of my lying in about two hundred guineas by 
me, including also what was left of my own. 
I was brought to bed of a fine boy indeed, and a charming 
child it was; and when he heard of it he wrote me a very kind, 
obliging letter about it, and then told me, he thought it would 
look better for me to come away for London as soon as I was 
up and well; that he had provided apartments for me at 
Hammersmith, as if I came thither only from London; and that 
after a little while I should go back to the Bath, and he would 
go with me. 
I liked this offer very well, and accordingly hired a coach on 
purpose, and taking my child, and a wet-nurse to tend and 
suckle it, and a maid-servant with me, away I went for London. 
He met me at Reading in his own chariot, and taking me into 
that, left the servant and the child in the hired coach, and so 
he brought me to my new lodgings at Hammersmith; with 
which I had abundance of reason to be very well pleased, for 
they were very handsome rooms, and I was very well 
accommodated. 
And now I was indeed in the height of what I might call my 
prosperity, and I wanted nothing but to be a wife, which, 
however, could not be in this case, there was no room for it; 
and therefore on all occasions I studied to save what I could, 
as I have said above, against a time of scarcity, knowing well 
enough that such things as these do not always continue; that 
men that keep mistresses often change them, grow weary of 
them, or jealous of them, or something or other happens to 
make them withdraw their bounty; and sometimes the ladies 
that are thus well used are not careful by a prudent conduct 
to preserve the esteem of their persons, or the nice article of 
their fidelity, and then they are justly cast off with contempt. 
But I was secured in this point, for as I had no inclination 
to change, so I had no manner of acquaintance in the whole 
house, and so no temptation to look any farther. I kept no 
company but in the family when I lodged, and with the 
clergyman's lady at next door; so that when he was absent I 
visited nobody, nor did he ever find me out of my chamber 
or parlour whenever he came down; if I went anywhere to 
take the air, it was always with him. 
The living in this manner with him, and his with me, was 
certainly the most undesigned thing in the world; he often 
protested to me, that when he became first acquainted with 
me, and even to the very night when we first broke in upon 
our rules, he never had the least design of lying with me; that 
he always had a sincere affection for me, but not the least real 
inclination to do what he had done. I assured him I never 
suspected him; that if I had I should not so easily have yielded 
to the freedom which brought it on, but that it was all a surprise, 
and was owing to the accident of our having yielded too far to 
our mutual inclinations that night; and indeed I have often 
observed since, and leave it as a caution to the readers of this 
story, that we ought to be cautious of gratifying our inclinations 
in loose and lewd freedoms, lest we find our resolutions of 
virtue fail us in the junction when their assistance should be 
most necessary. 
It is true, and I have confessed it before, that from the first 
hour I began to converse with him, I resolved to let him lie 
with me, if he offered it; but it was because I wanted his help 
and assistance, and I knew no other way of securing him than 
that. But when were that night together, and, as I have said, 
had gone such a length, I found my weakness; the inclination 
was not to be resisted, but I was obliged to yield up all even 
before he asked it. 
However, he was so just to me that he never upbraided me 
with that; nor did he ever express the least dislike of my 
conduct on any other occasion, but always protested he was 
as much delighted with my company as he was the first hour 
we came together: I mean, came together as bedfellows. 
It is true that he had no wife, that is to say, she was as no 
wife to him, and so I was in no danger that way, but the just 
reflections of conscience oftentimes snatch a man, especially 
a man of sense, from the arms of a mistress, as it did him at 
last, though on another occasion. 
On the other hand, though I was not without secret reproaches 
of my own conscience for the life I led, and that even in the 
greatest height of the satisfaction I ever took, yet I had the 
terrible prospect of poverty and starving, which lay on me as 
a frightful spectre, so that there was no looking behind me. 
But as poverty brought me into it, so fear of poverty kept me 
in it, and I frequently resolved to leave it quite off, if I could 
but come to lay up money enough to maintain me. But these 
were thoughts of no weight, and whenever he came to me they 
vanished; for his company was so delightful, that there was no 
being melancholy when he was there; the reflections were all 
the subject of those hours when I was alone. 
I lived six years in this happy but unhappy condition, in which 
time I brought him three children, but only the first of them 
lived; and though I removed twice in those six years, yet I came
 back the sixth year to my first lodgings at Hammersmith. 
Here it was that I was one morning surprised with a kind but 
melancholy letter from my gentleman, intimating that he was 
very ill, and was afraid he should have another fit of sickness, 
but that his wife's relations being in the house with him, it 
would not be practicable to have me with him, which, however, 
he expressed his great dissatisfaction in, and that he wished I 
could be allowed to tend and nurse him as I did before. 
I was very much concerned at this account, and was very 
impatient to know how it was with him. I waited a fortnight 
or thereabouts, and heard nothing, which surprised me, and I 
began to be very uneasy indeed. I think, I may say, that for 
the next fortnight I was near to distracted. It was my particular 
difficulty that I did not know directly when he was; for I 
understood at first he was in the lodgings of his wife's mother; 
but having removed myself to London, I soon found, by the 
help of the direction I had for writing my letters to him, how 
to inquire after him, and there I found that he was at a house 
in Bloomsbury, whither he had, a little before he fell sick, 
removed his whole family; and that his wife and wife's mother 
were in the same house, though the wife was not suffered to 
know that she was in the same house with her husband. 
Here I also soon understood that he was at the last extremity, 
which made me almost at the last extremity too, to have a true 
account. One night I had the curiosity to disguise myself like 
a servant-maid, in a round cap and straw hat, and went to the 
door, as sent by a lady of his neighbourhood, where he lived 
before, and giving master and mistress's service, I said I was 
sent to know how Mr. ---- did, and how he had rested that night. 
In delivering this message I got the opportunity I desired; for, 
speaking with one of the maids, I held a long gossip's tale with 
her, and had all the particulars of his illness, which I found was 
a pleurisy, attended with a cough and a fever. She told me also 
who was in the house, and how his wife was, who, by her 
relation, they were in some hopes might recover her understanding; 
but as to the gentleman himself, in short she told me the doctors 
said there was very little hopes of him, that in the morning 
they thought he had been dying, and that he was but little better 
then, for they did not expect that he could live over the next 
night. 
This was heavy news for me, and I began now to see an end 
of my prosperity, and to see also that it was very well I had 
played to good housewife, and secured or saved something 
while he was alive, for that now I had no view of my own 
living before me. 
It lay very heavy upon my mind, too, that I had a son, a fine 
lovely boy, about five years old, and no provision made for it, 
at least that I knew of. With these considerations, and a sad 
heart, I went home that evening, and began to cast with myself 
how I should live, and in what manner to bestow myself, for 
the residue of my life. 
You may be sure I could not rest without inquiring again very 
quickly what was become of him; and not venturing to go 
myself, I sent several sham messengers, till after a fortnight's 
waiting longer, I found that there was hopes of his life, though 
he was still very ill; then I abated my sending any more to the 
house, and in some time after I learned in the neighbourhood 
that he was about house, and then that he was abroad again. 
I made no doubt then but that I should soon hear of him, 
and began to comfort myself with my circumstances being, as 
I thought, recovered. I waited a week, and two weeks, and 
with much surprise and amazement I waited near two months 
and heard nothing, but that, being recovered, he was gone into 
the country for the air, and for the better recovery after his 
distemper. After this it was yet two months more, and then I 
understood he was come to his city house again, but still I 
heard nothing from him. 
I had written several letters for him, and directed them as 
usual, and found two or three of them had been called for, but 
not the rest. I wrote again in a more pressing manner than 
ever, and in one of them let him know, that I must be forced 
to wait on him myself, representing my circumstances, the rent 
of lodgings to pay, and the provision for the child wanting, and 
my own deplorable condition, destitute of subsistence for his 
most solemn engagement to take care of and provide for me. 
I took a copy of this letter, and finding it lay at the house near 
a month and was not called for, I found means to have the copy 
of it put into his own hands at a coffee-house, where I had by 
inquiry found he used to go. 
This letter forced an answer from him, by which, though I 
found I was to be abandoned, yet I found he had sent a letter 
to me some time before, desiring me to go down to the Bath 
again. Its contents I shall come to presently. 
It is true that sick-beds are the time when such correspondences 
as this are looked on with different countenances, and seen 
with other eyes than we saw them with, or than they appeared 
with before. My lover had been at the gates of death, and at 
the very brink of eternity; and, it seems, had been struck with 
a due remorse, and with sad reflections upon his past life of 
gallantry and levity; and among the rest, criminal correspondence 
with me, which was neither more nor less than a long-continued 
life of adultery, and represented itself as it really was, not as 
it had been formerly thought by him to be, and he looked upon 
it now with a just and religious abhorrence. 
I cannot but observe also, and leave it for the direction of my 
sex in such cases of pleasure, that whenever sincere repentance 
succeeds such a crime as this, there never fails to attend a 
hatred of the object; and the more the affection might seem to 
be before, the hatred will be the more in proportion. It will 
always be so, indeed it can be no otherwise; for there cannot 
be a true and sincere abhorrence of the offence, and the love 
to the cause of it remain; there will, with an abhorrence of the 
sin, be found a detestation of the fellow-sinner; you can expect 
no other. 
I found it so here, though good manners and justice in this 
gentleman kept him from carrying it on to any extreme but the 
short history of his part in this affair was thus: he perceived 
by my last letter, and by all the rest, which he went for after, 
that I was not gone to Bath, that his first letter had not come 
to my hand; upon which he write me this following:-
'MADAM,--I am surprised that my letter, dated the 8th of last 
month, did not come to your hand; I give you my word it was 
delivered at your lodgings, and to the hands of your maid. 
'I need not acquaint you with what has been my condition 
for some time past; and how, having been at the edge of the 
grave, I am, by the unexpected and undeserved mercy of 
Heaven, restored again. In the condition I have been in, it 
cannot be strange to you that our unhappy correspondence 
had not been the least of the burthens which lay upon my 
conscience. I need say no more; those things that must be 
repented of, must be also reformed. 
I wish you would think of going back to the Bath. I enclose 
you here a bill for #50 for clearing yourself at your lodgings, 
and carrying you down, and hope it will be no surprise to you 
to add, that on this account only, and not for any offence given 
me on your side, I can see you no more. I will take due care 
of the child; leave him where he is, or take him with you, as 
you please. I wish you the like reflections, and that they may 
be to your advantage.--I am,' etc. 
I was struck with this letter as with a thousand wounds, such 
as I cannot describe; the reproaches of my own conscience were 
such as I cannot express, for I was not blind to my own crime; 
and I reflected that I might with less offence have continued 
with my brother, and lived with him as a wife, since there was
 no crime in our marriage on that score, neither of us knowing it. 
But I never once reflected that I was all this while a married 
woman, a wife to Mr. ---- the linen-draper, who, though he 
had left me by the necessity of his circumstances, had no power 
to discharge me from the marriage contract which was between 
us, or to give me a legal liberty to marry again; so that I had 
been no less than a whore and an adulteress all this while. I 
then reproached myself with the liberties I had taken, and how 
I had been a snare to this gentleman, and that indeed I was 
principal in the crime; that now he was mercifully snatched out 
of the gulf by a convincing work upon his mind, but that I was 
left as if I was forsaken of God's grace, and abandoned by 
Heaven to a continuing in my wickedness. 
Under these reflections I continued very pensive and sad for 
near month, and did not go down to the Bath, having no 
inclination to be with the woman whom I was with before; 
lest, as I thought, she should prompt me to some wicked 
course of life again, as she had done; and besides, I was very 
loth she should know I was cast off as above. 
And now I was greatly perplexed about my little boy. It was 
death to me to part with the child, and yet when I considered 
the danger of being one time or other left with him to keep 
without a maintenance to support him, I then resolved to leave 
him where he was; but then I concluded also to be near him 
myself too, that I then might have the satisfaction of seeing 
him, without the care of providing for him. 
I sent my gentleman a short letter, therefore, that I had obeyed 
his orders in all things but that of going back to the Bath, 
which I could not think of for many reasons; that however 
parting from him was a wound to me that I could never recover, 
yet that I was fully satisfied his reflections were just, and would 
be very far from desiring to obstruct his reformation or repentance. 
Then I represented my own circumstances to him in the most 
moving terms that I was able. I told him that those unhappy 
distresses which first moved him to a generous and an honest 
friendship for me, would, I hope, move him to a little concern 
for me now, though the criminal part of our correspondence, 
which I believed neither of us intended to fall into at the time, 
was broken off; that I desired to repent as sincerely as he had 
done, but entreated him to put me in some condition that I 
might not be exposed to the temptations which the devil never 
fails to excite us to from the frightful prospect of poverty and 
distress; and if he had the least apprehensions of my being 
troublesome to him, I begged he would put me in a posture 
to go back to my mother in Virginia, from when he knew I 
came, and that would put an end to all his fears on that account. 
I concluded, that if he would send me #50 more to facilitate 
my going away, I would send him back a general release, and 
would promise never to disturb him more with any importunities; 
unless it was to hear of the well-doing of the child, whom, if 
I found my mother living and my circumstances able, I would 
send for to come over to me, and take him also effectually off 
his hands. 
This was indeed all a cheat thus far, viz. that I had no intention 
to go to Virginia, a the account of my former affairs there may 
convince anybody of; but the business was to get this last #50 
of him, if possible, knowing well enough it would be the last 
penny I was ever to expect. 
However, the argument I used, namely, of giving him a general 
release, and never troubling him any more, prevailed effectually 
with him, and he sent me a bill for the money by a person who 
brought with him a general release for me to sign, and which 
I frankly signed, and received the money; and thus, though full 
sore against my will, a final end was put to this affair. 
And here I cannot but reflect upon the unhappy consequence 
of too great freedoms between persons stated as we were, 
upon the pretence of innocent intentions, love of friendship, 
and the like; for the flesh has generally so great a share in those 
friendships, that is great odds but inclination prevails at last 
over the most solemn resolutions; and that vice breaks in at 
the breaches of decency, which really innocent friendship ought 
to preserve with the greatest strictness. But I leave the readers 
of these things to their own just reflections, which they will be 
more able to make effectual than I, who so soon forgot myself, 
and am therefore but a very indifferent monitor. 
I was now a single person again, as I may call myself; I was 
loosed from all the obligations either of wedlock or mistress-ship 
in the world, except my husband the linen-draper, whom, I having 
not now heard from in almost fifteen years, nobody could 
blame me for thinking myself entirely freed from; seeing also he 
had at his going away told me, that if I did not hear frequently 
from him, I should conclude he was dead, and I might freely 
marry again to whom I pleased. 
I now began to cast up my accounts. I had by many letters 
and much importunity, and with the intercession of my mother 
too, had a second return of some goods from my brother (as I 
now call him) in Virginia, to make up the damage of the cargo 
I brought away with me, and this too was upon the condition 
of my sealing a general release to him, and to send it him by 
his correspondent at Bristol, which, though I thought hard of, 
yet I was obliged to promise to do. However, I managed so 
well in this case, that I got my goods away before the release 
was signed, and then I always found something or other to say 
to evade the thing, and to put off the signing it at all; till at 
length I pretended I must write to my brother, and have his 
answer, before I could do it. 
Including this recruit, and before I got the last #50, I found 
my strength to amount, put all together, to about #400, so 
that with that I had about #450. I had saved above #100 more, 
but I met with a disaster with that, which was this--that a 
goldsmith in whose hands I had trusted it, broke, so I lost #70 
of my money, the man's composition not making above #30 
out of his #100. I had a little plate, but not much, and was 
well enough stocked with clothes and linen. 
With this stock I had the world to begin again; but you are to 
consider that I was not now the same woman as when I lived 
at Redriff; for, first of all, I was near twenty years older, and 
did not look the better for my age, nor for my rambles to 
Virginia and back again; and though I omitted nothing that 
might set me out to advantage, except painting, for that I never 
stooped to, and had pride enough to think I did not want it, yet 
there would always be some difference seen between five-and-twenty 
and two-and-forty. 
I cast about innumerable ways for my future state of life, and 
began to consider very seriously what I should do, but nothing 
offered. I took care to make the world take me for something 
more than I was, and had it given out that I was a fortune, and 
that my estate was in my own hands; the last of which was 
very true, the first of it was as above. I had no acquaintance, 
which was one of my worst misfortunes, and the consequence 
of that was, I had no adviser, at least who could assist and 
advise together; and above all, I had nobody to whom I could 
in confidence commit the secret of my circumstances to, and 
could depend upon for their secrecy and fidelity; and I found 
by experience, that to be friendless in the worst condition, 
next to being in want that a woman can be reduced to: I say 
a woman, because 'tis evident men can be their own advisers, 
and their own directors, and know how to work themselves 
out of difficulties and into business better than women; but if 
a woman has no friend to communicate her affairs to, and to 
advise and assist her, 'tis ten to one but she is undone; nay, 
and the more money she has, the more danger she is in of being 
wronged and deceived; and this was my case in the affair of 
the #100 which I left in the hands of the goldsmith, as above, 
whose credit, it seems, was upon the ebb before, but I, that 
had no knowledge of things and nobody to consult with, knew 
nothing of it, and so lost my money. 
In the next place, when a woman is thus left desolate and void 
of counsel, she is just like a bag of money or a jewel dropped 
on the highway, which is a prey to the next comer; if a man of 
virtue and upright principles happens to find it, he will have it 
cried, and the owner may come to hear of it again; but how 
many times shall such a thing fall into hands that will make no 
scruple of seizing it for their own, to once that it shall come 
into good hands? 
This was evidently my case, for I was now a loose, unguided 
creature, and had no help, no assistance, no guide for my 
conduct; I knew what I aimed at and what I wanted, but knew 
nothing how to pursue the end by direct means. I wanted to 
be placed in a settle state of living, and had I happened to meet 
with a sober, good husband, I should have been as faithful and 
true a wife to him as virtue itself could have formed. If I had 
been otherwise, the vice came in always at the door of necessity, 
not at the door of inclination; and I understood too well, by 
the want of it, what the value of a settled life was, to do 
anything to forfeit the felicity of it; nay, I should have made 
the better wife for all the difficulties I had passed through, by 
a great deal; nor did I in any of the time that I had been a wife 
give my husbands the least uneasiness on account of my 
behaviour. 
But all this was nothing; I found no encouraging prospect. I 
waited; I lived regularly, and with as much frugality as became 
my circumstances, but nothing offered, nothing presented, and 
the main stock wasted apace. What to do I knew not; the 
terror of approaching poverty lay hard upon my spirits. I had 
some money, but where to place it I knew not, nor would the 
interest of it maintain me, at least not in London. 
At length a new scene opened. There was in the house where 
I lodged a north-country woman that went for a gentlewoman, 
and nothing was more frequent in her discourse than her account 
of the cheapness of provisions, and the easy way of living in 
her country; how plentiful and how cheap everything was, what 
good company they kept, and the like; till at last I told her she 
almost tempted me to go and live in her country; for I that 
was a widow, though I had sufficient to live on, yet had no 
way of increasing it; and that I found I could not live here 
under #100 a year, unless I kept no company, no servant, made 
no appearance, and buried myself in privacy, as if I was obliged 
to it by necessity. 
I should have observed, that she was always made to believe, 
as everybody else was, that I was a great fortune, or at least 
that I had three or four thousand pounds, if not more, and all 
in my own hands; and she was mighty sweet upon me when 
she thought me inclined in the least to go into her country. 
She said she had a sister lived near Liverpool, that her brother 
was a considerable gentleman there, and had a great estate 
also in Ireland; that she would go down there in about two 
months, and if I would give her my company thither, I should 
be as welcome as herself for a month or more as I pleased, 
till I should see how I liked the country; and if I thought fit to 
live there, she would undertake they would take care, though 
they did not entertain lodgers themselves, they would recommend 
me to some agreeable family, where I should be placed to my 
content. 
If this woman had known my real circumstances, she would 
never have laid so many snares, and taken so many weary steps 
to catch a poor desolate creature that was good for little when 
it was caught; and indeed I, whose case was almost desperate, 
and thought I could not be much worse, was not very anxious 
about what might befall me, provided they did me no personal 
injury; so I suffered myself, though not without a great deal 
of invitation and great professions of sincere friendship and 
real kindness--I say, I suffered myself to be prevailed upon to 
go with her, and accordingly I packed up my baggage, and put 
myself in a posture for a journey, though I did not absolutely 
know whither I was to go. 
And now I found myself in great distress; what little I had 
in the world was all in money, except as before, a little plate, 
some linen, and my clothes; as for my household stuff, I had 
little or none, for I had lived always in lodgings; but I had not 
one friend in the world with whom to trust that little I had, or 
to direct me how to dispose of it, and this perplexed me night 
and day. I thought of the bank, and of the other companies in 
London, but I had no friend to commit the management of it 
to, and keep and carry about with me bank bills, tallies, orders, 
and such things, I looked upon at as unsafe; that if they were 
lost, my money was lost, and then I was undone; and, on the 
other hand, I might be robbed and perhaps murdered in a strange 
place for them. This perplexed me strangely, and what to do I 
knew not. 
It came in my thoughts one morning that I would go to the 
bank myself, where I had often been to receive the interest of 
some bills I had, which had interest payable on them, and where 
I had found a clerk, to whom I applied myself, very honest and 
just to me, and particularly so fair one time that when I had 
mistold my money, and taken less than my due, and was coming 
away, he set me to rights and gave me the rest, which he might 
have put into his own pocket. 
I went to him and represented my case very plainly, and asked 
if he would trouble himself to be my adviser, who was a poor 
friendless widow, and knew not what to do. He told me, if 
I desired his opinion of anything within the reach of his business, 
he would do his endeavour that I should not be wronged, but 
that he would also help me to a good sober person who was 
a grave man of his acquaintance, who was a clerk in such 
business too, though not in their house, whose judgment was 
good, and whose honesty I might depend upon. 'For,' added 
he, 'I will answer for him, and for every step he takes; if he 
wrongs you, madam, of one farthing, it shall lie at my door, I 
will make it good; and he delights to assist people in such 
cases--he does it as an act of charity.' 
I was a little at a stand in this discourse; but after some pause 
I told him I had rather have depended upon him, because I had 
found him honest, but if that could not be, I would take his 
recommendation sooner than any one's else. 'I dare say, 
madam,' says he, 'that you will be as well satisfied with my 
friend as with me, and he is thoroughly able to assist you, 
which I am not.' It seems he had his hands full of the business 
of the bank, and had engaged to meddle with no other business 
that that of his office, which I heard afterwards, but did not 
understand then. He added, that his friend should take nothing 
of me for his advice or assistance, and this indeed encouraged 
me very much. 
He appointed the same evening, after the bank was shut and 
business over, for me to meet him and his friend. And indeed 
as soon as I saw his friend, and he began but to talk of the 
affair, I was fully satisfied that I had a very honest man to deal 
with; his countenance spoke it, and his character, as I heard 
afterwards, was everywhere so good, that I had no room for 
any more doubts upon me. 
After the first meeting, in which I only said what I had said 
before, we parted, and he appointed me to come the next day 
to him, telling me I might in the meantime satisfy myself of 
him by inquiry, which, however, I knew not how well to do, 
having no acquaintance myself. 
Accordingly I met him the next day, when I entered more 
freely with him into my case. I told him my circumstances at 
large: that I was a widow come over from American, perfectly 
desolate and friendless; that I had a little money, and but a 
little, and was almost distracted for fear of losing it, having no 
friend in the world to trust with the management of it; that I 
was going into the north of England to live cheap, that my 
stock might not waste; that I would willingly lodge my money 
in the bank, but that I durst not carry the bills about me, and 
the like, as above; and how to correspond about it, or with 
whom, I knew not. 
He told me I might lodge the money in the bank as an account, 
and its being entered into the books would entitle me to the 
money at any time, and if I was in the north I might draw bills 
on the cashier and receive it when I would; but that then it 
would be esteemed as running cash, and the bank would give 
no interest for it; that I might buy stock with it, and so it would 
lie in store for me, but that then if I wanted to dispose if it, I 
must come up to town on purpose to transfer it, and even it 
would be with some difficulty I should receive the half-yearly 
dividend, unless I was here in person, or had some friend I 
could trust with having the stock in him name to do it for me, 
and that would have the same difficulty in it as before; and 
with that he looked hard at me and smiled a little. At last, says 
he, 'Why do you not get a head steward, madam, that may take 
you and your money together into keeping, and then you would 
have the trouble taken off your hands?' 'Ay, sir, and the money 
too, it may be,' said I; 'for truly I find the hazard that way is as 
much as 'tis t'other way'; but I remember I said secretly to myself, 
'I wish you would ask me the question fairly, I would consider 
very seriously on it before I said No.' 
He went on a good way with me, and I thought once or twice 
he was in earnest, but to my real affliction, I found at last he 
had a wife; but when he owned he had a wife he shook his head, 
and said with some concern, that indeed he had a wife, and no 
wife. I began to think he had been in the condition of my late 
lover, and that his wife had been distempered or lunatic, or 
some such thing. However, we had not much more discourse 
at that time, but he told me he was in too much hurry of 
business then, but that if I would come home to his house after 
their business was over, he would by that time consider what 
might be done for me, to put my affairs in a posture of security. 
I told him I would come, and desired to know where he lived. 
He gave me a direction in writing, and when he gave it me he 
read it to me, and said, 'There 'tis, madam, if you dare trust 
yourself with me.' 'Yes, sir,' said I, 'I believe I may venture 
to trust you with myself, for you have a wife, you say, and I 
don't want a husband; besides, I dare trust you with my money, 
which is all I have in the world, and if that were gone, I may 
trust myself anywhere.' 
He said some things in jest that were very handsome and 
mannerly, and would have pleased me very well if they had 
been in earnest; but that passed over, I took the directions, 
and appointed to attend him at his house at seven o'clock the 
same evening. 
When I came he made several proposals for my placing my 
money in the bank, in order to my having interest for it; but 
still some difficult or other came in the way, which he objected 
as not safe; and I found such a sincere disinterested honesty 
in him, that I began to muse with myself, that I had certainly 
found the honest man I wanted, and that I could never put 
myself into better hands; so I told him with a great deal of 
frankness that I had never met with a man or woman yet that 
I could trust, or in whom I could think myself safe, but that I 
saw he was so disinterestedly concerned for my safety, that I 
said I would freely trust him with the management of that little 
I had, if he would accept to be steward for a poor widow that 
could give him no salary. 
He smiled and, standing up, with great respect saluted me. 
He told me he could not but take it very kindly that I had so 
good an opinion of him; that he would not deceive me, that 
he would do anything in his power to serve me, and expect 
no salary; but that he could not by any means accept of a trust, 
that it might bring him to be suspected of self-interest, and that 
if I should die he might have disputes with my executors, which 
he should be very loth to encumber himself with. 
I told him if those were all his objections I would soon remove 
them, and convince him that there was not the least room for 
any difficulty; for that, first, as for suspecting him, if ever I 
should do it, now is the time to suspect him, and not put the 
trust into his hands, and whenever I did suspect him, he could 
but throw it up then and refuse to go any further. Then, as to 
executors, I assured him I had no heirs, nor any relations in 
England, and I should alter my condition before I died, and 
then his trust and trouble should cease together, which, 
however, I had no prospect of yet; but I told him if I died as 
I was, it should be all his own, and he would deserve it by 
being so faithful to me as I was satisfied he would be. 
He changed his countenance at this discourse, and asked me 
how I came to have so much good-will for him; and, looking 
very much pleased, said he might very lawfully wish he was 
a single man for my sake. I smiled, and told him as he was 
not, my offer could have no design upon him in it, and to wish, 
ashe did, was not to be allowed, 'twas criminal to his wife. 
He told me I was wrong. 'For,' says he, 'madam, as I said 
before, I have a wife and no wife, and 'twould be no sin to me 
to wish her hanged, if that were all.' 'I know nothing of your 
circumstances that way, sir,' said I; 'but it cannot be innocent 
to wish your wife dead.' 'I tell you,' says he again, 'she is a 
wife and no wife; you don't know what I am, or what she is.' 
'That's true,' said I; 'sir, I do not know what you are, but I 
believe you to be an honest man, and that's the cause of all 
my confidence in you.' 
'Well, well,' says he, 'and so I am, I hope, too. but I am 
something else too, madam; for,' says he, 'to be plain with you, 
I am a cuckold, and she is a whore.' He spoke it in a kind of 
jest, but it was with such an awkward smile, that I perceived 
it was what struck very close to him, and he looked dismally 
when he said it. 
'That alters the case indeed, sir,' said I, 'as to that part you 
were speaking of; but a cuckold, you know, may be an honest 
man; it does not alter that case at all. Besides, I think,' said 
I, 'since your wife is so dishonest to you, you are too honest 
to her to own her for your wife; but that,' said I, 'is what I 
have nothing to do with.' 
'Nay,' says he, 'I do not think to clear my hands of her; for, 
to be plain with you, madam,' added he, 'I am no contended 
cuckold neither: on the other hand, I assure you it provokes 
me the highest degree, but I can't help myself; she that will 
be a whore, will be a whore.' 
I waived the discourse and began to talk of my business; but 
I found he could not have done with it, so I let him alone, and 
he went on to tell me all the circumstances of his case, too 
long to relate here; particularly, that having been out of England 
some time before he came to the post he was in, she had had 
two children in the meantime by an officer of the army; and 
that when he came to England and, upon her submission, took 
her again, and maintained her very well, yet she ran away from 
him with a linen-draper's apprentice, robbed him of what she 
could come at, and continued to live from him still. 'So that, 
madam,' says he, 'she is a whore not by necessity, which is 
the common bait of your sex, but by inclination, and for the 
sake of the vice.' 
Well, I pitied him, and wished him well rid of her, and still 
would have talked of my business, but it would not do. At 
last he looks steadily at me. 'Look you, madam,' says he, 
'you came to ask advice of me, and I will serve you as faithfully 
as if you were my own sister; but I must turn the tables, since 
you oblige me to do it, and are so friendly to me, and I think 
I must ask advice of you. Tell me, what must a poor abused 
fellow do with a whore? What can I do to do myself justice 
upon her?' 
'Alas! sir,' says I, ''tis a case too nice for me to advise in, but 
it seems she has run away from you, so you are rid of her 
fairly; what can you desire more?' 'Ay, she is gone indeed,' 
said he, 'but I am not clear of her for all that.' 
'That's true,' says I; 'she may indeed run you into debt, but 
the law has furnished you with methods to prevent that also; 
you may cry her down, as they call it.' 
'No, no,' says he, 'that is not the case neither; I have taken 
care of all that; 'tis not that part that I speak of, but I would 
be rid of her so that I might marry again.' 
'Well, sir,' says I, 'then you must divorce her. If you can 
prove what you say, you may certainly get that done, and then, 
I suppose, you are free.' 
'That's very tedious and expensive,' says he. 
'Why,' says I, 'if you can get any woman you like to take your 
word, I suppose your wife would not dispute the liberty with 
you that she takes herself.' 
'Ay,' says he, 'but 'twould be hard to bring an honest woman 
to do that; and for the other sort,' says he, 'I have had enough 
of her to meddle with any more whores.' 
It occurred to me presently, 'I would have taken your word 
with all my heart, if you had but asked me the question'; 
but that was to myself. To him I replied, 'Why, you shut the 
door against any honest woman accepting you, for you condemn 
all that should venture upon you at once, and conclude, that 
really a woman that takes you now can't be honest.' 
'Why,' says he, 'I wish you would satisfy me that an honest 
woman would take me; I'd venture it'; and then turns short 
upon me, 'Will you take me, madam?' 
'That's not a fair question,' says I, 'after what you have said; 
however, lest you should think I wait only for a recantation 
of it, I shall answer you plainly, No, not I; my business is of 
another kind with you, and I did not expect you would have 
turned my serious application to you, in my own distracted 
case, into a comedy.' 
'Why, madam,' says he, 'my case is as distracted as yours can 
be, and I stand in as much need of advice as you do, for I think 
if I have not relief somewhere, I shall be made myself, and I 
know not what course to take, I protest to you.' 
'Why, sir,' says I, ''tis easy to give advice in your case, much 
easier than it is in mine.' 'Speak then,' says he, 'I beg of you, 
for now you encourage me.' 
'Why,' says I, 'if your case is so plain as you say it is, you may 
be legally divorced, and then you may find honest women 
enough to ask the question of fairly; the sex is not so scarce 
that you can want a wife.' 
'Well, then,' said he, 'I am in earnest; I'll take your advice; 
but shall I ask you one question seriously beforehand?' 
'Any question,' said I, 'but that you did before.' 
'No, that answer will not do,' said he, 'for, in short, that is the 
question I shall ask.' 
'You may ask what questions you please, but you have my 
answer to that already,' said I. 'Besides, sir,' said I, 'can you 
think so ill of me as that I would give any answer to such a 
question beforehand? Can any woman alive believe you in 
earnest, or think you design anything but to banter her?' 
'Well, well,' says he, 'I do not banter you, I am in earnest; 
consider of it.' 
'But, sir,' says I, a little gravely, 'I came to you about my own 
business; I beg of you to let me know, what you will advise me 
to do?' 
'I will be prepared,' says he, 'against you come again.' 
'Nay,' says I, 'you have forbid my coming any more.' 
'Why so?' said he, and looked a little surprised. 
'Because,' said I, 'you can't expect I should visit you on the 
account you talk of.' 
'Well,' says he, 'you shall promise me to come again, however, 
and I will not say any more of it till I have gotten the divorce, 
but I desire you will prepare to be better conditioned when 
that's done, for you shall be the woman, or I will not be 
divorced at all; why, I owe it to your unlooked-for kindness, 
if it were to nothing else, but I have other reasons too.' 
He could not have said anything in the world that pleased me 
better; however, I knew that the way to secure him was to 
stand off while the thing was so remote, as it appeared to be, 
and that it was time enough to accept of it when he was able 
to perform it; so I said very respectfully to him, it was time 
enough to consider of these things when he was in a condition 
to talk of them; in the meantime, I told him, I was going a 
great way from him, and he would find objects enough to 
please him better. We broke off here for the present, and he 
made me promise him to come again the next day, for his 
resolutions upon my own business, which after some pressing 
I did; though had he seen farther into me, I wanted no pressing 
on that account. 
I came the next evening, accordingly, and brought my maid 
with me, to let him see that I kept a maid, but I sent her away 
as soon as I was gone in. He would have had me let the maid 
have stayed, but I would not, but ordered her aloud to come 
for me again about nine o'clock. But he forbade that, and told 
me he would see me safe home, which, by the way, I was not 
very well please with, supposing he might do that to know 
where I lived and inquire into my character and circumstances. 
However, I ventured that, for all that the people there or 
thereabout knew of me, was to my advantage; and all the 
character he had of me, after he had inquired, was that I was 
a woman of fortune, and that I was a very modest, sober body; 
which, whether true or not in the main, yet you may see how 
necessary it is for all women who expect anything in the world, 
to preserve the character of their virtue, even when perhaps 
they may have sacrificed the thing itself. 
I found, and was not a little please with it, that he had provided 
a supper for me. I found also he lived very handsomely, and 
had a house very handsomely furnished; all of which I was 
rejoiced at indeed, for I looked upon it as all my own. 
We had now a second conference upon the subject-matter of 
the last conference. He laid his business very home indeed; he 
protested his affection to me, and indeed I had no room to 
doubt it; he declared that it began from the first moment I 
talked with him, and long before I had mentioned leaving my 
effects with him. ''Tis no matter when it began,' thought I; 
'if it will but hold, 'twill be well enough.' He then told me 
how much the offer I had made of trusting him with my effects, 
and leaving them to him, had enraged him. 'So I intended it 
should,' thought I, 'but then I thought you had been a single 
man too.' After we had supped, I observed he pressed me 
very hard to drink two or three glasses of wine, which, however, 
I declined, but drank one glass or two. He then told me he 
had a proposal to make to me, which I should promise him I 
would not take ill if I should not grant it. I told him I hoped 
he would make no dishonourable proposal to me, especially 
in his own house, and that if it was such, I desired he would 
not propose it, that I might not be obliged to offer any 
resentment to him that did not become the respect I professed 
for him, and the trust I had placed in him in coming to his house; 
and begged of him he would give me leave to go away, and 
accordingly began to put on my gloves and prepare to be gone, 
though at the same time I no more intended it than he intended 
to let me. 
Well, he importuned me not to talk of going; he assured me 
he had no dishonourable thing in his thoughts about me, and 
was very far from offering anything to me that was dishonourable, 
and if I thought so, he would choose to say no more of it. 
That part I did not relish at all. I told him I was ready to hear 
anything that he had to say, depending that he would say nothing 
unworthy of himself, or unfit for me to hear. Upon this, he 
told me his proposal was this: that I would marry him, though 
he had not yet obtained the divorce from the whore his wife; 
and to satisfy me that he meant honourably, he would promise 
not to desire me to live with him, or go to bed with him till the 
divorce was obtained. My heart said yet to this offer at first 
word, but it was necessary to play the hypocrite a little more 
with him; so I seemed to decline the motion with some warmth, 
and besides a little condemning the thing as unfair, told him 
that such a proposal could be of no signification, but to entangle 
us both in great difficulties; for if he should not at last obtain 
the divorce, yet we could not dissolve the marriage, neither 
could we proceed in it; so that if he was disappointed in the 
divorce, I left him to consider what a condition we should 
both be in. 
In short, I carried on the argument against this so far, that I 
convinced him it was not a proposal that had any sense in it. 
Well, then he went from it to another, and that was, that I 
would sign and seal a contract with him, conditioning to marry 
him as soon as the divorce was obtained, and to be void if he 
could not obtain it. 
I told him such a thing was more rational than the other; but 
as this was the first time that ever I could imagine him weak 
enough to be in earnest in this affair, I did not use to say Yes 
at first asking; I would consider of it. 
I played with this lover as an angler does with a trout. I found 
I had him fast on the hook, so I jested with his new proposal, 
and put him off. I told him he knew little of me, and bade him 
inquire about me; I let him also go home with me to my lodging, 
though I would not ask him to go in, for I told him it was not 
decent. 
In short, I ventured to avoid signing a contract of marriage, 
and the reason why I did it was because the lady that had 
invited me so earnestly to go with her into Lancashire insisted 
so positively upon it, and promised me such great fortunes, 
and such fine things there, that I was tempted to go and try. 
'Perhaps,' said I, 'I may mend myself very much'; and then I 
made no scruple in my thoughts of quitting my honest citizen, 
whom I was not so much in love with as not to leave him for 
a richer. 
In a word, I avoided a contract; but told him I would go into 
the north, that he should know where to write to me by the 
consequence of the business I had entrusted with him; that I 
would give him a sufficient pledge of my respect for him, for 
I would leave almost all I had in the world in his hands; and 
I would thus far give him my word, that as soon as he had 
sued out a divorce from his first wife, he would send me an 
account of it, I would come up to London, and that then we 
would talk seriously of the matter. 
It was a base design I went with, that I must confess, though 
I was invited thither with a design much worse than mine was, 
as the sequel will discover. Well, I went with my friend, as I 
called her, into Lancashire. All the way we went she caressed 
me with the utmost appearance of a sincere, undissembled 
affection; treated me, except my coach-hire, all the way; and 
her brother brought a gentleman's coach to Warrington to 
receive us, and we were carried from thence to Liverpool with 
as much ceremony as I could desire. We were also entertained 
at a merchant's house in Liverpool three or four days very 
handsomely; I forbear to tell his name, because of what followed. 
Then she told me she would carry me to an uncle's house of 
hers, where we should be nobly entertained. She did so; her 
uncle, as she called him, sent a coach and four horses for us, 
and we were carried near forty miles I know not whither. 
We came, however, to a gentleman's seat, where was a 
numerous family, a large park, extraordinary company indeed, 
and where she was called cousin. I told her if she had resolved 
to bring me into such company as this, she should have let me 
have prepared myself, and have furnished myself with better 
clothes. The ladies took notice of that, and told me very 
genteelly they did not value people in their country so much 
by their clothes as they did in London; that their cousin had 
fully informed them of my quality, and that I did not want 
clothes to set me off; in short, they entertained me, not like 
what I was, but like what they thought I had been, namely, a 
widow lady of a great fortune. 
The first discovery I made here was, that the family were all 
Roman Catholics, and the cousin too, whom I called my friend; 
however, I must say that nobody in the world could behave 
better to me, and I had all the civility shown me that I could 
have had if I had been of their opinion. The truth is, I had not 
so much principle of any kind as to be nice in point of religion, 
and I presently learned to speak favourably of the Romish 
Church; particularly, I told them I saw little but the prejudice 
of education in all the difference that were among Christians 
about religion, and if it had so happened that my father had 
been a Roman Catholic, I doubted not but I should have been 
as well pleased with their religion as my own. 
This obliged them in the highest degree, and as I was besieged 
day and night with good company and pleasant discourse, so 
I had two or three old ladies that lay at me upon the subject 
of religion too. I was so complaisant, that though I would not 
completely engage, yet I made no scruple to be present at their 
mass, and to conform to all their gestures as they showed me 
the pattern, but I would not come too cheap; so that I only in 
the main encouraged them to expect that I would turn Roman 
Catholic, if I was instructed in the Catholic doctrine as they 
called it, and so the matter rested. 
I stayed here about six weeks; and then my conductor led me 
back to a country village, about six miles from Liverpool, 
where her brother (as she called him) came to visit me in his 
own chariot, and in a very good figure, with two footmen in 
a good livery; and the next thing was to make love to me. As 
it had happened to me, one would think I could not have been 
cheated, and indeed I thought so myself, having a safe card at 
home, which I resolved not to quit unless I could mend myself 
very much. However, in all appearance this brother was a 
match worth my listening to, and the least his estate was valued 
at was #1000 a year, but the sister said it was worth #1500 a 
year, and lay most of it in Ireland. 
I that was a great fortune, and passed for such, was above 
being asked how much my estate was; and my false friend 
taking it upon a foolish hearsay, had raised it from #500 to 
#5000, and by the time she came into the country she called 
it #15,000. The Irishman, for such I understood him to be, 
was stark mad at this bait; in short, he courted me, made me 
presents, and ran in debt like a madman for the expenses of 
his equipage and of his courtship. He had, to give him his due, 
the appearance of an extraordinary fine gentleman; he was tall, 
well-shaped, and had an extraordinary address; talked as 
naturally of his park and his stables, of his horses, his gamekeepers, 
his woods, his tenants, and his servants, as if we had been in 
the mansion-house, and I had seen them all about me. 
He never so much as asked me about my fortune or estate, but 
assured me that when we came to Dublin he would jointure 
me in #600 a year good land; and that we could enter into a 
deed of settlement or contract here for the performance of it. 
This was such language indeed as I had not been used to, and 
I was here beaten out of all my measures; I had a she-devil in 
my bosom, every hour telling me how great her brother lived. 
One time she would come for my orders, how I would have 
my coaches painted, and how lined; and another time what 
clothes my page should wear; in short, my eyes were dazzled. 
I had now lost my power of saying No, and, to cut the story 
short, I consented to be married; but to be the more private, 
we were carried farther into the country, and married by a 
Romish clergyman, who I was assured would marry us as 
effectually as a Church of England parson. 
I cannot say but I had some reflections in this affair upon the 
dishonourable forsaking my faithful citizen, who loved me 
sincerely, and who was endeavouring to quit himself of a 
scandalous whore by whom he had been indeed barbarously 
used, and promised himself infinite happiness in his new choice; 
which choice was now giving up herself to another in a manner 
almost as scandalous as hers could be. 
But the glittering shoe of a great estate, and of fine things, 
which the deceived creature that was now my deceiver 
represented every hour to my imagination, hurried me away, 
and gave me no time to think of London, or of anything there, 
much less of the obligation I had to a person of infinitely more 
real merit than what was now before me. 
But the thing was done; I was now in the arms of my new 
spouse, who appeared still the same as before; great even to 
magnificence, and nothing less than #1000 a year could support 
the ordinary equipage he appeared in. 
After we had been married about a month, he began to talk 
of my going to West Chester in order to embark for Ireland. 
However, he did not hurry me, for we stayed near three weeks 
longer, and then he sent to Chester for a coach to meet us at 
the Black Rock, as they call it, over against Liverpool. Thither 
we went in a fine boat they call a pinnace, with six oars; his 
servants, and horses, and baggage going in the ferry-boat. 
He made his excuse to me that he had no acquaintance in 
Chester, but he would go before and get some handsome 
apartment for me at a private house. I asked him how long 
we should stay at Chester. He said, not at all, any longer than 
one night or two, but he would immediately hire a coach to 
go to Holyhead. Then I told him he should by no means give
 himself the trouble to get private lodgings for one night or 
two, for that Chester being a great place, I made no doubt but 
there would be very good inns and accommodation enough; 
so we lodged at an inn in the West Street, not far from the 
Cathedral; I forget what sign it was at. 
Here my spouse, talking of my going to Ireland, asked me if 
I had no affairs to settle at London before we went off. I 
told him No, not of any great consequence, but what might be 
done as well by letter from Dublin. 'Madam,' says he, very 
respectfully, 'I suppose the greatest part of your estate, which 
my sister tells me is most of it in money in the Bank of England, 
lies secure enough, but in case it required transferring, or any 
way altering its property, it might be necessary to go up to 
London and settle those things before we went over.' 
I seemed to look strange at it, and told him I knew not what 
he meant; that I had no effects in the Bank of England that I 
knew of; and I hoped he could not say that I had ever told him 
I had. No, he said, I had not told him so, but his sister had 
said the greatest part of my estate lay there. 'And I only 
mentioned it, me dear,' said he, 'that if there was any occasion 
to settle it, or order anything about it, we might not be obliged 
to the hazard and trouble of another voyage back again'; for 
he added, that he did not care to venture me too much upon 
the sea. 
I was surprised at this talk, and began to consider very seriously 
what the meaning of it must be; and it presently occurred to me 
that my friend, who called him brother, had represented me in 
colours which were not my due; and I thought, since it was come 
to that pitch, that I would know the bottom of it before I went 
out of England, and before I should put myself into I knew not 
whose hands in a strange country. 
Upon this I called his sister into my chamber the next morning, 
and letting her know the discourse her brother and I had 
been upon the evening before, I conjured her to tell me what 
she had said to him, and upon what foot it was that she had 
made this marriage. She owned that she had told him that I 
was a great fortune, and said that she was told so at London. 
'Told so!' says I warmly; 'did I ever tell you so?' No, she 
said, it was true I did not tell her so, but I had said several 
times that what I had was in my own disposal. 'I did so,' 
returned I very quickly and hastily, 'but I never told you I had 
anything called a fortune; no, not that I had #100, or the value 
of #100, in the world. Any how did it consist with my being 
a fortune,; said I, 'that I should come here into the north of 
England with you, only upon the account of living cheap?' 
At these words, which I spoke warm and high, my husband, 
her brother (as she called him), came into the room, and I 
desired him to come and sit down, for I had something of 
moment to say before them both, which it was absolutely 
necessary he should hear. 
He looked a little disturbed at the assurance with which I 
seemed to speak it, and came and sat down by me, having first 
shut the door; upon which I began, for I was very much provoked, 
and turning myself to him, 'I am afraid,' says I, 'my dear' (for 
I spoke with kindness on his side), 'that you have a very great 
abuse put upon you, and an injury done you never to be 
repaired in your marrying me, which, however, as I have had 
no hand in it, I desire I may be fairly acquitted of it, and that 
the blame may lie where it ought to lie, and nowhere else, for 
I wash my hands of every part of it.' 
'What injury can be done me, my dear,' says he, 'in marrying 
you. I hope it is to my honour and advantage every way.' 'I 
will soon explain it to you,' says I, 'and I fear you will have 
no reason to think yourself well used; but I will convince you, 
my dear,' says I again, 'that I have had no hand in it'; and there 
I stopped a while. 
He looked now scared and wild, and began, I believe, to 
suspect what followed; however, looking towards me, and 
saying only, 'Go on,' he sat silent, as if to hear what I had 
more to say; so I went on. 'I asked you last night,' said I, 
speaking to him, 'if ever I made any boast to you of my estate, 
or ever told you I had any estate in the Bank of England or 
anywhere else, and you owned I had not, as is most true; and 
I desire you will tell me here, before your sister, if ever I gave 
you any reason from me to think so, or that ever we had any 
discourse about it'; and he owned again I had not, but said I 
had appeared always as a woman of fortune, and he depended 
on it that I was so, and hoped he was not deceived. 'I am not 
inquiring yet whether you have been deceived or not,' said I; 
'I fear you have, and I too; but I am clearing myself from the 
unjust charge of being concerned in deceiving you. 
'I have been now asking your sister if ever I told her of any 
fortune or estate I had, or gave her any particulars of it; and 
she owns I never did. Any pray, madam,' said I, turning myself 
to her, 'be so just to me, before your brother, to charge me, 
if you can, if ever I pretended to you that I had an estate; and 
why, if I had, should I come down into this country with you 
on purpose to spare that little I had, and live cheap?' She 
could not deny one word, but said she had been told in London 
that I had a very great fortune, and that it lay in the Bank of 
England. 
'And now, dear sir,' said I, turning myself to my new spouse 
again, 'be so just to me as to tell me who has abused both you 
and me so much as to make you believe I was a fortune, and 
prompt you to court me to this marriage?' He could not speak 
a word, but pointed to her; and, after some more pause, flew 
out in the most furious passion that ever I saw a man in my 
life, cursing her, and calling her all the whores and hard names 
he could think of; and that she had ruined him, declaring that 
she had told him I had #15,000, and that she was to have #500 
of him for procuring this match for him. He then added, 
directing his speech to me, that she was none of his sister, but 
had been his whore for two years before, that she had had #100 
of him in part of this bargain, and that he was utterly undone 
if things were as I said; and in his raving he swore he would 
let her heart's blood out immediately, which frightened her 
and me too. She cried, said she had been told so in the house 
where I lodged. But this aggravated him more than before, 
that she should put so far upon him, and run things such a 
length upon no other authority than a hearsay; and then, turning 
to me again, said very honestly, he was afraid we were both 
undone. 'For, to be plain, my dear, I have no estate,' says he; 
'what little I had, this devil has made me run out in waiting 
on you and putting me into this equipage.' She took the 
opportunity of his being earnest in talking with me, and got 
out of the room, and I never saw her more. 
I was confounded now as much as he, and knew not what to 
say. I thought many ways that I had the worst of it, but his 
saying he was undone, and that he had no estate neither, put 
me into a mere distraction. 'Why,' says I to him, 'this has 
been a hellish juggle, for we are married here upon the foot 
of a double fraud; you are undone by the disappointment, it 
seems; and if I had had a fortune I had been cheated too, for 
you say you have nothing.' 
'You would indeed have been cheated, my dear,' says he, 'but 
you would not have been undone, for #15,000 would have 
maintained us both very handsomely in this country; and I 
assure you,' added he, 'I had resolved to have dedicated every 
groat of it to you; I would not have wronged you of a shilling, 
and the rest I would have made up in my affection to you, and 
tenderness of you, as long as I lived.' 
This was very honest indeed, and I really believe he spoke 
as he intended, and that he was a man that was as well qualified 
to make me happy, as to his temper and behaviour, as any 
man ever was; but his having no estate, and being run into debt 
on this ridiculous account in the country, made all the prospect 
dismal and dreadful, and I knew not what to say, or what to 
think of myself. 
I told him it was very unhappy that so much love, and so much 
good nature as I discovered in him, should be thus precipitated 
into misery; that I saw nothing before us but ruin; for as to me, 
it was my unhappiness that what little I had was not able to 
relieve us week, and with that I pulled out a bank bill of #20 
and eleven guineas, which I told him I had saved out of my 
little income, and that by the account that creature had given 
me of the way of living in that country, I expected it would 
maintain me three or four years; that if it was taken from me, 
I was left destitute, and he knew what the condition of a woman 
among strangers must be, if she had no money in her pocket; 
however, I told him, if he would take it, there it was. 
He told me with a great concern, and I thought I saw tears 
stand in his eyes, that he would not touch it; that he abhorred 
the thoughts of stripping me and make me miserable; that, on 
the contrary, he had fifty guineas left, which was all he had in 
the world, and he pulled it out and threw it down on the table, 
bidding me take it, though he were to starve for want of it. 
I returned, with the same concern for him, that I could not 
bear to hear him talk so; that, on the contrary, if he could 
propose any probable method of living, I would do anything 
that became me on my part, and that I would live as close 
and as narrow as he could desire. 
He begged of me to talk no more at that rate, for it would 
make him distracted; he said he was bred a gentleman, though 
he was reduced to a low fortune, and that there was but one 
way left which he could think of, and that would not do, 
unless I could answer him one question, which, however, he 
said he would not press me to. I told him I would answer it 
honestly; whether it would be to his satisfaction or not, that 
I could not tell. 
'Why, then, my dear, tell me plainly,' says he, 'will the little 
you have keep us together in any figure, or in any station or 
place, or will it not?' 
It was my happiness hitherto that I had not discovered myself 
or my circumstances at all--no, not so much as my name; and 
seeing these was nothing to be expected from him, however 
good-humoured and however honest he seemed to be, but to 
live on what I knew would soon be wasted, I resolved to 
conceal everything but the bank bill and the eleven guineas 
which I had owned; and I would have been very glad to have 
lost that and have been set down where he took me up. I had 
indeed another bank bill about me of #30, which was the whole 
of what I brought with me, as well to subsist on in the country, 
as not knowing what might offer; because this creature, the 
go-between that had thus betrayed us both, had made me 
believe strange things of my marrying to my advantage in the 
country, and I was not willing to be without money, whatever 
might happen. This bill I concealed, and that made me the 
freer of the rest, in consideration of his circumstances, for I 
really pitied him heartily. 
But to return to his question, I told him I never willingly 
deceived him, and I never would. I was very sorry to tell him 
that the little I had would not subsist us; that it was not 
sufficient to subsist me alone in the south country, and that 
this was the reason that made me put myself into the hands 
of that woman who called him brother, she having assured 
me that I might board very handsomely at a town called 
Manchester, where I had not yet been, for about #6 a year; 
and my whole income not being about #15 a year, I thought I 
might live easy upon it, and wait for better things. 
He shook his head and remained silent, and a very melancholy 
evening we had; however, we supped together, and lay together 
that night, and when we had almost supped he looked a little 
better and more cheerful, and called for a bottle of wine. 'Come, 
my dear,' says he, ' though the case is bad, it is to no purpose 
to be dejected. come, be as easy as you can; I will endeavour 
to find out some way or other to live; if you can but subsist 
yourself, that is better than nothing. I must try the world again; 
a man ought to think like a man; to be discouraged is to yield 
to the misfortune.' With this he filled a glass and drank to me, 
holding my hand and pressing it hard in his hand all the while 
the wine went down, and protesting afterwards his main 
concern was for me. 
It was really a true, gallant spirit he was of, and it was the 
more grievous to me. 'Tis something of relief even to be 
undone by a man of honour, rather than by a scoundrel; but 
here the greatest disappointment was on his side, for he had 
really spent a great deal of money, deluded by this madam the 
procuress; and it was very remarkable on what poor terms he 
proceeded. First the baseness of the creature herself is to be 
observed, who, for the getting #100 herself, could be content 
to let him spend three or four more, though perhaps it was all 
he had in the world, and more than all; when she had not the 
least ground, more than a little tea-table chat, to say that I had 
any estate, or was a fortune, or the like. It is true the design 
of deluding a woman of fortune, I f I had been so, was base 
enough; the putting the face of great things upon poor 
circumstances was a fraud, and bad enough; but the case a 
little differed too, and that in his favour, for he was not a rake 
that made a trade to delude women, and, as some have done, 
get six or seven fortunes after one another, and then rifle and 
run away from them; but he was really a gentleman, unfortunate 
and low, but had lived well; and though, if I had had a fortune, 
I should have been enraged at the slut for betraying me, yet 
really for the man, a fortune would not have been ill bestowed 
on him, for he was a lovely person indeed, of generous principles, 
good sense, and of abundance of good-humour. 
We had a great deal of close conversation that night, for we 
neither of us slept much; he was as penitent for having put all 
those cheats upon me as if it had been felony, and that he was 
going to execution; he offered me again every shilling of the 
money he had about him, and said he would go into the army 
and seek the world for more. 
I asked him why he would be so unkind to carry me into 
Ireland, when I might suppose he could not have subsisted me 
there. He took me in his arms. 'My dear,' said he, 'depend 
upon it, I never designed to go to Ireland at all, much less to 
have carried you thither, but came hither to be out of the 
observation of the people, who had heard what I pretended to, 
and withal, that nobody might ask me for money before I was 
furnished to supply them.' 
'But where, then,' said I, 'were we to have gone next?' 
'Why, my dear,' said he, 'I'll confess the whole scheme to you 
as I had laid it; I purposed here to ask you something about 
your estate, as you see I did, and when you, as I expected you 
would, had entered into some account with me of the particulars, 
I would have made an excuse to you to have put off our voyage 
to Ireland for some time, and to have gone first towards London. 
'Then, my dear,' said he, 'I resolved to have confessed all the 
circumstances of my own affairs to you, and let you know I 
had indeed made use of these artifices to obtain your consent 
to marry me, but had now nothing to do but ask to your pardon, 
and to tell you how abundantly, as I have said above, I would 
endeavour to make you forget what was past, by the felicity 
of the days to come.' 
'Truly,' said I to him, 'I find you would soon have conquered 
me; and it is my affliction now, that I am not in a condition to 
let you see how easily I should have been reconciled to you, 
and have passed by all the tricks you had put upon me, in 
recompense of so much good-humour. But, my dear,' said I, 
'what can we do now? We are both undone, and what better 
are we for our being reconciled together, seeing we have 
nothing to live on?' 
We proposed a great many things, but nothing could offer 
where there was nothing to begin with. He begged me at last 
to talk no more of it, for, he said, I would break his heart; so 
we talked of other things a little, till at last he took a husband's 
leave of me, and so we went to sleep. 
He rose before me in the morning; and indeed, having lain 
awake almost all night, I was very sleepy, and lay till near 
eleven o'clock. In this time he took his horses and three 
servants, and all his linen and baggage, and away he went, 
leaving a short but moving letter for me on the table, as 
follows:-
'MY DEAR--I am a dog; I have abused you; but I have been 
drawn into do it by a base creature, contrary to my principle 
and the general practice of my life. Forgive me, my dear! I 
ask your pardon with the greatest sincerity; I am the most 
miserable of men, in having deluded you. I have been so happy 
to posses you, and now am so wretched as to be forced to fly 
from you. Forgive me, my dear; once more I say, forgive me! 
I am not able to see you ruined by me, and myself unable to 
support you. Our marriage is nothing; I shall never be able to 
see you again; I here discharge you from it; if you can marry 
to your advantage, do not decline it on my account; I here 
swear to you on my faith, and on the word of a man of honour, 
I will never disturb your repose if I should know of it, which, 
however, is not likely. On the other hand, if you should not 
marry, and if good fortune should befall me, it shall be all yours, 
wherever you are. 
'I have put some of the stock of money I have left into your 
pocket; take places for yourself and your maid in the stage-coach, 
and go for London; I hope it will bear your charges thither, 
without breaking into your own. Again I sincerely ask your 
pardon, and will do so as often as I shall ever think of you. 
Adieu, my dear, for ever!--I am, your most affectionately, J.E.' 
Nothing that ever befell me in my life sank so deep into my 
heart as this farewell. I reproached him a thousand times in 
my thoughts for leaving me, for I would have gone with him 
through the world, if I had begged my bread. I felt in my 
pocket, and there found ten guineas, his gold watch, and two 
little rings, one a small diamond ring worth only about #6, and 
the other a plain gold ring. 
I sat me down and looked upon these things two hours 
together, and scarce spoke a word, till my maid interrupted 
me by telling me my dinner was ready. I ate but little, and 
after dinner I fell into a vehement fit of crying, every now and
then calling him by his name, which was James. 'O Jemmy!'
said I, 'come back, come back. I'll give you all I have; I'll
beg, I'll starve with you.' And thus I ran raving about the
room several times, and then sat down between whiles, and
then walking about again, called upon him to come back, and
then cried again; and thus I passed the afternoon, till about
seven o'clock, when it was near dusk, in the evening, being
August, when, to my unspeakable surprise, he comes back
into the inn, but without a servant, and comes directly up into
my chamber.
I was in the greatest confusion imaginable, and so was he too.
I could not imagine what should be the occasion of it, and
began to be at odds with myself whether to be glad or sorry;
but my affection biassed all the rest, and it was impossible to
conceal my joy, which was too great for smiles, for it burst
out into tears. He was no sooner entered the room but he ran
to me and took me in his arms, holding me fast, and almost
stopping my breath with his kisses, but spoke not a word.
At length I began. 'My dear,' said I, 'how could you go away
from me?' to which he gave no answer, for it was impossible
for him to speak.
When our ecstasies were a little over, he told me he was gone
about fifteen miles, but it was not in his power to go any farther
without coming back to see me again, and to take his leave of
me once more.
I told him how I had passed my time, and how loud I had
called him to come back again. He told me he heard me very
plain upon Delamere Forest, at a place about twelve miles off.
I smiled. 'Nay,' says he, 'do not think I am in jest, for if ever
I heard your voice in my life, I heard you call me aloud, and
sometimes I thought I saw you running after me.' 'Why,'
said I, 'what did I say?'--for I had not named the words to him.
'You called aloud,' says he, 'and said, O Jemmy! O Jemmy!
come back, come back.'
I laughed at him. 'My dear,' says he, 'do not laugh, for, depend
upon it, I heard your voice as plain as you hear mine now; if
you please, I'll go before a magistrate and make oath of it.' I
then began to be amazed and surprised, and indeed frightened,
and told him what I had really done, and how I had called after
him, as above.
When we had amused ourselves a while about this, I said to
him: 'Well, you shall go away from me no more; I'll go all
over the world with you rather.' He told me it would be very
difficult thing for him to leave me, but since it must be, he
hoped I would make it as easy to me as I could; but as for him,
it would be his destruction that he foresaw.
However, he told me that he considered he had left me to
travel to London alone, which was too long a journey; and
that as he might as well go that way as any way else, he was
resolved to see me safe thither, or near it; and if he did go
away then without taking his leave, I should not take it ill of
him; and this he made me promise.
He told me how he had dismissed his three servants, sold
their horses, and sent the fellows away to seek their fortunes,
and all in a little time, at a town on the road, I know not where.
'And,' says he, 'it cost me some tears all alone by myself, to
think how much happier they were than their master, for they 
could go to the next gentleman's house to see for a service, 
whereas,' said he, 'I knew not wither to go, or what to do 
with myself.' 
I told him I was so completely miserable in parting with him, 
that I could not be worse; and that now he was come again, 
I would not go from him, if he would take me with him, let 
him go whither he would, or do what he would. And in the 
meantime I agreed that we would go together to London; but 
I could not be brought to consent he should go away at last 
and not take his leave of me, as he proposed to do; but told 
him, jesting, that if he did, I would call him back again as loud 
as I did before. Then I pulled out his watch and gave it him 
back, and his two rings, and his ten guineas; but he would not 
take them, which made me very much suspect that he resolved 
to go off upon the road and leave me. 
The truth is, the circumstances he was in, the passionate 
expressions of his letter, the kind, gentlemanly treatment I had 
from him in all the affair, with the concern he showed for me 
in it, his manner of parting with that large share which he gave 
me of his little stock left--all these had joined to make such 
impressions on me, that I really loved him most tenderly, and 
could not bear the thoughts of parting with him. 
Two days after this we quitted Chester, I in the stage-coach, 
and he on horseback. I dismissed my maid at Chester. He 
was very much against my being without a maid, but she being 
a servant hired in the country, and I resolving to keep no 
servant at London, I told him it would have been barbarous 
to have taken the poor wench and have turned her away as 
soon as I came to town; and it would also have been a needless 
charge on the road, so I satisfied him, and he was easy enough 
on the score. 
He came with me as far as Dunstable, within thirty miles of 
London, and then he told me fate and his own misfortunes 
obliged him to leave me, and that it was not convenient for 
him to go to London, for reasons which it was of no value to 
me to know, and I saw him preparing to go. The stage-coach 
we were in did not usually stop at Dunstable, but I desiring it 
but for a quart of an hour, they were content to stand at an 
inndoor a while, and we went into the house. 
Being in the inn, I told him I had but one favour more to as 
of him, and that was, that since he could not go any farther, 
he would give me leave to stay a week or two in the town with 
him, that we might in that time think of something to prevent 
such a ruinous thing to us both, as a final separation would be; 
and that I had something of moment to offer him, that I had 
never said yet, and which perhaps he might find practicable to 
our mutual advantage. 
This was too reasonable a proposal to be denied, so he called 
the landlady of the house, and told her his wife was taken ill, 
and so ill that she could not think of going any farther in the 
stage-coach, which had tired her almost to death, and asked 
if she could not get us a lodging for two or three days in a 
private house, where I might rest me a little, for the journey 
had been too much for me. The landlady, a good sort of 
woman, well-bred and very obliging, came immediately to 
see me; told me she had two or three very good rooms in a 
part of the house quite out of the noise, and if I saw them, 
she did not doubt but I would like them, and I should have 
one of her maids, that should do nothing else but be appointed 
to wait on me. This was so very kind, that I could not but 
accept of it, and thank her; so I went to look on the rooms and 
liked them very well, and indeed they were extraordinarily 
furnished, and very pleasant lodgings; so we paid the stage-coach, 
took out our baggage, and resolved to stay here a while. 
Here I told him I would live with him now till all my money 
was spent, but would not let him spend a shilling of his own. 
We had some kind squabble about that, but I told him it was 
the last time I was like to enjoy his company, and I desired he 
would let me be master in that thing only, and he should govern 
in everything else; so he acquiesced. 
Here one evening, taking a walk into the fields, I told him I 
would now make the proposal to him I had told him of; 
accordingly I related to him how I had lived in Virginia, that 
I had a mother I believed was alive there still, though my 
husband was dead some years. I told him that had not my 
effects miscarried, which, by the way, I magnified pretty much, 
I might have been fortune good enough to him to have kept 
us from being parted in this manner. Then I entered into the 
manner of peoples going over to those countries to settle, 
how they had a quantity of land given them by the Constitution 
of the place; and if not, that it might be purchased at so easy a 
rate this it was not worth naming. 
I then gave him a full and distinct account of the nature of 
planting; how with carrying over but two or three hundred 
pounds value in English goods, with some servants and tools, 
a man of application would presently lay a foundation for a 
family, and in a very few years be certain to raise an estate. 
I let him into the nature of the product of the earth; how the 
ground was cured and prepared, and what the usual increase 
of it was; and demonstrated to him, that in a very few years, 
with such a beginning, we should be as certain of being rich 
as we were now certain of being poor. 
He was surprised at my discourse; for we made it the whole 
subject of our conversation for near a week together, in which 
time I laid it down in black and white, as we say, that it was 
morally impossible, with a supposition of any reasonable good 
conduct, but that we must thrive there and do very well. 
Then I told him what measures I would take to raise such a 
sum of #300 or thereabouts; and I argued with him how good 
a method it would be to put an end to our misfortunes and 
restore our circumstances in the world, to what we had both 
expected; and I added, that after seven years, if we lived, we 
might be in a posture to leave our plantations in good hands, 
and come over again and receive the income of it, and live 
here and enjoy it; and I gave him examples of some that had 
done so, and lived now in very good circumstances in London. 
In short, I pressed him so to it, that he almost agreed to it, but 
still something or other broke it off again; till at last he turned 
the tables, and he began to talk almost to the same purpose of 
Ireland. 
He told me that a man that could confine himself to country 
life, and that could find but stock to enter upon any land, 
should have farms there for #50 a year, as good as were here 
let for #200 a year; that the produce was such, and so rich the 
land, that if much was not laid up, we were sure to live as 
handsomely upon it as a gentleman of #3000 a year could do 
in England and that he had laid a scheme to leave me in London, 
and go over and try; and if he found he could lay a handsome 
foundation of living suitable to the respect he had for me, as 
he doubted not he should do, he would come over and fetch me. 
I was dreadfully afraid that upon such a proposal he would 
have taken me at my word, viz. to sell my little income as I 
called it, and turn it into money, and let him carry it over into 
Ireland and try his experiment with it; but he was too just to 
desire it, or to have accepted it if I had offered it; and he 
anticipated me in that, for he added, that he would go and try 
his fortune that way, and if he found he could do anything at 
it to live, then, by adding mine to it when I went over, we 
should live like ourselves; but that he would not hazard a 
shilling of mine till he had made the experiment with a little, 
and he assured me that if he found nothing to be done in Ireland, 
he would then come to me and join in my project for Virginia. 
He was so earnest upon his project being to be tried first, that 
I could not withstand him; however, he promised to let me 
hear from him in a very little time after his arriving there, to 
let me know whether his prospect answered his design, that 
if there was not a possibility of success, I might take the 
occasion to prepare for our other voyage, and then, he assured 
me, he would go with me to America with all his heart. 
I could bring him to nothing further than this. However, those 
consultations entertained us near a month, during which I 
enjoyed his company, which indeed was the most entertaining 
that ever I met in my life before. In this time he let me into 
the whole story of his own life, which was indeed surprising, 
and full of an infinite variety sufficient to fill up a much brighter 
history, for its adventures and incidents, than any I ever say in 
print; but I shall have occasion to say more of him hereafter. 
We parted at last, though with the utmost reluctance on my 
side; and indeed he took his leave very unwillingly too, but 
necessity obliged him, for his reasons were very good why he 
would not come to London, as I understood more fully some 
time afterwards. 
I gave him a direction how to write to me, though still I 
reserved the grand secret, and never broke my resolution, 
which was not to let him ever know my true name, who I was, 
or where to be found; he likewise let me know how to write a 
letter to him, so that, he said, he would be sure to receive it. 
I came to London the next day after we parted, but did not go 
directly to my old lodgings; but for another nameless reason 
took a private lodging in St. John's Street, or, as it is vulgarly 
called, St. Jones's, near Clerkenwell; and here, being perfectly 
alone, I had leisure to sit down and reflect seriously upon the 
last seven months' ramble I had made, for I had been abroad 
no less. The pleasant hours I had with my last husband I looked 
back on with an infinite deal of pleasure; but that pleasure was 
very much lessened when I found some time after that I was 
really with child. 
This was a perplexing thing, because of the difficulty which 
was before me where I should get leave to lie in; it being one of 
the nicest things in the world at that time of day for a woman 
that was a stranger, and had no friends, to be entertained in 
that circumstance without security, which, by the way, I had 
not, neither could I procure any. 
I had taken care all this while to preserve a correspondence 
with my honest friend at the bank, or rather he took care to 
correspond with me, for he wrote to me once a week; and 
though I had not spent my money so fast as to want any from 
him, yet I often wrote also to let him know I was alive. I had 
left directions in Lancashire, so that I had these letters, which 
he sent, conveyed to me; and during my recess at St. Jones's 
received a very obliging letter from him, assuring me that his 
process for a divorce from his wife went on with success, 
though he met with some difficulties in it that he did not expect. 
I was not displeased with the news that his process was more 
tedious than he expected; for though I was in no condition to 
have him yet, not being so foolish to marry him when I knew 
myself to be with child by another man, as some I know have 
ventured to do, yet I was not willing to lose him, and, in a 
word, resolved to have him if he continued in the same mind, 
as soon as I was up again; for I saw apparently I should hear 
no more from my husband; and as he had all along pressed to 
marry, and had assured me he would not be at all disgusted at 
it, or ever offer to claim me again, so I made no scruple to 
resolve to do it if I could, and if my other friend stood to his 
bargain; and I had a great deal of reason to be assured that he 
would stand to it, by the letters he wrote to me, which were 
the kindest and most obliging that could be. 
I now grew big, and the people where I lodged perceived it, 
and began to take notice of it to me, and, as far as civility 
would allow, intimated that I must think of removing. This 
put me to extreme perplexity, and I grew very melancholy, for 
indeed I knew not what course to take. I had money, but no 
friends, and was like to have a child upon my hands to keep, 
which was a difficult I had never had upon me yet, as the 
particulars of my story hitherto make appear. 
In the course of this affair I fell very ill, and my melancholy 
really increased my distemper; my illness proved at length to 
be only an ague, but my apprehensions were really that I should 
miscarry. I should not say apprehensions, for indeed I would 
have been glad to miscarry, but I could never be brought to 
entertain so much as a thought of endeavouring to miscarry, 
or of taking any thing to make me miscarry; I abhorred, I say, 
so much as the thought of it. 
However, speaking of it in the house, the gentlewoman who 
kept the house proposed to me to send for a midwife. I 
scrupled it at first, but after some time consented to it, but 
told her I had no particular acquaintance with any midwife, 
and so left it to her. 
It seems the mistress of the house was not so great a stranger 
to such cases as mine was as I thought at first she had been, 
as will appear presently, and she sent for a midwife of the 
right sort--that is to say, the right sort for me. 
The woman appeared to be an experienced woman in her 
business, I mean as a midwife; but she had another calling too, 
in which she was as expert as most women if not more. My 
landlady had told her I was very melancholy, and that she 
believed that had done me harm; and once, before me, said to 
her, 'Mrs. B----' (meaning the midwife), 'I believe this lady's 
trouble is of a kind that is pretty much in your way, and 
therefore if you can do anything for her, pray do, for she is a 
very civil gentlewoman'; and so she went out of the room. 
I really did not understand her, but my Mother Midnight began 
very seriously to explain what she mean, as soon as she was 
gone. 'Madam,' says she, 'you seem not to understand what 
your landlady means; and when you do understand it, you need 
not let her know at all that you do so. 
'She means that you are under some circumstances that may 
render your lying in difficult to you, and that you are not willing 
to be exposed. I need say no more, but to tell you, that if you 
think fit to communicate so much of your case to me, if it be so, 
as is necessary, for I do not desire to pry into those things, I 
perhaps may be in a position to help you and to make you 
perfectly easy, and remove all your dull thoughts upon that 
subject.' 
Every word this creature said was a cordial to me, and put 
new life and new spirit into my heart; my blood began to 
circulate immediately, and I was quite another body; I ate my 
victuals again, and grew better presently after it. She said a 
great deal more to the same purpose, and then, having pressed 
me to be free with her, and promised in the solemnest manner 
to be secret, she stopped a little, as if waiting to see what 
impression it made on me, and what I would say. 
I was to sensible too the want I was in of such a woman, not 
to accept her offer; I told her my case was partly as she 
guessed, and partly not, for I was really married, and had a 
husband, though he was in such fine circumstances and so 
remote at that time, as that he could not appear publicly. 
She took me short, and told me that was none of her business; 
all the ladies that came under her care were married women 
to her. 'Every woman,' she says, 'that is with child has a father 
for it,' and whether that father was a husband or no husband, 
was no business of hers; her business was to assist me in my 
present circumstances, whether I had a husband or no. 'For, 
madam,' says she, 'to have a husband that cannot appear, is 
to have no husband in the sense of the case; and, therefore, 
whether you are a wife or a mistress is all one to me.' 
I found presently, that whether I was a whore or a wife, I was 
to pass for a whore here, so I let that go. I told her it was 
true, as she said, but that, however, if I must tell her my case, 
I must tell it her as it was; so I related it to her as short as I 
could, and I concluded it to her thus. 'I trouble you with all 
this, madam,' said I, 'not that, as you said before, it is much 
to the purpose in your affair, but this is to the purpose, namely, 
that I am not in any pain about being seen, or being public or 
concealed, for 'tis perfectly indifferent to me; but my difficulty 
is, that I have no acquaintance in this part of the nation.' 
'I understand you, madam' says she; 'you have no security to 
bring to prevent the parish impertinences usual in such cases, 
and perhaps,' says she, 'do not know very well how to dispose 
of the child when it comes.' 'The last,' says I, 'is not so much 
my concern as the first.' 'Well, madam,' answered the midwife, 
'dare you put yourself into my hands? I live in such a place; 
though I do not inquire after you, you may inquire after me. 
My name is B----; I live in such a street'--naming the street--' 
at the sign of the Cradle. My profession is a midwife, and I 
have many ladies that come to my house to lie in. I have given 
security to the parish in general terms to secure them from any 
charge from whatsoever shall come into the world under my 
roof. I have but one question to ask in the whole affair, madam,' 
says she, 'and if that be answered you shall be entirely easy for 
all the rest.' 
I presently understood what she meant, and told her, 'Madam, 
I believe I understand you. I thank God, though I want friends 
in this part of the world, I do not want money, so far as may 
be necessary, though I do not abound in that neither': this I 
added because I would not make her expect great things. 
'Well, madam,' says she, 'that is the thing indeed, without 
which nothing can be done in these cases; and yet,' says she, 
'you shall see that I will not impose upon you, or offer anything 
that is unkind to you, and if you desire it, you shall know 
everything beforehand, that you may suit yourself to the 
occasion, and be neither costly or sparing as you see fit.' 
I told her she seemed to be so perfectly sensible of my condition, 
that I had nothing to ask of her but this, that as I had told her 
that I had money sufficient, but not a great quantity, she would 
order it so that I might be at as little superfluous charge as 
possible. 
She replied that she would bring in an account of the expenses 
of it in two or three shapes, and like a bill of fare, I should 
choose as I pleased; and I desired her to do so. 
The next day she brought it, and the copy of her three bills 
was a follows:-
1. For three months' lodging in her house, including 
my diet, at 10s. a week . . . . . .6#, 0s., 0d. 
2. For a nurse for the month, and use of childbed 
linen . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .1#, 10s., 0d. 
3. For a minister to christen the child, and to the 
godfathers and clerk . . . . . . . .1#, 10s., 0d. 
4. For a supper at the christening if I had five friends 
at it . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .1#, 0s., 0d. 
For her fees as a midwife, and the taking off the 
trouble of the parish . . . . . . . . 3#, 3s., 0d. 
To her maid servant attending . 0#, 10s., 0d. 
________________ 
13#, 13s. 0d 
This was the first bill; the second was the same terms:-
1. For three months' lodging and diet, etc., at 20s. 
per week . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .13#, 0s., 0d. 
2. For a nurse for the month, and the use of linen 
and lace . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .2#, 10s., 0d. 
3. For the minister to christen the child, etc., as 
above . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2#, 0s., 0d. 
4. For supper and for sweetmeats
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 3#, 3s., 0d.
For her fees as above . . . . . . 5#, 5s., 0d. 
For a servant-maid . . . . . . . . 1#, 0s., 0d. 
_______________ 
26#, 18s., 0d 
This was the second-rate bill; the third, she said, was for 
a degree higher, and when the father or friends appeared:-
1. For three months' lodging and diet, having two
rooms and a garret for a servant . . 30#, 0s., 0d.,
2. For a nurse for the month, and the finest suit
of childbed linen . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 4#, 4s., 0d.
3. For the minister to christen the child, etc.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2#, 10s., 0d.
4. For a super, the gentlemen to send in the
wine . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 6#, 0s., 0d.
For my fees, etc. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 10#, 10s., 0d. 
The maid, besides their own maid, only 
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 0#, 10s., 0d. 
_________________ 
53#, 14s., 0d. 
I looked upon all three bills, and smiled, and told her I did not 
see but that she was very reasonable in her demands, all things 
considered, and for that I did not doubt but her accommodations 
were good. 
She told me I should be judge of that when I saw them. I told 
her I was sorry to tell her that I geared I must be her lowestrated 
customer. 'And perhaps, madam,' said I, 'you will make 
me the less welcome upon that account.' 'No, not at all,' said 
she; 'for where I have one of the third sort I have two of the 
second, and four to one of the first, and I get as much by them 
in proportion as by any; but if you doubt my care of you, I will 
allow any friend you have to overlook and see if you are well 
waited on or no.' 
Then she explained the particulars of her bill. 'In the first place, 
madam,' said she, 'I would have you observe that here is three 
months' keeping; you are but ten shillings a week; I undertake 
to say you will not complain of my table. I suppose,' says she, 
'you do not live cheaper where you are now?' 'No, indeed,' 
said I, 'not so cheap, for I give six shillings per week for my 
chamber, and find my own diet as well as I can, which costs 
me a great deal more.' 
'Then, madam,' says she, 'if the child should not live, or should 
be dead-born, as you know sometimes happens, then there is 
the minister's article saved; and if you have no friends to come 
to you, you may save the expense of a supper; so that take those 
articles out, madam,' says she, 'your lying in will not cost you 
above #5, 3s. in all more than your ordinary charge of living.' 
This was the most reasonable thing that I ever heard of; so I 
smiled, and told her I would come and be her customer; but I 
told her also, that as I had two months and more to do, I might 
perhaps be obliged to stay longer with her than three months, 
and desired to know if she would not be obliged to remove me 
before it was proper. No, she said; her house was large, and 
besides, she never put anybody to remove, that had lain in, till 
they were willing to go; and if she had more ladies offered, she 
was not so ill-beloved among her neighbours but she could 
provide accommodations for twenty, if there was occasion. 
I found she was an eminent lady in her way; and, in short, I 
agreed to put myself into her hands, and promised her. She 
then talked of other things, looked about into my accommodations 
where I was, found fault with my wanting attendance and 
conveniences, and that I should not be used so at her house. 
I told her I was shy of speaking, for the woman of the house 
looked stranger, or at least I thought so, since I had been ill, 
because I was with child; and I was afraid she would put some 
affront or other upon me, supposing that I had been able to 
give but a slight account of myself. 
'Oh dear,' said she, 'her ladyship is no stranger to these things; 
she has tried to entertain ladies in your condition several times, 
but she could not secure the parish; and besides, she is not such a 
nice lady as you take her to be; however, since you are a-going, 
you shall not meddle with her, but I'll see you are a little better 
looked after while you are here than I think you are, and it shall 
not cost you the more neither.' 
I did not understand her at all; however, I thanked her, and so 
we parted. The next morning she sent me a chicken roasted 
and hot, and a pint bottle of sherry, and ordered the maid to 
tell me that she was to wait on me every day as long as I stayed 
there. 
This was surprisingly good and kind, and I accepted it very 
willingly. At night she sent to me again, to know if I wanted 
anything, and how I did, and to order the maid to come to her 
in the morning with my dinner. The maid had orders to make 
me some chocolate in the morning before she came away, and 
did so, and at noon she brought me the sweetbread of a breast 
of veal, whole, and a dish of soup for my dinner; and after this 
manner she nursed me up at a distance, so that I was mightily 
well pleased, and quickly well, for indeed my dejections before 
were the principal part of my illness. 
I expected, as is usually the case among such people, that the 
servant she sent me would have been some imprudent brazen 
wench of Drury Lane breeding, and I was very uneasy at having 
her with me upon that account; so I would not let her lie in 
that house the first night by any means, but had my eyes about 
me as narrowly as if she had been a public thief. 
My gentlewoman guessed presently what was the matter, and 
sent her back with a short note, that I might depend upon the 
honesty of her maid; that she would be answerable for her upon 
all accounts; and that she took no servants into her house 
without very good security for their fidelity. I was then perfectly 
easy; and indeed the maid's behaviour spoke for itself, for a 
modester, quieter, soberer girl never came into anybody's family, 
and I found her so afterwards. 
As soon as I was well enough to go abroad, I went with the 
maid to see the house, and to see the apartment I was to have; 
and everything was so handsome and so clean and well, that, 
in short, I had nothing to say, but was wonderfully pleased 
and satisfied with what I had met with, which, considering 
the melancholy circumstances I was in, was far beyond what 
I looked for. 
It might be expected that I should give some account of the 
nature of the wicked practices of this woman, in whose hands 
I was now fallen; but it would be too much encouragement to 
the vice, to let the world see what easy measures were here 
taken to rid the women's unwelcome burthen of a child 
clandestinely gotten. This grave matron had several sorts of 
practice, and this was one particular, that if a child was born, 
though not in her house (for she had occasion to be called to 
many private labours), she had people at hand, who for a piece 
of money would take the child off their hands, and off from 
the hands of the parish too; and those children, as she said, 
were honestly provided for and taken care of. What should 
become of them all, considering so many, as by her account 
she was concerned with, I cannot conceive. 
I had many times discourses upon that subject with her; but 
she was full of this argument, that she save the life of many an 
innocent lamb, as she called them, which would otherwise 
perhaps have been murdered; and of many women who, made 
desperate by the misfortune, would otherwise be tempted to 
destroy their children, and bring themselves to the gallows. I 
granted her that this was true, and a very commendable thing, 
provided the poor children fell into good hands afterwards, 
and were not abused, starved, and neglected by the nurses 
that bred them up. She answered, that she always took care 
of that, and had no nurses in her business but what were very 
good, honest people, and such as might be depended upon. 
I could say nothing to the contrary, and so was obliged to say, 
'Madam, I do not question you do your part honestly, but what 
those people do afterwards is the main question'; and she 
stopped my mouth again with saying that she took the utmost 
care about it. 
The only thing I found in all her conversation on these subjects 
that gave me any distaste, was, that one time in discouraging 
about my being far gone with child, and the time I expected 
to come, she said something that looked as if she could help 
me off with my burthen sooner, if I was willing; or, in English, 
that she could give me something to make me miscarry, if I 
had a desire to put an end to my troubles that way; but I soon 
let her see that I abhorred the thoughts of it; and, to do her 
justice, she put it off so cleverly, that I could not say she really 
intended it, or whether she only mentioned the practice as a 
horrible thing; for she couched her words so well, and took my 
meaning so quickly, that she gave her negative before I could 
explain myself. 
To bring this part into as narrow a compass as possible, I quitted 
my lodging at St. Jones's and went to my new governess, for 
so they called her in the house, and there I was indeed treated 
with so much courtesy, so carefully looked to, so handsomely 
provided, and everything so well, that I was surprised at it, and 
could not at first see what advantage my governess made of it; 
but I found afterwards that she professed to make no profit of 
lodgers' diet, nor indeed could she get much by it, but that 
her profit lay in the other articles of her management, and she 
made enough that way, I assure you; for 'tis scarce credible 
what practice she had, as well abroad as at home, and yet all 
upon the private account, or, in plain English, the whoring 
account. 
While I was in her house, which was near four months, she 
had no less than twelve ladies of pleasure brought to bed within 
the doors, and I think she had two-and-thirty, or thereabouts, 
under her conduct without doors, whereof one, as nice as she 
was with me, was lodged with my old landlady at St. Jones's. 
This was a strange testimony of the growing vice of the age, 
and such a one, that as bad as I had been myself, it shocked 
my very senses. I began to nauseate the place I was in and, 
about all, the wicked practice; and yet I must say that I never 
saw, or do I believe there was to be seen, the least indecency 
in the house the whole time I was there. 
Not a man was ever seen to come upstairs, except to visit the 
lying-in ladies within their month, nor then without the old lady 
with them, who made it a piece of honour of her management 
that no man should touch a woman, no, not his own wife, within 
the month; nor would she permit any man to lie in the house 
upon any pretence whatever, no, not though she was sure it 
was with his own wife; and her general saying for it was, that 
she cared not how many children were born in her house, but 
she would have none got there if she could help it. 
It might perhaps be carried further than was needful, but it was 
an error of the right hand if it was an error, for by this she kept 
up the reputation, such as it was, of her business, and obtained 
this character, that though she did take care of the women when 
they were debauched, yet she was not instrumental to their being 
debauched at all; and yet it was a wicked trade she drove too. 
While I was there, and before I was brought to bed, I received 
a letter from my trustee at the bank, full of kind, obliging things, 
and earnestly pressing me to return to London. It was near a 
fortnight old when it came to me, because it had been first sent 
into Lancashire, and then returned to me. He concludes with 
telling me that he had obtained a decree, I think he called it, 
against his wife, and that he would be ready to make good his 
engagement to me, if I would accept of him, adding a great 
many protestations of kindness and affection, such as he would 
have been far from offering if he had known the circumstances 
I had been in, and which as it was I had been very far from 
deserving. 
I returned an answer to his letter, and dated it at Liverpool, 
but sent it by messenger, alleging that it came in cover to a 
friend in town. I gave him joy of his deliverance, but raised 
some scruples at the lawfulness of his marrying again, and told 
him I supposed he would consider very seriously upon that 
point before he resolved on it, the consequence being too great 
for a man of his judgment to venture rashly upon a thing of that 
nature; so concluded, wishing him very well in whatever he 
resolved, without letting him into anything of my own mind, 
or giving any answer to his proposal of my coming to London 
to him, but mentioned at a distance my intention to return the 
latter end of the year, this being dated in April. 
I was brought to bed about the middle of May and had another 
brave boy, and myself in as good condition as usual on such 
occasions. My governess did her part as a midwife with the 
greatest art and dexterity imaginable, and far beyond all that 
ever I had had any experience of before. 
Her care of me in my travail, and after in my lying in, was 
such, that if she had been my own mother it could not have 
been better. Let none be encouraged in their loose practices 
from this dexterous lady's management, for she is gone to her 
place, and I dare say has left nothing behind her that can or 
will come up on it. 
I think I had been brought to bed about twenty-two days when 
I received another letter from my friend at the bank, with the 
surprising news that he had obtained a final sentence of divorce 
against his wife, and had served her with it on such a day, and 
that he had such an answer to give to all my scruples about his 
marrying again, as I could not expect, and as he had no desire 
of; for that his wife, who had been under some remorse before 
for her usage of him, as soon as she had the account that he 
had gained his point, had very unhappily destroyed herself that 
same evening. 
He expressed himself very handsomely as to his being concerned 
at her disaster, but cleared himself of having any hand in it, 
and that he had only done himself justice in a case in which he 
was notoriously injured and abused. However, he said that 
he was extremely afflicted at it, and had no view of any 
satisfaction left in his world, but only in the hope that I would 
come and relieve him by my company; and then he pressed me 
violently indeed to give him some hopes that I would at least 
come up to town and let him see me, when he would further 
enter into discourse about it. 
I was exceedingly surprised at the news, and began now 
seriously to reflect on my present circumstances, and the 
inexpressible misfortune it was to me to have a child upon my 
hands, and what to do in it I knew not. At last I opened my 
case at a distance to my governess. I appeared melancholy 
and uneasy for several days, and she lay at me continually to 
know what trouble me. I could not for my life tell her that I 
had an offer of marriage, after I had so often told her that I 
had a husband, so that I really knew not what to say to her. I 
owned I had something which very much troubled me, but at 
the same time told her I could not speak of it to any one alive. 
She continued importuning me several days, but it was 
impossible, I told her, for me to commit the secret to anybody. 
This, instead of being an answer to her, increased her 
importunities; she urged her having been trusted with the 
greatest secrets of this nature, that it was her business to 
conceal everything, and that to discover things of that nature 
would be her ruin. She asked me if ever I had found her tattling 
to me of other people's affairs, and how could I suspect her? 
She told me, to unfold myself to her was telling it to nobody; 
that she was silent as death; that it must be a very strange case 
indeed that she could not help me out of; but to conceal it was 
to deprive myself of all possible help, or means of help, and to 
deprive her of the opportunity of serving me. In short, she had 
such a bewitching eloquence, and so great a power of persuasion 
that there was no concealing anything from her. 
So I resolved to unbosom myself to her. I told her the history 
of my Lancashire marriage, and how both of us had been 
disappointed; how we came together, and how we parted; how 
he absolutely discharged me, as far as lay in him, free liberty to 
marry again, protesting that if he knew it he would never claim 
me, or disturb or expose me; that I thought I was free, but was 
dreadfully afraid to venture, for fear of the consequences that 
might follow in case of a discovery. 
Then I told her what a good offer I had; showed her my friend's 
two last letters, inviting me to come to London, and let her see 
with what affection and earnestness they were written, but 
blotted out the name, and also the story about the disaster of 
his wife, only that she was dead. 
She fell a-laughing at my scruples about marrying, and told 
me the other was no marriage, but a cheat on both sides; and 
that, as we were parted by mutual consent, the nature of the 
contract was destroyed, and the obligation was mutually 
discharged. She had arguments for this at the tip of her tongue; 
and, in short, reasoned me out of my reason; not but that it 
was too by the help of my own inclination. 
But then came the great and main difficulty, and that was the 
child; this, she told me in so many words, must be removed, 
and that so as that it should never be possible for any one to 
discover it. I knew there was no marrying without entirely 
concealing that I had had a child, for he would soon have 
discovered by the age of it that it was born, nay, and gotten 
too, since my parley with him, and that would have destroyed 
all the affair. 
But it touched my heart so forcibly to think of parting entirely 
with the child, and, for aught I knew, of having it murdered, 
or starved by neglect and ill-usage (which was much the same), 
that I could not think of it without horror. I wish all those 
women who consent to the disposing their children out of the 
way, as it is called, for decency sake, would consider that 'tis 
only a contrived method for murder; that is to say, a-killing 
their children with safety. 
It is manifest to all that understand anything of children, that 
we are born into the world helpless, and incapable either to 
supply our own wants or so much as make them known; and 
that without help we must perish; and this help requires not 
only an assisting hand, whether of the mother or somebody 
else, but there are two things necessary in that assisting hand, 
that is, care and skill; without both which, half the children 
that are born would die, nay, thought they were not to be 
denied food; and one half more of those that remained would 
be cripples or fools, lose their limbs, and perhaps their sense. 
I question not but that these are partly the reasons why affection 
was placed by nature in the hearts of mothers to their children; 
without which they would never be able to give themselves up, 
as 'tis necessary they should, to the care and waking pains 
needful to the support of their children. 
Since this care is needful to the life of children, to neglect them 
is to murder them; again, to give them up to be managed by 
those people who have none of that needful affection placed 
by nature in them, is to neglect them in the highest degree; nay, 
in some it goes farther, and is a neglect in order to their being 
lost; so that 'tis even an intentional murder, whether the child 
lives or dies. 
All those things represented themselves to my view, and that 
is the blackest and most frightful form: and as I was very free 
with my governess, whom I had now learned to call mother, 
I represented to her all the dark thoughts which I had upon 
me about it, and told her what distress I was in. She seemed 
graver by much at this part than at the other; but as she was 
hardened in these things beyond all possibility of being touched 
with the religious part, and the scruples about the murder, so 
she was equally impenetrable in that part which related to 
affection. She asked me if she had not been careful and tender 
to me in my lying in, as if I had been her own child. I told her 
I owned she had. 'Well, my dear,' says she, 'and when you 
are gone, what are you to me? And what would it be to me 
if you were to be hanged? Do you think there are not women 
who, as it is their trade and they get their bread by it, value 
themselves upon their being as careful of children as their own 
mothers can be, and understand it rather better? Yes, yes, 
child,' says she, 'fear it not; how were we nursed ourselves? 
Are you sure you was nursed up by your own mother? and 
yet you look fat and fair, child,' says the old beldam; and with 
that she stroked me over the face. 'Never be concerned, child,' 
says she, going on in her drolling way; 'I have no murderers 
about me; I employ the best and the honestest nurses that can 
be had, and have as few children miscarry under their hands 
as there would if they were all nursed by mothers; we want 
neither care nor skill.' 
She touched me to the quick when she asked if I was sure 
that I was nursed by my own mother; on the contrary I was 
sure I was not; and I trembled, and looked pale at the very 
expression. 'Sure,' said I to myself, 'this creature cannot be 
a witch, or have any conversation with a spirit, that can inform 
her what was done with me before I was able to know it myself'; 
and I looked at her as if I had been frightened; but reflecting 
that it could not be possible for her to know anything about 
me, that disorder went off, and I began to be easy, but it was 
not presently. 
She perceived the disorder I was in, but did not know the 
meaning of it; so she ran on in her wild talk upon the weakness 
of my supposing that children were murdered because they 
were not all nursed by the mother, and to persuade me that 
the children she disposed of were as well used as if the mothers 
had the nursing of them themselves. 
'It may be true, mother,' says I, 'for aught I know, but my 
doubts are very strongly grounded indeed.' 'Come, then,' says 
she, 'let's hear some of them.' 'Why, first,' says I, 'you give 
a piece of money to these people to take the child off the 
parent's hands, and to take care of it as long as it lives. Now 
we know, mother,' said I, 'that those are poor people, and 
their gain consists in being quit of the charge as soon as they 
can; how can I doubt but that, as it is best for them to have 
the child die, they are not over solicitous about life?' 
'This is all vapours and fancy,' says the old woman; 'I tell you 
their credit depends upon the child's life, and they are as careful 
as any mother of you all.' 
'O mother,' says I, 'if I was but sure my little baby would be 
carefully looked to, and have justice done it, I should be happy 
indeed; but it is impossible I can be satisfied in that point 
unless I saw it, and to see it would be ruin and destruction to 
me, as now my case stands; so what to do I know not.' 
'A fine story!' says the governess. 'You would see the child, 
and you would not see the child; you would be concealed and 
discovered both together. These are things impossible, my 
dear; so you must e'en do as other conscientious mothers have 
done before you, and be contented with things as they must be, 
though they are not as you wish them to be.' 
I understood what she meant by conscientious mothers; she 
would have said conscientious whores, but she was not willing 
to disoblige me, for really in this case I was not a whore, 
because legally married, the force of former marriage excepted. 
However, let me be what I would, I was not come up to that 
pitch of hardness common to the profession; I mean, to be 
unnatural, and regardless of the safety of my child; and I 
preserved this honest affection so long, that I was upon the 
point of giving up my friend at the bank, who lay so hard at 
me to come to him and marry him, that, in short, there was 
hardly any room to deny him. 
At last my old governess came to me, with her usual assurance. 
'Come, my dear,' says she, 'I have found out a way how you 
shall be at a certainty that your child shall be used well, and 
yet the people that take care of it shall never know you, or 
who the mother of the child is.' 
'Oh mother,' says I, 'if you can do so, you will engage me to 
you for ever.' 'Well,' says she, 'are you willing to be a some 
small annual expense, more than what we usually give to the 
people we contract with?' 'Ay,' says I, 'with all my heart, 
provided I may be concealed.' 'As to that,' says the governess, 
'you shall be secure, for the nurse shall never so much as dare 
to inquire about you, and you shall once or twice a year go 
with me and see yourchild, and see how 'tis used, and be 
satisfied that it is in good hands, nobody knowing who you are.' 
'Why,' said I, 'do you think, mother, that when I come to see 
my child, I shall be able to conceal my being the mother of it? 
Do you think that possible?' 
'Well, well,' says my governess, 'if you discover it, the nurse 
shall be never the wiser; for she shall be forbid to ask any 
questions about you, or to take any notice. If she offers it, 
she shall lose the money which you are suppose to give her, 
and the child shall be taken from her too.' 
I was very well pleased with this. So the next week a 
countrywoman was brought from Hertford, or thereabouts, 
who was to take the child off our hands entirely for #10 in 
money. But if I would allow #5 a year more of her, she would 
be obliged to bring the child to my governess's house as often 
as we desired, or we should come down and look at it, and see 
how well she used it. 
The woman was very wholesome-looking, a likely woman, 
a cottager's wife, but she had very good clothes and linen, and 
everything well about her; and with a heavy heart and many a 
tear, I let her have my child. I had been down at Hertford, and 
looked at her and at her dwelling, which I liked well enough; 
and I promised her great things if she would be kind to the 
child, so she knew at first word that I was the child's mother. 
But she seemed to be so much out of the way, and to have no 
room to inquire after me, that I thought I was safe enough. 
So, in short, I consented to let her have the child, and I gave 
her #10; that is to say, I gave it to my governess, who gave it 
the poor woman before my face, she agreeing never to return 
the child back to me, or to claim anything more for its keeping 
or bringing up; only that I promised, if she took a great deal 
of care of it, I would give her something more as often as I 
came to see it; so that I was not bound to pay the #5, only 
that I promised my governess I would do it. And thus my 
great care was over, after a manner, which though it did not 
at all satisfy my mind, yet was the most convenient for me, 
as my affairs then stood, of any that could be thought of at 
that time. 
I then began to write to my friend at the bank in a more kindly 
style, and particularly about the beginning of July I sent him a 
letter, that I proposed to be in town some time in August. He 
returned me an answer in the most passionate terms imaginable, 
and desired me to let him have timely notice, and he would 
come and meet me, two day's journey. This puzzled me scurvily, 
and I did not know what answer to make of it. Once I resolved 
to take the stage-coach to West Chester, on purpose only to 
have the satisfaction of coming back, that he might see me 
really come in the same coach; for I had a jealous thought, 
though I had no ground for it at all, lest he should think I was 
not really in the country. And it was no ill-grounded thought 
as you shall hear presently. 
I endeavoured to reason myself out of it, but it was in vain; 
the impression lay so strong on my mind, that it was not to 
be resisted. At last it came as an addition to my new design 
of going into the country, that it would be an excellent blind 
to my old governess, and would cover entirely all my other 
affairs, for she did not know in the least whether my new lover 
lived in London or in Lancashire; and when I told her my 
resolution, she was fully persuaded it was in Lancashire. 
Having taken my measure for this journey I let her know it, 
and sent the maid that tended me, from the beginning, to take 
a place for me in the coach. She would have had me let the 
maid have waited on me down to the last stage, and come up 
again in the waggon, but I convinced her it would not be 
convenient. When I went away, she told me she would enter 
into no measures for correspondence, for she saw evidently 
that my affection to my child would cause me to write to her, 
and to visit her too when I came to town again. I assured her 
it would, and so took my leave, well satisfied to have been 
freed from such a house, however good my accommodations 
there had been, as I have related above. 
I took the place in the coach not to its full extent, but to a 
place called Stone, in Cheshire, I think it is, where I not only 
had no manner of business, but not so much as the least 
acquaintance with any person in the town or near it. But I 
knew that with money in the pocket one is at home anywhere; 
so I lodged there two or three days, till, watching my opportunity, 
I found room in another stage-coach, and took passage back 
again for London, sending a letter to my gentleman that I should 
be such a certain day at Stony-Stratford, where the coachman 
told me he was to lodge. 
It happened to be a chance coach that I had taken up, which, 
having been hired on purpose to carry some gentlemen to West 
Chester who were going for Ireland, was now returning, and 
did not tie itself to exact times or places as the stages did; so 
that, having been obliged to lie still on Sunday, he had time to 
get himself ready to come out, which otherwise he could not 
have done. 
However, his warning was so short, that he could not reach 
to Stony-Stratford time enough to be with me at night, but he 
met me at a place called Brickhill the next morning, as we 
were just coming in to tow. 
I confess I was very glad to see him, for I had thought myself 
a little disappointed over-night, seeing I had gone so far to 
contrive my coming on purpose. He pleased me doubly too 
by the figure he came in, for he brought a very handsome 
(gentleman's) coach and four horses, with a servant to attend 
him. 
He took me out of the stage-coach immediately, which stopped 
at an inn in Brickhill; and putting into the same in, he set up 
his own coach, and bespoke his dinner. I asked him what he 
meant by that, for I was for going forward with the journey. 
He said, No, I had need of a little rest upon the road, and that 
was a very good sort of a house, though it was but a little town; 
so we would go no farther that night, whatever came of it. 
I did not press him much, for since he had come so to meet 
me, and put himself to so much expense, it was but reasonable 
I should oblige him a little too; so I was easy as to that point. 
After dinner we walked to see the town, to see the church, 
and to view the fields, and the country, as is usual for strangers 
to do; and our landlord was our guide in going to see the 
church. I observed my gentleman inquired pretty much about 
the parson, and I took the hint immediately that he certainly 
would propose to be married; and though it was a sudden 
thought, it followed presently, that, in short, I would not refuse 
him; for, to be plain, with my circumstances I was in no 
condition now to say No; I had no reason now to run any more 
such hazards. 
But while these thoughts ran round in my head, which was the 
work but of a few moments, I observed my landlord took him 
aside and whispered to him, though not very softly neither, for 
so much I overheard: 'Sir, if you shall have occasion----' the 
rest I could not hear, but it seems it was to this purpose: 'Sir, 
if you shall have occasion for a minister, I have a friend a little 
way off that will serve you, and be as private as you please.' 
My gentleman answered loud enough for me to hear, 'Very 
well, I believe I shall.' 
I was no sooner come back to the inn but he fell upon me with 
irresistible words, that since he had had the good fortune to 
meet me, and everything concurred, it would be hastening his 
felicity if I would put an end to the matter just there. 'What 
do you mean?' says I, colouring a little. 'What, in an inn, and 
upon the road! Bless us all,' said I, as if I had been surprised, 
'how can you talk so?' 'Oh, I can talk so very well,' says he, 
'I came a-purpose to talk so, and I'll show you that I did'; and 
with that he pulls out a great bundle of papers. 'You fright me,' 
said I; 'what are all these?' 'Don't be frighted, my dear,' said 
he, and kissed me. This was the first time that he had been so 
free to call me 'my dear'; then he repeated it, 'Don't be frighted; 
you shall see what it is all'; then he laid them all abroad. There 
was first the deed or sentence of divorce from his wife, and 
the full evidence of her playing the whore; then there were the 
certificates of the minister and churchwardens of the parish 
where she lived, proving that she was buried, and intimating 
the manner of her death; the copy of the coroner's warrant for 
a jury to sit upon her, and the verdict of the jury, who brought 
it in Non compos mentis. All this was indeed to the purpose,
and to give me satisfaction, though, by the way, I was not so
scrupulous, had he known all, but that I might have taken him
without it. However, I looked them all over as well as I could,
and told him that this was all very clear indeed, but that he
need not have given himself the trouble to have brought them
out with him, for it was time enough. Well, he said, it might
be time enough for me, but notime but the present time was
time enough for him.
There were other papers rolled up, and I asked him what they
were. 'Why, ay,' says he, 'that's the question I wanted to have
you ask me'; so he unrolls them and takes out a little shagreen
case, and gives me out of it a very fine diamond ring. I could
not refuse it, if I had a mind to do so, for he put it upon my
finger; so I made him a curtsy and accepted it. Then he takes
out another ring: 'And this,' says he, 'is for another occasion,'
so he puts that in his pocket. 'Well, but let me see it, though,'
says I, and smiled; 'I guess what it is; I think you are mad.'
'I should have been mad if I had done less,' says he, and still
he did not show me, and I had a great mind to see it; so I says,
'Well, but let me see it.' 'Hold,' says he, 'first look here';
then he took up the roll again and read it, and behold! it was
a licence for us to be married. 'Why,' says I, 'are you distracted?
Why, you were fully satisfied that I would comply and yield
at first word, or resolved to take no denial.' 'The last is
certainly the case,' said he. 'But you may be mistaken,' said I.
'No, no,' says he, 'how can you think so? I must not be denied,
I can't be denied'; and with that he fell to kissing me so violently,
I could not get rid of him.
There was a bed in the room, and we were walking to and
again, eager in the discourse; at last he takes me by surprise
in his arms, and threw me on the bed and himself with me,
and holding me fast in his arms, but without the least offer of
any indecency, courted me to consent with such repeated
entreaties and arguments, protesting his affection, and vowing
he would not let me go till I had promised him, that at last I
said, 'Why, you resolve not to be denied, indeed, I can't be
denied.' 'Well, well,' said I, and giving him a slight kiss, 'then
you shan't be denied,' said I; 'let me get up.'
He was so transported with my consent, and the kind manner
of it, that I began to think once he took it for a marriage, and
would not stay for the form; but I wronged him, for he gave
over kissing me, and then giving me two or three kisses again,
thanked me for my kind yielding to him; and was so overcome
with the satisfaction and joy of it, that I saw tears stand in his eyes.
I turned from him, for it filled my eyes with tears too, and I
asked him leave to retire a little to my chamber. If ever I had
a grain of true repentance for a vicious and abominable life
for twenty-four years past, it was then. On, what a felicity is
it to mankind, said I to myself, that they cannot see into the
hearts of one another! How happy had it been for me if I had
been wife to a man of so much honesty, and so much affection
from the beginning!
Then it occurred to me, 'What an abominable creature am I!
and how is this innocent gentleman going to be abused by me!
How little does he think, that having divorced a whore, he is
throwing himself into the arms of another! that he is going to
marry one that has lain with two brothers, and has had three
children by her own brother! one that was born in Newgate,
whose mother was a whore, and is now a transported thief! 
one that has lain with thirteen men, and has had a child since 
he saw me! Poor gentleman!' said I, 'what is he going to do?' 
After this reproaching myself was over, it following thus: 
'Well, if I must be his wife, if it please God to give me grace, 
I'll be a true wife to him, and love him suitably to the strange 
excess of his passion for me; I will make him amends if possible,
 by what he shall see, for the cheats and abuses I put upon him, 
which he does not see.' 
He was impatient for my coming out of my chamber, but 
finding me long, he went downstairs and talked with my 
landlord about the parson. 
My landlord, an officious though well-meaning fellow, had sent 
away for the neighbouring clergyman; and when my gentleman 
began to speak of it to him, and talk of sending for him, 'Sir,' 
says he to him, 'my friend is in the house'; so without any more 
words he brought them together. When he came to the minister, 
he asked him if he would venture to marry a couple of strangers 
that were both willing. The parson said that Mr.---- had said 
something to him of it; that he hoped it was no clandestine 
business; that he seemed to be a grave gentleman, and he 
supposed madam was not a girl, so that the consent of friends 
should be wanted. 'To put you out of doubt of that,' says my 
gentleman, 'read this paper'; and out he pulls the license. 'I 
am satisfied,' says the minister; 'where is the lady?' 'You 
shall see her presently,' says my gentleman. 
When he had said thus he comes upstairs, and I was by that 
time come out of my room; so he tells me the minister was 
below, and that he had talked with him, and that upon showing 
him the license, he was free to marry us with all his heart, 'but 
he asks to see you'; so he asked if I would let him come up. 
''Tis time enough,' said I, 'in the morning, is it not?' 'Why,' 
said he, 'my dear, he seemed to scruple whether it was not 
some young girl stolen from her parents, and I assured him we 
were both of age to command our own consent; and that made 
him ask to see you.' 'Well,' said I, 'do as you please'; so up 
they brings the parson, and a merry, good sort of gentleman 
he was. He had been told, it seems, that we had met there by 
accident, that I came in the Chester coach, and my gentleman 
in his own coach to meet me; that we were to have met last 
night at Stony-Stratford, but that he could not reach so far. 
'Well, sir,' says the parson, 'every ill turn has some good in it. 
The disappointment, sir,' says he to my gentleman, 'was yours, 
and the good turn is mine, for if you had met at Stony-Stratford 
I had not had the honour to marry you. Landlord, have you a 
Common Prayer Book?' 
I started as if I had been frightened. 'Lord, sir,' says I, 'what 
do you mean? What, to marry in an inn, and at night too?' 
'Madam,' says the minister, 'if you will have it be in the church, 
you shall; but I assure you your marriage will be as firm here 
as in the church; we are not tied by the canons to marry nowhere 
but in the church; and if you will have it in the church, it 
will be a public as a county fair; and as for the time of day, it 
does not at all weigh in this case; our princes are married in 
their chambers, and at eight or ten o'clock at night.' 
I was a great while before I could be persuaded, and pretended 
not to be willing at all to be married but in the church. But 
it was all grimace; so I seemed at last to be prevailed on, and 
my landlord and his wife and daughter were called up. My 
landlord was father and clerk and all together, and we were 
married, and very merry we were; though I confess the 
self-reproaches which I had upon me before lay close to me, 
and extorted every now and then a deep sigh from me, which 
my bridegroom took notice of, and endeavoured to encourage 
me, thinking, poor man, that I had some little hesitations at 
the step I had taken so hastily. 
We enjoyed ourselves that evening completely, and yet all was 
kept so private in the inn that not a servant in the house knew 
of it, for my landlady and her daughter waited on me, and 
would not let any of the maids come upstairs, except while we 
were at supper. My landlady's daughter I called my bridesmaid; 
and sending for a shopkeeper the next morning, I gave the young 
woman a good suit of knots, as good as the town would afford, 
and finding it was a lace-making town, I gave her mother a 
piece of bone-lace for a head. 
One reason that my landlord was so close was, that he was 
unwilling the minister of the parish should hear of it; but for 
all that somebody heard of it, so at that we had the bells set 
a-ringing the next morning early, and the music, such as the 
town would afford, under our window; but my landlord 
brazened it out, that we were married before we came thither, 
only that, being his former guests, we would have our 
wedding-supper at his house. 
We could not find in our hearts to stir the next day; for, in 
short, having been disturbed by the bells in the morning, and 
having perhaps not slept overmuch before, we were so sleepy 
afterwards that we lay in bed till almost twelve o'clock. 
I begged my landlady that we might not have any more music 
in the town, nor ringing of bells, and she managed it so well 
that we were very quiet; but an odd passage interrupted all my 
mirth for a good while. The great room of the house looked 
into the street, and my new spouse being belowstairs, I had 
walked to the end of the room; and it being a pleasant, warm 
day, I had opened the window, and was standing at it for some 
air, when I saw three gentlemen come by on horseback and go 
into an inn just against us. 
It was not to be concealed, nor was it so doubtful as to leave 
me any room to question it, but the second of the three was 
my Lancashire husband. I was frightened to death; I never 
was in such a consternation in my life; I though I should have 
sunk into the ground; my blood ran chill in my veins, and I 
trembled as if I had been in a cold fit of ague. I say, there 
was no room to question the truth of it; I knew his clothes, I 
knew his horse, and I knew his face. 
The first sensible reflect I made was, that my husband was 
not by to see my disorder, and that I was very glad of it. The 
gentlemen had not been long in the house but they came to 
the window of their room, as is usual; but my window was 
shut, you may be sure. However, I could not keep from 
peeping at them, and there I saw him again, heard him call out 
to one of the servants of the house for something he wanted, 
and received all the terrifying confirmations of its being the 
same person that were possible to be had. 
My next concern was to know, if possible, what was his business 
there; but that was impossible. Sometimes my imagination 
formed an idea of one frightful thing, sometimes of another; 
sometime I thought he had discovered me, and was come to 
upbraid me with ingratitude and breach of honour; and every 
moment I fancied he was coming up the stairs to insult me; and 
innumerable fancies came into my head of what was never in 
his head, nor ever could be, unless the devil had revealed it to 
him. 
I remained in this fright nearly two hours, and scarce ever kept 
my eye from the window or door of the inn where they were. 
At last, hearing a great clatter in the passage of their inn, I ran 
to the window, and, to my great satisfaction, saw them all three 
go out again and travel on westward. Had they gone towards 
London, I should have been still in a fright, lest I should meet 
him on the road again, and that he should know me; but he 
went the contrary way, and so I was eased of that disorder. 
We resolved to be going the next day, but about six o'clock 
at night we were alarmed with a great uproar in the street, and 
people riding as if they had been out of their wits; and what 
was it but a hue-and-cry after three highwaymen that had 
robbed two coaches and some other travellers near Dunstable 
Hill, and notice had, it seems, been given that they had been 
seen at Brickhill at such a house, meaning the house where 
those gentlemen had been. 
The house was immediately beset and searched, but there were 
witnesses enough that the gentlemen had been gone over three 
hours. The crowd having gathered about, we had the news 
presently; and I was heartily concerned now another way. I 
presently told the people of the house, that I durst to say those 
were not the persons, for that I knew one of the gentlemen to 
be a very honest person, and of a good estate in Lancashire. 
The constable who came with the hue-and-cry was immediately 
informed of this, and came over to me to be satisfied from my 
own mouth, and I assured him that I saw the three gentlemen 
as I was at the window; that I saw them afterwards at the 
windows of the room they dined in; that I saw them afterwards 
take horse, and I could assure him I knew one of them to be 
such a man, that he was a gentleman of a very good estate, and 
an undoubted character in Lancashire, from whence I was just 
now upon my journey. 
The assurance with which I delivered this gave the mob gentry 
a check, and gave the constable such satisfaction, that he 
immediately sounded a retreat, told his people these were not 
the men, but that he had an account they were very honest 
gentlemen; and so they went all back again. What the truth of 
the matter was I knew not, but certain it was that the coaches 
were robbed at Dunstable Hill, and #560 in money taken; 
besides, some of the lace merchants that always travel that way 
had been visited too. As to the three gentlemen, that remains 
to be explained hereafter. 
Well, this alarm stopped us another day, though my spouse 
was for travelling, and told me that it was always safest travelling 
after a robbery, for that the thieves were sure to be gone far 
enough off when they had alarmed the country; but I was afraid 
and uneasy, and indeed principally lest my old acquaintance 
should be upon the road still, and should chance to see me. 
I never lived four pleasanter days together in my life. I was a 
mere bride all this while, and my new spouse strove to make 
me entirely easy in everything. Oh could this state of life have 
continued, how had all my past troubles been forgot, and my 
future sorrows avoided! But I had a past life of a most wretched 
kind to account for, some if it in this world as well as in another. 
We came away the fifth day; and my landlord, because he saw 
me uneasy, mounted himself, his son, and three honest country 
fellows with good firearms, and, without telling us of it, 
followed the coach, and would see us safe into Dunstable. We 
could do no less than treat them very handsomely at Dunstable, 
which cost my spouse about ten or twelve shillings, and 
something he gave the men for their time too, but my landlord 
would take nothing for himself. 
This was the most happy contrivance for me that could have 
fallen out; for had I come to London unmarried, I must either 
have come to him for the first night's entertainment, or have 
discovered to him that I had not one acquaintance in the whole 
city of London that could receive a poor bridge for the first 
night's lodging with her spouse. But now, being an old married 
woman, I made no scruple of going directly home with him, 
and there I took possession at once of a house well furnished, 
and a husband in very good circumstances, so that I had a 
prospect of a very happy life, if I knew how to manage it; and 
I had leisure to consider of the real value of the life I was likely 
to live. How different it was to be from the loose ungoverned 
part I had acted before, and how much happier a life of virtue 
and sobriety is, than that which we call a life of pleasure. 
Oh had this particular scene of life lasted, or had I learned 
from that time I enjoyed it, to have tasted the true sweetness 
of it, and had I not fallen into that poverty which is the sure 
bane of virtue, how happy had I been, not only here, but perhaps 
for ever! for while I lived thus, I was really a penitent for all 
my life past. I looked back on it with abhorrence, and might 
truly be said to hate myself for it. I often reflected how my 
lover at the Bath, struck at the hand of God, repented and 
abandoned me, and refused to see me any more, though he 
loved me to an extreme; but I, prompted by that worst of 
devils, poverty, returned to the vile practice, and made the 
advantage of what they call a handsome face to be the relief 
to my necessities, and beauty be a pimp to vice. 
Now I seemed landed in a safe harbour, after the stormy voyage 
of life past was at an end, and I began to be thankful for my 
deliverance. I sat many an hour by myself, and wept over the 
remembrance of past follies, and the dreadful extravagances 
of a wicked life, and sometimes I flattered myself that I had 
sincerely repented. 
But there are temptations which it is not in the power of human 
nature to resist, and few know what would be their case if 
driven to the same exigencies. As covetousness is the root of 
all evil, so poverty is, I believe, the worst of all snares. But I 
waive that discourse till I come to an experiment. 
I live with this husband with the utmost tranquillity; he was a 
quiet, sensible, sober man; virtuous, modest, sincere, and in 
his business diligent and just. His business was in a narrow 
compass, and his income sufficient to a plentiful way of living 
in the ordinary way. I do not say to keep an equipage, and 
make a figure, as the world calls it, nor did I expect it, or desire 
it; for as I abhorred the levity and extravagance of my former 
life, so I chose now to live retired, frugal, and within ourselves. 
I kept no company, made no visits; minded my family, and 
obliged my husband; and this kind of life became a pleasure to me. 
We lived in an uninterrupted course of ease and content for 
five years, when a sudden blow from an almost invisible hand 
blasted all my happiness, and turned me out into the world in 
a condition the reverse of all that had been before it. 
My husband having trusted one of his fellow-clerks with a sum 
of money, too much for our fortunes to bear the loss of, the 
clerk failed, and the loss fell very heavy on my husband, yet it 
was not so great neither but that, if he had had spirit and courage 
to have looked his misfortunes in the face, his credit was so 
good that, as I told him, he would easily recover it; for to sink 
under trouble is to double the weight, and he that will die in it, 
shall die in it. 
It was in vain to speak comfortably to him; the wound had 
sunk too deep; it was a stab that touched the vitals; he grew 
melancholy and disconsolate, and from thence lethargic, and 
died. I foresaw the blow, and was extremely oppressed in my 
mind, for I saw evidently that if he died I was undone. 
I had had two children by him and no more, for, to tell the 
truth, it began to be time for me to leave bearing children, for 
I was now eight-and-forty, and I suppose if he had lived I 
should have had no more. 
I was now left in a dismal and disconsolate case indeed, and 
in several things worse than ever. First, it was past the 
flourishing time with me when I might expect to be courted 
for a mistress; that agreeable part had declined some time, and 
the ruins only appeared of what had been; and that which was 
worse than all this, that I was the most dejected, disconsolate 
creature alive. I that had encouraged my husband, and 
endeavoured to support his spirits under his trouble, could not 
support my own; I wanted that spirit in trouble which I told 
him was so necessary to him for bearing the burthen. 
But my case was indeed deplorable, for I was left perfectly 
friendless and helpless, and the loss my husband had sustained 
had reduced his circumstances so low, that though indeed I 
was not in debt, yet I could easily foresee that what was left 
would not support me long; that while it wasted daily for 
subsistence, I had not way to increase it one shilling, so that 
it would be soon all spent, and then I saw nothing before me 
but the utmost distress; and this represented itself so lively to 
my thoughts, that it seemed as if it was come, before it was 
really very near; also my very apprehensions doubled the misery, 
for I fancied every sixpence that I paid for a loaf of bread was 
the last that I had in the world, and that to-morrow I was to 
fast, and be starved to death. 
In this distress I had no assistant, no friend to comfort or 
advise me; I sat and cried and tormented myself night and day, 
wringing my hands, and sometimes raving like a distracted 
woman; and indeed I have often wondered it had not affected 
my reason, for I had the vapours to such a degree, that my 
understanding was sometimes quite lost in fancies and 
imaginations. 
I lived two years in this dismal condition, wasting that little I 
had, weeping continually over my dismal circumstances, and, 
as it were, only bleeding to death, without the least hope or 
prospect of help from God or man; and now I had cried too 
long, and so often, that tears were, as I might say, exhausted, 
and I began to be desperate, for I grew poor apace. 
For a little relief I had put off my house and took lodgings; 
and as I was reducing my living, so I sold off most of my goods, 
which put a little money in my pocket, and I lived near a year 
upon that, spending very sparingly, an eking things out to the 
utmost; but still when I looked before me, my very heart would 
sink within me at the inevitable approach of misery and want. 
Oh let none read this part without seriously reflecting on the 
circumstances of a desolate state, and how they would grapple 
with mere want of friends and want of bread; it will certainly 
make them think not of sparing what they have only, but of 
looking up to heaven for support, and of the wise man's prayer, 
'Give me not poverty, lest I steal.' 
Let them remember that a time of distress is a time of dreadful 
temptation, and all the strength to resist is taken away; poverty 
presses, the soul is made desperate by distress, and what can 
be done? It was one evening, when being brought, as I may 
say, to the last gasp, I think I may truly say I was distracted 
and raving, when prompted by I know not what spirit, and, as 
it were, doing I did not know what or why, I dressed me (for 
I had still pretty good clothes) and went out. I am very sure 
I had no manner of design in my head when I went out; I neither 
knew nor considered where to go, or on what business; but as 
the devil carried me out and laid his bait for me, so he brought 
me, to be sure, to the place, for I knew not whither I was going 
or what I did. 
Wandering thus about, I knew not whither, I passed by an 
apothecary's shop in Leadenhall Street, when I saw lie on a 
stool just before the counter a little bundle wrapped in a white 
cloth; beyond it stood a maid-servant with her back to it, 
looking towards the top of the shop, where the apothecary's 
apprentice, as I suppose, was standing upon the counter, with 
his back also to the door, and a candle in his hand, looking 
and reaching up to the upper shelf for something he wanted, 
so that both were engaged mighty earnestly, and nobody else 
in the shop. 
This was the bait; and the devil, who I said laid the snare, as 
readily prompted me as if he had spoke, for I remember, and 
shall never forget it, 'twas like a voice spoken to me over my 
shoulder, 'Take the bundle; be quick; do it this moment.' It 
was no sooner said but I stepped into the shop, and with my 
back to the wench, as if I had stood up for a cart that was 
going by, I put my hand behind me and took the bundle, and 
went off with it, the maid or the fellow not perceiving me, or 
any one else. 
It is impossible to express the horror of my soul al the while 
I did it. When I went away I had no heart to run, or scarce to 
mend my pace. I crossed the street indeed, and went down 
the first turning I came to, and I think it was a street that went 
through into Fenchurch Street. From thence I crossed and 
turned through so many ways an turnings, that I could never 
tell which way it was, not where I went; for I felt not the 
ground I stepped on, and the farther I was out of danger, the 
faster I went, till, tired and out of breath, I was forced to sit 
down on a little bench at a door, and then I began to recover, 
and found I was got into Thames Street, near Billingsgate. I 
rested me a little and went on; my blood was all in a fire; my 
heart beat as if I was in a sudden fright. In short, I was under 
such a surprise that I still knew not wither I was going, or 
what to do. 
After I had tired myself thus with walking a long way about, 
and so eagerly, I began to consider and make home to my 
lodging, where I came about nine o'clock at night. 
When the bundle was made up for, or on what occasion laid 
where I found it, I knew not, but when I came to open it I 
found there was a suit of childbed-linen in it, very good and 
almost new, the lace very fine; there was a silver porringer of 
a pint, a small silver mug and six spoons, with some other 
linen, a good smock, and three silk handkerchiefs, and in the 
mug, wrapped up in a paper, 18s. 6d. in money. 
All the while I was opening these things I was under such 
dreadful impressions of fear, and I such terror of mind, though 
I was perfectly safe, that I cannot express the manner of it. I 
sat me down, and cried most vehemently. 'Lord,' said I, 'what 
am I now? a thief! Why, I shall be take next time, and be 
carried to Newgate and be tried for my life!' And with that I 
cried again a long time, and I am sure, as poor as I was, if I 
had durst for fear, I would certainly have carried the things 
back again; but that went off after a while. Well, I went to 
bed for that night, but slept little; the horror of the fact was 
upon my mind, and I knew not what I said or did all night, 
and all the next day. Then I was impatient to hear some news 
of the loss; and would fain know how it was, whether they 
were a poor body's goods, or a rich. 'Perhaps,' said I, 'it 
may be some poor widow like me, that had packed up these 
goods to go and sell them for a little bread for herself and a 
poor child, and are now starving and breaking their hearts for 
want of that little they would have fetched.' And this thought 
tormented me worse than all the rest, for three or four days' 
time. 
But my own distresses silenced all these reflections, and the 
prospect of my own starving, which grew every day more 
frightful to me, hardened my heart by degrees. It was then 
particularly heavy upon my mind, that I had been reformed, 
and had, as I hoped, repented of all my past wickedness; that 
I had lived a sober, grave, retired life for several years, but now 
I should be driven by the dreadful necessity of my circumstances 
to the gates of destruction, soul and body; and two or three 
times I fell upon my knees, praying to God, as well as I could, 
for deliverance; but I cannot but say, my prayers had no hope 
in them. I knew not what to do; it was all fear without, and 
dark within; and I reflected on my past life as not sincerely 
repented of, that Heaven was now beginning to punish me on 
this side the grave, and would make me as miserable as I had 
been wicked. 
Had I gone on here I had perhaps been a true penitent; but I 
had an evil counsellor within, and he was continually prompting 
me to relieve myself by the worst means; so one evening he 
tempted me again, by the same wicked impulse that had said 
'Take that bundle,' to go out again and seek for what might 
happen. 
I went out now by daylight, and wandered about I knew not 
whither, and in search of I knew not what, when the devil put 
a snare in my way of a dreadful nature indeed, and such a one 
as I have never had before or since. Going through Aldersgate 
Street, there was a pretty little child who had been at a dancingschool, 
and was going home, all alone; and my prompter, like 
a true devil, set me upon this innocent creature. I talked to it, 
and it prattled to me again, and I took it by the hand and led 
it along till I came to a paved alley that goes into Bartholomew 
Close, and I led it in there. The child said that was not its way 
home. I said, 'Yes, my dear, it is; I'll show you the way home.' 
The child had a little necklace on of gold beads, and I had my 
eye upon that, and in the dark of the alley I stooped, pretending 
to mend the child's clog that was loose, and took off her 
necklace, and the child never felt it, and so led the child on 
again. Here, I say, the devil put me upon killing the child in 
the dark alley, that it might not cry, but the very thought 
frighted me so that I was ready to drop down; but I turned the 
child about and bade it go back again, for that was not its way 
home. The child said, so she would, and I went through into 
Bartholomew Close, and then turned round to another passage 
that goes into St. John Street; then, crossing into Smithfield, 
went down Chick Lane and into Field Lane to Holborn Bridge, 
when, mixing with the crowd of people usually passing there, 
it was not possible to have been found out; and thus I 
enterprised my second sally into the world. 
The thoughts of this booty put out all the thoughts of the first, 
and the reflections I had made wore quickly off; poverty, as I 
have said, hardened my heart, and my own necessities made 
me regardless of anything. The last affair left no great concern 
upon me, for as I did the poor child no harm, I only said to 
myself, I had given the parents a just reproof for their negligence 
in leaving the poor little lamb to come home by itself, and it 
would teach them to take more care of it another time. 
This string of beads was worth about twelve or fourteen pounds. 
I suppose it might have been formerly the mother's, for it was 
too big for the child's wear, but that perhaps the vanity of the 
mother, to have her child look fine at the dancing-school, had 
made her let the child wear it; and no doubt the child had a 
maid sent to take care of it, but she, careless jade, was taken 
up perhaps with some fellow that had met her by the way, 
and so the poor baby wandered till it fell into my hands. 
However, I did the child no harm; I did not so much as fright 
it, for I had a great many tender thoughts about me yet, and 
did nothing but what, as I may say, mere necessity drove me to. 
I had a great many adventures after this, but I was young in 
the business, and did not know how to manage, otherwise than 
as the devil put things into my head; and indeed he was seldom 
backward to me. One adventure I had which was very lucky 
to me. I was going through Lombard Street in the duck of the 
evening, just by the end of Three King court, when on a sudden 
comes a fellow running by me as swift as lightning, and throws 
a bundle that was in his hand, just behind me, as I stood up 
against the corner of the house at the turning into the alley. 
Just as he threw it in he said, 'God bless you, mistress, let it 
lie there a little,' and away he runs swift as the wind. After 
him comes two more, and immediately a young fellow without 
his hat, crying 'Stop thief!' and after him two or three more. 
They pursued the two last fellows so close, that they were 
forced to drop what they had got, and one of them was taken 
into the bargain, and other got off free. 
I stood stock-still all this while, till they came back, dragging 
the poor fellow they had taken, and lugging the things they 
had found, extremely well satisfied that they had recovered 
the booty and taken the thief; and thus they passed by me, for 
I looked only like one who stood up while the crowd was gone. 
Once or twice I asked what was the matter, but the people 
neglected answering me, and I was not very importunate; but 
after the crowd was wholly past, I took my opportunity to turn 
about and take up what was behind me and walk away. This, 
indeed, I did with less disturbance than I had done formerly, 
for these things I did not steal, but they were stolen to my hand. 
I got safe to my lodgings with this cargo, which was a piece of 
fine black lustring silk, and a piece of velvet; the latter was but 
part of a piece of about eleven yards; the former was a whole 
piece of near fifty yards. It seems it was a mercer's shop that 
they had rifled. I say rifled, because the goods were so 
considerable that they had lost; for the goods that they 
recovered were pretty many, and I believe came to about six 
or seven several pieces of silk. How they came to get so many 
I could not tell; but as I had only robbed the thief, I made no 
scruple at taking these goods, and being very glad of them too. 
I had pretty good luck thus far, and I made several adventures 
more, though with but small purchase, yet with good success, 
but I went in daily dread that some mischief would befall me, 
and that I should certainly come to be hanged at last. The 
impression this made on me was too strong to be slighted, and 
it kept me from making attempts that, for ought I knew, might 
have been very safely performed; but one thing I cannot omit, 
which was a bait to me many a day. I walked frequently out 
into the villages round the town, to see if nothing would fall 
in my way there; and going by a house near Stepney, I saw on 
the window-board two rings, one a small diamond ring, and 
the other a gold ring, to be sure laid there by some thoughtless 
lady, that had more money then forecast, perhaps only till 
she washed her hands. 
I walked several times by the window to observe if I could 
see whether there was anybody in the room or no, and I could 
see nobody, but still I was not sure. It came presently into my 
thoughts to rap at the glass, as if I wanted to speak with 
somebody, and if anybody was there they would be sure to 
come to the window, and then I would tell them to remove 
those rings, for that I had seen two suspicious fellows take 
notice of them. This was a ready thought. I rapped once or 
twice and nobody came, when, seeing the coast clear, I thrust 
hard against the square of the glass, and broke it with very 
little noise, and took out the two rings, and walked away with 
them very safe. The diamond ring was worth about #3, and 
the other about 9s. 
I was now at a loss for a market for my goods, and especially 
for my two pieces of silk. I was very loth to dispose of them 
for a trifle, as the poor unhappy thieves in general do, who, 
after they have ventured their lives for perhaps a thing of value, 
are fain to sell it for a song when they have done; but I was 
resolved I would not do thus, whatever shift I made, unless I 
was driven to the last extremity. However, I did not well know 
what course to take. At last I resolved to go to my old governess, 
and acquaint myself with her again. I had punctually supplied 
the #5 a year to her for my little boy as long as I was able, but 
at last was obliged to put a stop to it. However, I had written 
a letter to her, wherein I had told her that my circumstances 
were reduced very low; that I had lost my husband, and that I 
was not able to do it any longer, and so begged that the poor 
child might not suffer too much for its mother's misfortunes. 
I now made her a visit, and I found that she drove something 
of the old trade still, but that she was not in such flourishing 
circumstances as before; for she had been sued by a certain 
gentleman who had had his daughter stolen from him, and who, 
it seems, she had helped to convey away; and it was very 
narrowly that she escaped the gallows. The expense also had 
ravaged her, and she was become very poor; her house was 
but meanly furnished, and she was not in such repute for her 
practice as before; however, she stood upon her legs, as they 
say, and a she was a stirring, bustling woman, and had some 
stock left, she was turned pawnbroker, and lived pretty well. 
She received me very civilly, and with her usual obliging 
manner told me she would not have the less respect for me for 
my being reduced; that she had taken care my boy was very 
well looked after, though I could not pay for him, and that the 
woman that had him was easy, so that I needed not to trouble 
myself about him till I might be better able to do it effectually. 
I told her that I had not much money left, but that I had some 
things that were money's worth, if she could tell me how I 
might turn them into money. She asked me what it was I had. 
I pulled out the string of gold beads, and told her it was one 
of my husband's presents to me; then I showed her the two 
parcels of silk, which I told her I had from Ireland, and brought 
up to town with me; and the little diamond ring. As to the 
small parcel of plate and spoons, I had found means to dispose 
of them myself before; and as for the childbed-linen I had, she 
offered me to take it herself, believing it to have been my own. 
She told me that she was turned pawnbroker, and that she 
would sell those things for me as pawn to her; and so she sent 
presently for proper agents that bought them, being in her 
hands, without any scruple, and gave good prices too. 
I now began to think this necessary woman might help me a 
little in my low condition to some business, for I would gladly 
have turned my hand to any honest employment if I could have 
got it. But here she was deficient; honest business did not 
come within her reach. If I had been younger, perhaps she 
might have helped me to a spark, but my thoughts were off 
that kind of livelihood, as being quite out of the way after fifty, 
which was my case, and so I told her. 
She invited me at last to come, and be at her house till I could 
find something to do, and it should cost me very little, and this 
I gladly accepted of. And now living a little easier, I entered 
into some measures to have my little son by my last husband 
taken off; and this she made easy too, reserving a payment 
only of #5 a year, if I could pay it. This was such a help to me, 
that for a good while I left off the wicked trade that I had so 
newlytaken up; and gladly I would have got my bread by the 
help of my needle if I could have got work, but that was very 
hard to do for one that had no manner of acquaintance in the 
world. 
However, at last I got some quilting work for ladies' beds, 
petticoats, and the like; and this I liked very well, and worked 
very hard, and with this I began to live; but the diligent devil, 
who resolved I should continue in his service, continually 
prompted me to go out and take a walk, that is to say, to see 
if anything would offer in the old way. 
One evening I blindly obeyed his summons, and fetched a long 
circuit through the streets, but met with no purchase, and came 
home very weary and empty; but not content with that, I went 
out the next evening too, when going by an alehouse I saw the 
door of a little room open, next the very street, and on the table 
a silver tankard, things much in use in public-houses at that 
time. It seems some company had been drinking there, and the 
careless boys had forgot to take it away. 
I went into the box frankly, and setting the silver tankard on 
the corner of the bench, I sat down before it, and knocked with 
my foot; a boy came presently, and I bade him fetch me a pint 
of warm ale, for it was cold weather; the boy ran, and I heard 
him go down the cellar to draw the ale. While the boy was 
gone, another boy came into the room, and cried, 'D' ye call?' 
I spoke with a melancholy air, and said, 'No, child; the boy is 
gone for a pint of ale for me.' 
While I sat here, I heard the woman in the bar say, 'Are they 
all gone in the five?' which was the box I sat in, and the boy 
said, 'Yes.' 'Who fetched the tankard away?' says the woman. 
'I did,' says another boy; 'that's it,' pointing, it seems, to 
another tankard, which he had fetched from another box by 
mistake; or else it must be, that the rogue forgot that he had 
not brought it in, which certainly he had not. 
I heard all this, much to my satisfaction, for I found plainly 
that the tankard was not missed, and yet they concluded it was 
fetched away; so I drank my ale, called to pay, and as I went 
away I said, 'Take care of your plate, child,' meaning a silver 
pint mug, which he brought me drink in. The boy said, 'Yes, 
madam, very welcome,' and away I came. 
I came home to my governess, and now I thought it was a 
time to try her, that if I might be put to the necessity of being 
exposed, she might offer me some assistance. When I had 
been at home some time, and had an opportunity of talking to 
her, I told her I had a secret of the greatest consequence in the 
world to commit to her, if she had respect enough for me to 
keep it a secret. She told me she had kept one of my secrets 
faithfully; why should I doubt her keeping another? I told her 
the strangest thing in the world had befallen me, and that it 
had made a thief of me, even without any design, and so told 
her the whole story of the tankard. 'And have you brought it 
away with you, my dear?' says she. 'To be sure I have,' says 
I, and showed it her. 'But what shall I do now,' says I; 'must 
not carry it again?' 
'Carry it again!' says she. 'Ay, if you are minded to be sent 
to Newgate for stealing it.' 'Why,' says I, 'they can't be so 
base to stop me, when I carry it to them again?' 'You don't 
know those sort of people, child,' says she; 'they'll not only 
carry you to Newgate, but hang you too, without any regard 
to the honesty of returning it; or bring in an account of all the 
other tankards they have lost, for you to pay for.' 'What must 
I do, then?' says I. 'Nay,' says she, 'as you have played the 
cunning part and stole it, you must e'en keep it; there's no 
going back now. Besides, child,' says she, 'don't you want it 
more than they do? I wish you could light of such a bargain 
once a week.' 
This gave me a new notion of my governess, and that since 
she was turned pawnbroker, she had a sort of people about 
her that were none of the honest ones that I had met with 
there before. 
I had not been long there but I discovered it more plainly than 
before, for every now and then I saw hilts of swords, spoons, 
forks, tankards, and all such kind of ware brought in, not to be 
pawned, but to be sold downright; and she bought everything 
that came without asking any questions, but had very good 
bargains, as I found by her discourse. 
I found also that in following this trade she always melted 
down the plate she bought, that it might not be challenged; 
and she came to me and told me one morning that she was 
going to melt, and if I would, she would put my tankard in, 
that it might not be seen by anybody. I told her, with all my 
heart; so she weighed it, and allowed me the full value in silver 
again; but I found she did not do the same to the rest of her 
customers. 
Some time after this, as I was at work, and very melancholy, 
she begins to ask me what the matter was, as she was used to 
do. I told her my heart was heavy; I had little work, and 
nothing to live on, and knew not what course to take. She 
laughed, and told me I must go out again and try my fortune; 
it might be that I might meet with another piece of plate. 
'O mother!' says I, 'that is a trade I have no skill in, and if I 
should be taken I am undone at once.' Says she, 'I could help 
you to a schoolmistress that shall make you as dexterous as 
herself.' I trembled at that proposal, for hitherto I had had 
no confederates, nor any acquaintance among that tribe. But 
she conquered all my modesty, and all my fears; and in a little 
time, by the help of this confederate, I grew as impudent a 
thief, and as dexterous as ever Moll Cutpurse was, though, 
if fame does not belie her, not half so handsome. 
The comrade she helped me to dealt in three sorts of craft, viz. 
shoplifting, stealing of shop-books and pocket-books, and 
taking off gold watches from the ladies' sides; and this last she 
did so dexterously that no woman ever arrived to the performance 
of that art so as to do it like her. I liked the first and the last 
of these things very well, and I attended her some time in the 
practice, just as a deputy attends a midwife, without any pay. 
At length she put me to practice. She had shown me her art, 
and I had several times unhooked a watch from her own side 
with great dexterity. At last she showed me a prize, and this 
was a young lady big with child, who had a charming watch. 
The thing was to be done as she came out of church. She goes 
on one side of the lady, and pretends, just as she came to the 
steps, to fall, and fell against the lady with so much violence 
as put her into a great fright, and both cried out terribly. In 
the very moment that she jostled the lady, I had hold of the 
watch, and holding it the right way, the start she gave drew 
the hook out, and she never felt it. I made off immediately, 
and left my schoolmistress to come out of her pretended fright 
gradually, and the lady too; and presently the watch was missed. 
'Ay,' says my comrade, 'then it was those rogues that thrust 
me down, I warrant ye; I wonder the gentlewoman did not miss 
her watch before,then we might have taken them.' 
She humoured the thing so well that nobody suspected her, 
and I was got home a full hour before her. This was my first 
adventure in company. The watch was indeed a very fine one, 
and had a great many trinkets about it, and my governess 
allowed us #20 for it, of which I had half. And thus I was 
entered a complete thief, hardened to the pitch above all the 
reflections of conscience or modesty, and to a degree which 
I must acknowledge I never thought possible in me. 
Thus the devil, who began, by the help of an irresistible poverty, 
to push me into this wickedness, brought me on to a height 
beyond the common rate, even when my necessities were not 
so great, or the prospect of my misery so terrifying; for I had 
now got into a little vein of work, and as I was not at a loss 
to handle my needle, it was very probable, as acquaintance 
came in, I might have got my bread honestly enough. 
I must say, that if such a prospect of work had presented itself 
at first, when I began to feel the approach of my miserable 
circumstances--I say, had such a prospect of getting my bread 
by working presented itself then, I had never fallen into this 
wicked trade, or into such a wicked gang as I was now embarked 
with; but practice had hardened me, and I grew audacious to 
the last degree; and the more so because I had carried it on so 
long, and had never been taken; for, in a word, my new partner 
in wickedness and I went on together so long, without being 
ever detected, that we not only grew bold, but we grew rich, 
and we had at one time one-and-twenty gold watches in our 
hands. 
I remember that one day being a little more serious than 
ordinary, and finding I had so good a stock beforehand as I 
had, for I had near #200 in money for my share, it came 
strongly into my mind, no doubt from some kind spirit, if such 
there be, that at first poverty excited me, and my distresses 
drove me to these dreadful shifts; so seeing those distresses 
were now relieved, and I could also get something towards a 
maintenance by working, and had so good a bank to support 
me, why should I now not leave off, as they say, while I was 
well? that I could not expect to go always free; and if I was 
once surprised, and miscarried, I was undone. 
This was doubtless the happy minute, when, if I had hearkened 
to the blessed hint, from whatsoever had it came, I had still a 
cast for an easy life. But my fate was otherwise determined; 
the busy devil that so industriously drew me in had too fast 
hold of me to let me go back; but as poverty brought me into 
the mire, so avarice kept me in, till there was no going back. 
As to the arguments which my reason dictated for persuading 
me to lay down, avarice stepped in and said, 'Go on, go on; 
you have had very good luck; go on till you have gotten four 
or five hundred pounds, and they you shall leave off, and then 
you may live easy without working at all.' 
Thus I, that was once in the devil's clutches, was held fast 
there as with a charm, and had no power to go without the 
circle, till I was engulfed in labyrinths of trouble too great to 
get out at all. 
However, these thoughts left some impression upon me, and 
made me act with some more caution than before, and more 
than my directors used for themselves. My comrade, as I 
called her, but rather she should have been called my teacher, 
with another of her scholars, was the first in the misfortune; 
for, happening to be upon the hunt for purchase, they made 
an attempt upon a linen-draper in Cheapside, but were snapped 
by a hawk's-eyed journeyman, and seized with two pieces of 
cambric, which were taken also upon them. 
This was enough to lodge them both in Newgate, where they 
had the misfortune to have some of their former sins brought 
to remembrance. Two other indictments being brought against 
them, and the facts being proved upon them, they were both 
condemned to die. They both pleaded their bellies, and were 
both voted quick with child; though my tutoress was no more 
with child than I was. 
I went frequently to see them, and condole with them, expecting 
that it would be my turn next; but the place gave me so much 
horror, reflecting that it was the place of my unhappy birth, 
and of my mother's misfortunes, and that I could not bear it, 
so I was forced to leave off going to see them. 
And oh! could I have but taken warning by their disasters, I 
had been happy still, for I was yet free, and had nothing brought 
against me; but it could not be, my measure was not yet filled 
up. 
My comrade, having the brand of an old offender, was executed; 
the young offender was spared, having obtained a reprieve, 
but lay starving a long while in prison, till at last she got her 
name into what they call a circuit pardon, and so came off. 
This terrible example of my comrade frighted me heartily, and 
for a good while I made no excursions; but one night, in the 
neighbourhood of my governess's house, they cried Fire.' 
My governess looked outfor we were all upand cried 
immediately that such a gentlewoman's house was all of a light 
fire atopand so indeed it was. Here she gives me a job. 'Now
child' says she'there is a rare opportunityfor the fire being 
so near that you may go to it before the street is blocked up 
with the crowd.' She presently gave me my cue. 'Gochild' 
says she'to the houseand run in and tell the ladyor anybody 
you seethat you come to help themand that you came from 
such a gentlewoman (that isone of her acquaintance farther 
up the street).' She gave me the like cue to the next house
naming another name that was also an acquaintance of the 
gentlewoman of the house. 
Away I wentandcoming to the houseI found them all in 
confusionyou may be sure. I ran inand finding one of the 
maids'Lord! sweetheart' says I'how came this dismal 
accident? Where is your mistress? Any how does she do? 
Is she safe? And where are the children? I come from 
Madam ---- to help you.' Away runs the maid. 'Madam
madam' says shescreaming as loud as she could yell'here 
is a gentlewoman come from Madam ---- to help us.' The 
poor womanhalf out of her witswith a bundle under her arm
an two little childrencomes toward me. 'Lord! madam' says 
I'let me carry the poor children to Madam ----' she desires 
you to send them; she'll take care of the poor lambs;' and 
immediately I takes one of them out of her handand she lifts 
the other up into my arms. 'Aydofor God's sake' says she
'carry them to her. Oh! thank her for her kindness.' 'Have 
you anything else to securemadam?' says I; 'she will take 
care of it.' 'Oh dear! ay' says she'God bless herand thank 
her. Take this bundle of plate and carry it to her too. Ohshe 
is a good woman. Oh Lord! we are utterly ruinedutterly 
undone!' And away she runs from me out of her witsand 
the maids after her; and away comes I with the two children 
and the bundle. 
I was no sooner got into the street but I saw another woman 
come to me. 'Oh!' says she'mistress' in a piteous tone'you 
will let fall the child. Comethis is a sad time; let me help you'; 
and immediately lays hold of my bundle to carry it for me. 
'No' says I; 'if you will help metake the child by the hand
and lead it for me but to the upper end of the street; I'll go 
with you and satisfy you for your pains.' 
She could not aviod goingafter what I said; but the creature
in shortwas one of the same business with meand wanted 
nothing but the bundle; howevershe went with me to the 
doorfor she could not help it. When we were come there I 
whispered her'Gochild' said I'I understand your trade; 
you may meet with purchase enough.' 
She understood me and walked off. I thundered at the door 
with the childrenand as the people were raised before by the 
noise of the fireI was soon let inand I said'Is madam 
awake? Pray tell her Mrs. ---- desires the favour of her to 
take the two children in; poor ladyshe will be undonetheir 
house is all of a flame' They took the children in very civilly
pitied the family in distressand away came I with my bundle. 
One of the maids asked me if I was not to leave the bundle 
too. I said'Nosweetheart'tis to go to another place; it 
does not belong to them.' 
I was a great way out of the hurry nowand so I went on
clear of anybody's inquiryand brought the bundle of plate
which was very considerablestraight homeand gave it to 
my old governess. She told me she would not look into it
but bade me go out again to look for more. 
She gave me the like cue to the gentlewoman of the next house 
to that which was on fireand I did my endeavour to gobut 
by this time the alarm of fire was so greatand so many 
engines playingand the street so thronged with peoplethat 
I could not get near the house whatever I would do; so I came 
back again to my governess'sand taking the bundle up into 
my chamberI began to examine it. It is with horror that I 
tell what a treasure I found there; 'tis enough to saythat 
besides most of the family platewhich was considerableI 
found a gold chainan old-fashioned thingthe locket of which 
was brokenso that I suppose it had not been used some years
but the gold was not the worse for that; also a little box of 
burying-ringsthe lady's wedding-ringand some broken bits 
of old lockets of golda gold watchand a purse with about 
#24 value in old pieces of gold coinand several other things 
of value. 
This was the greatest and the worst prize that ever I was 
concerned in; for indeedthoughas I have said aboveI was 
hardened now beyond the power of all reflection in other cases
yet it really touched me to the very soul when I looked into 
this treasureto think of the poor disconsolate gentlewoman 
who had lost so much by the fire besides; and who would think
to be surethat she had saved her plate and best things; how 
she would be surprised and afflicted when she should find that 
she had been deceivedand should find that the person that 
took her children and her goodshad not comeas was pretended
from the gentlewoman in the next streetbut that the children 
had been put upon her without her own knowledge. 
I sayI confess the inhumanity of this action moved me very 
muchand made me relent exceedinglyand tears stood in my 
eyes upon that subject; but with all my sense of its being cruel 
and inhumanI could never find in my heart to make any 
restitution. The reflection wore offand I began quickly to 
forget the circumstances that attended the taking them. 
Now was this all; for though by this job I was become 
considerably richer than beforeyet the resolution I had 
formerly takenof leaving off this horrid trade when I had 
gotten a little moredid not returnbut I must still get farther
and more; and the avarice joined so with the successthat I 
had no more thought of coming to a timely alteration of life
though without it I could expect no safetyno tranquillity in 
the possession of what I had so wickedly gained; but a little 
moreand a little morewas the case still. 
At lengthyielding to the importunities of my crimeI cast off 
all remorse and repentanceand all the reflections on that head 
turned to no more than thisthat I might perhaps come to have 
one booty more that might complete my desires; but though I 
certainly had that one bootyyet every hit looked towards 
anotherand was so encouraging to me to go on with the trade
that I had no gust to the thought of laying it down. 
In this conditionhardened by successand resolving to go on
I fell into the snare in which I was appointed to meet with my 
last reward for this kind of life. But even this was not yetfor 
I met with several successful adventures more in this way of 
being undone. 
I remained still with my governesswho was for a while really 
concerned for the misfortune of my comrade that had been 
hangedand whoit seemsknew enough of my governess to 
have sent her the same wayand which made her very uneasy; 
indeedshe was in a very great fright. 
It is true that when she was goneand had not opened mouth 
to tell what she knewmy governess was easy as to that point
and perhaps glad she was hangedfor it was in her power to 
have obtained a pardon at the expense of her friends; but on 
the other handthe loss of herand the sense of her kindness 
in not making her market of what she knewmoved my 
governess to mourn very sincerely for her. I comforted her 
as well as I couldand she in return hardened me to merit 
more completely the same fate. 
Howeveras I have saidit made me the more waryand 
particularly I was very shy of shopliftingespecially among 
the mercers and draperswho are a set of fellows that have 
their eyes very much about them. I made a venture or two 
among the lace folks and the millinersand particularly at one 
shop where I got notice of two young women who were newly 
set upand had not been bred to the trade. There I think I 
carried off a piece of bone-laceworth six or seven pounds
and a paper of thread. But this was but once; it was a trick 
that would not serve again. 
It was always reckoned a safe job when we heard of a new 
shopand especially when the people were such as were not 
bred to shops. Such may depend upon it that they will be 
visited once or twice at their beginningand they must be very 
sharp indeed if they can prevent it. 
I made another adventure or twobut they were but trifles too
though sufficient to live on. After this nothing considerable 
offering for a good whileI began to think that I must give 
over the trade in earnest; but my governesswho was not 
willing to lose meand expected great things of mebrought 
me one day into company with a young woman and a fellow 
that went for her husbandthough as it appeared afterwards
she was not his wifebut they were partnersit seemsin the 
trade they carried onand partners in something else. In short
they robbed togetherlay togetherwere taken togetherand 
at last were hanged together. 
I came into a kind of league with these two by the help of my 
governessand they carried me out into three or four adventures
where I rather saw them commit some coarse and unhandy 
robberiesin which nothing but a great stock of impudence 
on their sideand gross negligence on the people's side who 
were robbedcould have made them successful. so I resolved 
from that time forward to be very cautious how I adventured 
upon anything with them; and indeedwhen two or three 
unlucky projects were proposed by themI declined the offer
and persuaded them against it. One time they particularly 
proposed robbing a watchmaker of three gold watcheswhich 
they had eyed in the daytimeand found the place where he 
laid them. One of them had so many keys of all kindsthat he 
made no question to open the place where the watchmaker 
had laid them; and so we made a kind of an appointment; but 
when I came to look narrowly into the thingI found they 
proposed breaking open the houseand thisas a thing out of 
my wayI would not embark inso they went without me. 
They did get into the house by main forceand broke up the 
locked place where the watches werebut found but one of 
the gold watchesand a silver onewhich they tookand got 
out of the house again very clear. But the familybeing alarmed
cried out 'Thieves' and the man was pursued and taken; the 
young woman had got off toobut unhappily was stopped at 
a distanceand the watches found upon her. And thus I had 
a second escapefor they were convictedand both hanged
being old offendersthough but young people. As I said before 
that they robbed together and lay togetherso now they hanged 
togetherand there ended my new partnership. 
I began now to be very waryhaving so narrowly escaped a 
scouringand having such an example before me; but I had a 
new tempterwho prompted me every day--I mean my governess; 
and now a prize presentedwhich as it came by her management
so she expected a good share of the booty. There was a good 
quantity of Flanders lace lodged in a private housewhere she 
had gotten intelligence of itand Flanders lace being prohibited
it was a good booty to any custom-house officer that could 
come at it. I had a full account from my governessas well 
of the quantity as of the very place where it was concealed
and I went to a custom-house officerand told him I had such 
a discovery to make to him of such a quantity of laceif he 
would assure me that I should have my due share of the reward. 
This was so just an offerthat nothing could be fairer; so he 
agreedand taking a constable and me with himwe beset the 
house. As I told him I could go directly to the placehe left 
it to me; and the hole being very darkI squeezed myself into 
itwith a candle in my handand so reached the pieces out to 
himtaking care as I gave him some so to secure as much about 
myself as I could conveniently dispose of. There was near 
#300 worth of lace in the holeand I secured about #50 worth 
of it to myself. The people of the house were not owners of 
the lacebut a merchant who had entrusted them with it; so 
that they were not so surprised as I thought they would be. 
I left the officer overjoyed with his prizeand fully satisfied 
with what he had gotand appointed to meet him at a house 
of his own directingwhere I came after I had disposed of the 
cargo I had about meof which he had not the least suspicion. 
When I came to him he began to capitulate with mebelieving 
I did not understand the right I had to a share in the prizeand 
would fain have put me off with #20but I let him know that I 
was not so ignorant as he supposed I was; and yet I was glad
toothat he offered to bring me to a certainty. 
I asked #100and he rose up to #30; I fell to #80and he rose 
again to #40; in a wordhe offered #50and I consentedonly 
demanding a piece of lacewhich I though came to about #8 
or #9as if it had been for my own wearand he agreed to it. 
So I got #50 in money paid me that same nightand made an 
end of the bargain; nor did he ever know who I wasor where 
to inquire for meso that if it had been discovered that part of 
the goods were embezzledhe could have made no challenge 
upon me for it. 
I very punctually divided this spoil with my governessand I 
passed with her from this time for a very dexterous manager 
in the nicest cases. I found that this last was the best and 
easiest sort of work that was in my wayand I made it my 
business to inquire out prohibited goodsand after buying 
someusually betrayed thembut none of these discoveries 
amounted to anything considerablenot like that I related just 
now; but I was willing to act safeand was still cautious of 
running the great risks which I found others didand in which 
they miscarried every day. 
The next thing of moment was an attempt at a gentlewoman's 
good watch. It happened in a crowdat a meeting-house
where I was in very great danger of being taken. I had full 
hold of her watchbut giving a great jostleas if somebody 
had thrust me against herand in the juncture giving the watch 
a fair pullI found it would not comeso I let it go that moment
and cried out as if I had been killedthat somebody had trod 
upon my footand that there were certainly pickpockets there
for somebody or other had given a pull at my watch; for you 
are to observe that on these adventures we always went very 
well dressedand I had very good clothes onand a gold watch 
by my sideas like a lady as other fold. 
I had no sooner said sobut the other gentlewoman cried out 
'A pickpocket' toofor somebodyshe saidhad tried to pull 
her watch away. 
When I touched her watch I was close to herbut when I cried 
out I stopped as it were shortand the crowd bearing her 
forward a littleshe made a noise toobut it was at some distance 
from meso that she did not in the least suspect me; but when 
she cried out 'A pickpocket' somebody cried'Ayand here 
has been another! this gentlewoman has been attempted too.' 
At that very instancea little farther in the crowdand very 
luckily toothey cried out 'A pickpocket' againand really 
seized a young fellow in the very act. Thisthough unhappy 
for the wretchwas very opportunely for my casethough I 
had carried it off handsomely enough before; but now it was 
out of doubtand all the loose part of the crowd ran that way
and the poor boy was delivered up to the rage of the street
which is a cruelty I need not describeand whichhowever
they are always glad ofrather than to be sent to Newgate
where they lie often a long timetill they are almost perished
and sometimes they are hangedand the best they can look for
if they are convictedis to be transported. 
This was a narrow escape to meand I was so frighted that I 
ventured no more at gold watches a great while. There was 
indeed a great many concurring circumstances in this adventure 
which assisted to my escape; but the chief wasthat the woman 
whose watch I had pulled at was a fool; that is to sayshe was 
ignorant of the nature of the attemptwhich one would have 
thought she should not have beenseeing she was wise enough 
to fasten her watch so that it could not be slipped up. But she 
was in such a fright that she had no thought about her proper 
for the discovery; for shewhen she felt the pullscreamed out
and pushed herself forwardand put all the people about her into 
disorderbut said not a word of her watchor of a pickpocket
for a least two minutes' timewhich was time enough for me
and to spare. For as I had cried out behind heras I have said
and bore myself back in the crowd as she bore forwardthere 
were several peopleat least seven or eightthe throng being 
still moving onthat were got between me and her in that time
and then I crying out 'A pickpocket' rather sooner than she
or at least as soonshe might as well be the person suspected 
as Iand the people were confused in their inquiry; whereas
had she with a presence of mind needful on such an occasion
as soon as she felt the pullnot screamed out as she didbut 
turned immediately round and seized the next body that was 
behind hershe had infallibly taken me. 
This is a direction not of the kindest sort to the fraternitybut 
'tis certainly a key to the clue of a pickpocket's motionsand 
whoever can follow it will as certainly catch the thief as he 
will be sure to miss if he does not. 
I had another adventurewhich puts this matter out of doubt
and which may be an instruction for posterity in the case of a 
pickpocket. My good old governessto give a short touch at 
her historythough she had left off the tradewasas I may say
born a pickpocketandas I understood afterwardshad run 
through all the several degrees of that artand yet had never 
been taken but oncewhen she was so grossly detectedthat 
she was convicted and ordered to be transported; but being a 
woman of a rare tongueand withal having money in her pocket
she found meansthe ship putting into Ireland for provisions
to get on shore therewhere she lived and practised her old 
trade for some years; when falling into another sort of bad 
companyshe turned midwife and procuressand played a 
hundred pranks therewhich she gave me a little history of in 
confidence between us as we grew more intimate; and it was 
to this wicked creature that I owed all the art and dexterity I 
arrived toin which there were few that ever went beyond me
or that practised so long without any misfortune. 
It was after those adventures in Irelandand when she was 
pretty well known in that countrythat she left Dublin and 
came over to Englandwherethe time of her transportation 
being not expiredshe left her former tradefor fear of falling 
into bad hands againfor then she was sure to have gone to 
wreck. Here she set up the same trade she had followed in 
Irelandin which she soonby her admirable management and 
good tonguearrived to the height which I have already 
describedand indeed began to be richthough her trade fell 
off again afterwardsas I have hinted before. 
I mentioned thus much of the history of this woman herethe 
better to account for the concern she had in the wicked life I 
was now leadinginto all the particulars of which she led me
as it wereby the handand gave me such directionsand I so 
well followed themthat I grew the greatest artist of my time 
and worked myself out of every danger with such dexterity
that when several more of my comrades ran themselves into 
Newgate presentlyand by that time they had been half a year 
at the tradeI had now practised upwards of five yearsand 
the people at Newgate did not so much as know me; they had 
heard much of me indeedand often expected me therebut I 
always got offthough many times in the extremest danger. 
One of the greatest dangers I was now inwas that I was too 
well known among the tradeand some of themwhose hatred 
was owing rather to envy than any injury I had done them
began to be angry that I should always escape when they were 
always catched and hurried to Newgate. These were they that 
gave me the name of Moll Flanders; for it was no more of 
affinity with my real name or with any of the name I had ever 
gone bythan black is of kin to whiteexcept that onceas 
beforeI called myself Mrs. Flanders; when I sheltered myself 
in the Mint; but that these rogues never knewnor could I ever 
learn how they came to give me the nameor what the occasion 
of it was. 
I was soon informed that some of these who were gotten fast 
into Newgate had vowed to impeach me; and as I knew that 
two or three of them were but too able to do itI was under 
a great concern about itand kept within doors for a good 
while. But my governess--whom I always made partner in my 
successand who now played a sure game with mefor that 
she had a share of the gain and no share in the hazard--I say
my governess was something impatient of my leading such a 
uselessunprofitable lifeas she called it; and she laid a new 
contrivance for my going abroadand this was to dress me up 
in men's clothesand so put me into a new kind of practice. 
I was tall and personablebut a little too smooth-faced for a 
man; howeverI seldom went abroad but in the nightit did 
well enough; but it was a long time before I could behave in 
my new clothes--I meanas to my craft. It was impossible to 
be so nimbleso readyso dexterous at these things in a dress 
so contrary to nature; and I did everything clumsilyso I had 
neither the success nor the easiness of escape that I had before
and I resolved to leave it off; but that resolution was confirmed 
soon after by the following accident. 
As my governess disguised me like a manso she joined me 
with a mana young fellow that was nimble enough at his 
businessand for about three weeks we did very well together. 
Our principal trade was watching shopkeepers' countersand 
slipping off any kind of goods we could see carelessly laid 
anywhereand we made several good bargainsas we called 
themat this work. And as we kept always togetherso we 
grew very intimateyet he never knew that I was not a man
naythough I several times went home with him to his lodgings
according as our business directedand four or five times lay 
with him all night. But our design lay another wayand it was 
absolutely necessary to me to conceal my sex from himas 
appeared afterwards. The circumstances of our livingcoming 
in lateand having such and such business to do as required 
that nobody should be trusted with the coming into our lodgings
were such as made it impossible to me to refuse lying with him
unless I would have owned my sex; and as it wasI effectually 
concealed myself. But his illand my good fortunesoon put 
an end to this lifewhich I must own I was sick of tooon 
several other accounts. We had made several prizes in this 
new way of businessbut the last would be extraordinary. 
There was a shop in a certain street which had a warehouse 
behind it that looked into another streetthe house making the 
corner of the turning. 
Through the window of the warehouse we saylying on the 
counter or showboardwhich was just before itfive pieces of 
silksbesides other stuffsand though it was almost darkyet 
the peoplebeing busy in the fore-shop with customershad 
not had time to shut up those windowsor else had forgot it. 
This the young fellow was so overjoyed withthat he could 
not restrain himself. It lay all within his reach he saidand he 
swore violently to me that he would have itif he broke down 
the house for it. I dissuaded him a littlebut saw there was no 
remedy; so he ran rashly upon itslipped out a square of the 
sash window dexterously enoughand without noiseand got 
out four pieces of the silksand came with them towards me
but was immediately pursued with a terrible clutter and noise. 
We were standing together indeedbut I had not taken any of 
the goods out of his handwhen I said to him hastily'You are 
undoneflyfor God's sake!' He ran like lightningand I too
but the pursuit was hotter after him because he had the goods
than after me. He dropped two of the pieceswhich stopped 
them a littlebut the crowd increased and pursued us both. 
They took him soon after with the other two pieces upon him
and then the rest followed me. I ran for it and got into my 
governess's house whither some quick-eyed people followed 
me to warmly as to fix me there. They did not immediately 
knockat the doorby which I got time to throw off my disguise 
and dress me in my own clothes; besideswhen they came there
my governesswho had her tale readykept her door shutand 
called out to them and told them there was no man come in 
there. The people affirmed there did a man come in thereand 
swore they would break open the door. 
My governessnot at all surprisedspoke calmly to themtold 
them they should very freely come and search her houseif 
they should bring a constableand let in none but such as the 
constable would admitfor it was unreasonable to let in a whole 
crowd. This they could not refusethough they were a crowd. 
So a constable was fetched immediatelyand she very freely 
opened the door; the constable kept the doorand the men he 
appointed searched the housemy governess going with them 
from room to room. When she came to my room she called 
to meand said aloud'Cousinpray open the door; here's 
some gentlemen that must come and look into your room.' 
I had a little girl with mewhich was my governess's grandchild
as she called her; and I bade her open the doorand there sat 
I at work with a great litter of things about meas if I had been 
at work all daybeing myself quite undressedwith only 
night-clothes on my headand a loose morning-gown wrapped 
about me. My governess made a kind of excuse for their 
disturbing metelling me partly the occasion of itand that she 
had no remedy but to open the doors to themand let them 
satisfy themselvesfor all she could say to them would not 
satisfy them. I sat stilland bid them search the room if they 
pleasedfor if there was anybody in the houseI was sure they 
were not in my room; and as for the rest of the houseI had 
nothing to say to thatI did not understand what they looked for.
Everything looked so innocent and to honest about methat
they treated me civiller than I expectedbut it was not till they
had searched the room to a nicetyeven under the bedin the
bedand everywhere else where it was possible anything could
be hid. When they had done thisand could find nothingthey
asked my pardon for troubling meand went down.
When they had thus searched the house from bottom to top
and then top to bottomand could find nothingthey
appeased the mob pretty well; but they carried my governess
before the justice. Two men swore that they saw the man
whom they pursued go into her house. My governess rattled
and made a great noise that her house should be insultedand
that she should be used thus for nothing; that if a man did
come inhe might go out again presently for aught she knew
for she was ready to make oath that no man had been within
her doors all that day as she knew of (and that was very true
indeed); that is might be indeed that as she was abovestairs
any fellow in a fright might find the door open and run in for
shelter when he was pursuedbut that she knew nothing of it;
and if it had been sohe certainly went out againperhaps at
the other doorfor she had another door into an alleyand so
had made his escape and cheated them all.
This was indeed probable enoughand the justice satisfied
himself with giving her an oath that she had not received or
admitted any man into her house to conceal himor protect or
hide him from justice. This oath she might justly takeand
did soand so she was dismissed.
It is easy to judge what a fright I was in upon this occasion
and it was impossible for my governess ever to bring me to
dress in that disguise again; foras I told herI should certainly
betray myself.
My poor partner in this mischief was now in a bad casefor
he was carried away before my Lord Mayorand by his worship
committed to Newgateand the people that took him were so
willingas well as ableto prosecute himthat they offered
themselves to enter into recognisances to appear at the sessions
and pursue the charge against him.
Howeverhe got his indictment deferredupon promise to
discover his accomplicesand particularly the man that was
concerned with him in his robbery; and he failed not to do his
endeavourfor he gave in my namewhom he called Gabriel
Spencerwhich was the name I went by to him; and here
appeared the wisdom of my concealing my name and sex from
himwhichif he had ever known I had been undone.
He did all he could to discover this Gabriel Spencer; he
described mehe discovered the place where he said I lodged
andin a wordall the particulars that he could of my dwelling;
but having concealed the main circumstances of my sex from
himI had a vast advantageand he never could hear of me. He
brought two or three families into trouble by his endeavouring
to find me outbut they knew nothing of meany more than
that I had a fellow with me that they had seenbut knew nothing
of. And as for my governessthough she was the means of his
coming to meyet it was done at second-handand he knew
nothing of her.
This turned to his disadvantage; for having promised discoveries
but not being able to make it goodit was looked upon as
trifling with the justice of the cityand he was the more fiercely
pursued by the shopkeepers who took him.
I washoweverterribly uneasy all this whileand that I might
be quite out of the wayI went away from my governess's
for a while; but not knowing wither to wanderI took a
maid-servant with meand took the stage-coach to Dunstable
to my old landlord and landladywhere I had lived so
handsomely with my Lancashire husband. Here I told her a
formal storythat I expected my husband every day from
Irelandand that I had sent a letter to him that I would meet
him at Dunstable at her houseand that he would certainly
landif the wind was fairin a few daysso that I was come to
spend a few days with them till he should comefor he was
either come postor in the West Chester coachI knew not
which; but whichsoever it washe would be sure to come to
that house to meet me.
My landlady was mighty glad to see meand my landlord made
such a stir with methat if I had been a princess I could not
have been better usedand here I might have been welcome
a month or two if I had thought fit.
But my business was of another nature. I was very uneasy
(though so well disguised that it was scarce possible to detect
me) lest this fellow should somehow or other find me out; and
though he could not charge me with this robberyhaving
persuaded him not to ventureand having also done nothing
in it myself but run awayyet he might have charged me with
other thingsand have bought his own life at the expense of
mine.
This filled me with horrible apprehensions. I had no recourse
no friendno confidante but my old governessand I knew no
remedy but to put my life in her handsand so I didfor I let
her know where to send to meand had several letters from
her while I stayed here. Some of them almost scared me out
my wits but at last she sent me the joyful news that he was
hangedwhich was the best news to me that I had heard a
great while.
I had stayed here five weeksand lived very comfortably indeed
(the secret anxiety of my mind excepted); but when I received
this letter I looked pleasantly againan told my landlady that
I had received a letter from my spouse in Irelandthat I had
the good news of his being very wellbut had the bad news
that his business would not permit him to come away so soon
as he expectedand so I was like to go back again without him.
My landlady complimented me upon the good news however
that I had heard he was well. 'For I have observedmadam'
says she'you hadn't been so pleasant as you used to be; you
have been over head and ears in care for himI dare say' says
the good woman; ''tis easy to be seen there's an alteration in
you for the better' says she. 'WellI am sorry the esquire
can't come yet' says my landlord; 'I should have been heartily
glad to have seen him. But I hopewhen you have certain
news of his comingyou'll take a step hither againmadam'
says he; 'you shall be very welcome whenever you please to
come.;
With all these fine compliments we partedand I came merry
enough to Londonand found my governess as well pleased 
as I was. And now she told me she would never recommend 
any partner to me againfor she always foundshe saidthat 
I had the best luck when I ventured by myself. And so indeed 
I hadfor I was seldom in any danger when I was by myself
or if I wasI got out of it with more dexterity than when I was 
entangled with the dull measures of other peoplewho had 
perhaps less forecastand were more rash and impatient than 
I; for though I had as much courage to venture as any of them
yet I used more caution before I undertook a thingand had 
more presence of mind when I was to bring myself off. 
I have often wondered even at my own hardiness another 
waythat when all my companions were surprised and fell so 
suddenly into the hand of justiceand that I so narrowly escaped
yet I could not all this while enter into one serious resolution 
to leave off this tradeand especially considering that I was 
now very far from being poor; that the temptation of necessity
which is generally the introduction of all such wickednesswas 
now removed; for I had near #500 by me in ready moneyon 
which I might have lived very wellif I had thought fit to have 
retired; but I sayI had not so much as the least inclination to 
leave off; nonot so much as I had before when I had but #200 
beforehandand when I had no such frightful examples before 
my eyes as these were. From hence 'tis evident to methat 
when once we are hardened in crimeno fear can affect us
no example give us any warning. 
I had indeed one comrade whose fate went very near me for 
a good whilethough I wore it off too in time. That case was 
indeed very unhappy. I had made a prize of a piece of very 
good damask in a mercer's shopand went clear off myself
but had conveyed the piece to this companion of mine when 
we went out of the shopand she went one way and I went 
another. We had not been long out of the shop but the mercer 
missed his piece of stuffand sent his messengersone one 
way and one anotherand they presently seized her that had 
the piecewith the damask upon her. As for meI had very 
luckily stepped into a house where there was a lace chamber
up one pair of stairsand had the satisfactionor the terror 
indeedof looking out of the window upon the noise they 
madeand seeing the poor creature dragged away in triumph 
to the justicewho immediately committed her to Newgate. 
I was careful to attempt nothing in the lace chamberbut 
tumbled their goods pretty much to spend time; then bought 
a few yards of edging and paid for itand came away very 
sad-hearted indeed for the poor womanwho was in tribulation 
for what I only had stolen. 
Here again my old caution stood me in good stead; namely
that though I often robbed with these peopleyet I never let 
them know who I wasor where I lodgednor could they ever 
find out my lodgingthough they often endeavoured to watch 
me to it. They all knew me by the name of Moll Flanders
though even some of them rather believed I was she than knew 
me to be so. My name was public among them indeedbut 
how to find me out they knew notnor so much as how to 
guess at my quarterswhether they were at the east end of the 
town or the west; and this wariness was my safety upon all 
these occasions. 
I kept close a great while upon the occasion of this woman's 
disaster. I knew that if I should do anything that should 
miscarryand should be carried to prisonshe would be there 
and ready to witness against meand perhaps save her life at 
my expense. I considered that I began to be very well known 
by name at the Old Baileythough they did not know my face
and that if I should fall into their handsI should be treated as 
an old offender; and for this reason I was resolved to see what 
this poor creature's fate should be before I stirred abroad
though several times in her distress I conveyed money to her 
for her relief. 
At length she came to her trial. She pleaded she did not steal 
the thingbut that one Mrs. Flandersas she heard her called 
(for she did not know her)gave the bundle to her after they 
came out of the shopand bade her carry it home to her lodging. 
They asked her where this Mrs. Flanders wasbut she could 
not produce herneither could she give the least account of 
me; and the mercer's men swearing positively that she was in 
the shop when the goods were stolenthat they immediately 
missed themand pursued herand found them upon her
thereupon the jury brought her in guilty; but the Court
considering that she was really not the person that stole the 
goodsan inferior assistantand that it was very possible she 
could not find out this Mrs. Flandersmeaning methough it 
would save her lifewhich indeed was true--I sayconsidering 
all thisthey allowed her to be transportedwhich was the 
utmost favour she could obtainonly that the Court told her 
that if she could in the meantime produce the said Mrs. Flanders
they would intercede for her pardon; that is to sayif she could 
find me outand hand meshe should not be transported. This 
I took care to make impossible to herand so she was shipped 
off in pursuance of her sentence a little while after. 
I must repeat it againthat the fate of this poor woman troubled 
me exceedinglyand I began to be very pensiveknowing that 
I was really the instrument of her disaster; but the preservation 
of my own lifewhich was so evidently in dangertook off all 
my tenderness; and seeing that she was not put to deathI was 
very easy at her transportationbecause she was then out of 
the way of doing me any mischiefwhatever should happen. 
The disaster of this woman was some months before that of 
the last-recited storyand was indeed partly occasion of my 
governess proposing to dress me up in men's clothesthat I 
might go about unobservedas indeed I did; but I was soon 
tired of that disguiseas I have saidfor indeed it exposed me 
to too many difficulties. 
I was now easy as to all fear of witnesses against mefor all 
those that had either been concerned with meor that knew 
me by the name of Moll Flanderswere either hanged or 
transported; and if I should have had the misfortune to be 
takenI might call myself anything elseas well as Moll Flanders
and no old sins could be placed into my account; so I began 
to run a-tick again with the more freedomand several 
successful adventures I madethough not such as I had made 
before. 
We had at that time another fire happened not a great way off 
from the place where my governess livedand I made an attempt 
thereas beforebut as I was not soon enough before the crowd 
of people came inand could not get to the house I aimed at
instead of a prizeI got a mischiefwhich had almost put a period
to my life and all my wicked doings together; for the fire being 
very furiousand the people in a great fright in removing their 
goodsand throwing them out of windowa wench from out
of a window threw a feather-bed just upon me. It is truethe
bed being softit broke no bones; but as the weight was great
and made greater by the fallit beat me downand laid me
dead for a while. Nor did the people concern themselves much
to deliver me from itor to recover me at all; but I lay like one
dead and neglected a good whiletill somebody going to
remove the bed out of the wayhelped me up. It was indeed
a wonder the people in the house had not thrown other goods
out after itand which might have fallen upon itand then I
had been inevitably killed; but I was reserved for further
afflictions.
This accidenthoweverspoiled my market for that timeand
I came home to my governess very much hurt and bruised
and frighted to the last degreeand it was a good while before
she could set me upon my feet again.
It was now a merry time of the yearand Bartholomew Fair
was begun. I had never made any walks that waynor was
the common part of the fair of much advantage to me; but I
took a turn this year into the cloistersand among the rest I
fell into one of the raffling shops. It was a thing of no great
consequence to menor did I expect to make much of it; but
there came a gentleman extremely well dressed and very rich
and as 'tis frequent to talk to everybody in those shopshe
singled me outand was very particular with me. First he told
me he would put in for me to raffleand did so; and some
small matter coming to his lothe presented it to me (I think
it was a feather muff); then he continued to keep talking to
me with a more than common appearance of respectbut still
very civiland much like a gentleman.
He held me in talk so longtill at last he drew me out of the
raffling place to the shop-doorand then to a walk in the cloister
still talking of a thousand things cursorily without anything to
the purpose. At last he told me thatwithout complimenthe
was charmed with my companyand asked me if I durst trust
myself in a coach with him; he told me he was a man of honour
and would not offer anything to me unbecoming him as such.
I seemed to decline it a whilebut suffered myself to be
importuned a littleand then yielded.
I was at a loss in my thoughts to conclude at first what this
gentleman designed; but I found afterwards he had had some
drink in his headand that he was not very unwilling to have
some more. He carried me in the coach to the Spring Garden
at Knightsbridgewhere we walked in the gardensand he
treated me very handsomely; but I found he drank very freely.
He pressed me also to drinkbut I decline it.
Hitherto he kept his word with meand offered me nothing
amiss. We came away in the coach againand he brought me
into the streetsand by this time it was near ten o'clock at
nightand he stopped the coach at a house whereit seems
he was acquaintedand where they made no scruple to show
us upstairs into a room with a bed in it. At first I seemed to
be unwilling to go upbut after a few words I yielded to that
toobeing willing to see the end of itand in hope to make
something of it at last. As for the bedetc.I was not much
concerned about that part.
Here he began to be a little freer with me than he had promised;
and I by little and little yielded to everythingso thatin a word
he did what he pleased with me; I need say no more. All this 
while he drank freely tooand about one in the morning we 
went into the coach again. The air and the shaking of the 
coach made the drink he had get more up in his head than it 
was beforeand he grew uneasy in the coachand was for 
acting over again what he had been doing before; but as I 
thought my game now secureI resisted himand brought him 
to be a little stillwhich had not lasted five minutes but he fell 
fast asleep. 
I took this opportunity to search him to a nicety. I took a 
gold watchwith a silk purse of goldhis fine full-bottom 
periwig and silver-fringed gloveshis sword and fine snuff-box
and gently opening the coach doorstood ready to jump out 
while the coach was going on; but the coach stopped in the 
narrow street beyond Temple Bar to let another coach pass
I got softly outfastened the door againand gave my gentleman 
and the coach the slip both togetherand never heard more 
of them. 
This was an adventure indeed unlooked forand perfectly 
undesigned by me; though I was not so past the merry part 
of lifeas to forget how to behavewhen a fop so blinded by 
his appetite should not know an old woman from a young. I 
did not indeed look so old as I was by ten or twelve years; yet 
I was not a young wench of seventeenand it was easy enough 
to be distinguished. There is nothing so absurdso surfeiting
so ridiculousas a man heated by wine in his headand wicked 
gust in his inclination together; he is in the possession of two 
devils at onceand can no more govern himself by his reason 
than a mill can grind without water; his vice tramples upon all 
that was in him that had any good in itif any such thing there 
was; nayhis very sense is blinded by its own rageand he acts 
absurdities even in his views; such a drinking morewhen he 
is drunk already; picking up a common womanwithout regard 
to what she is or who she iswhether sound or rottenclean 
or uncleanwhether ugly or handsomewhether old or young
and so blinded as not really to distinguish. Such a man is worse 
than a lunatic; prompted by his viciouscorrupted headhe no 
more knows what he is doing than this wretch of mine knew 
when I picked his pocket of his watch and his purse of gold. 
These are the men of whom Solomon says'They go like an 
ox to the slaughtertill a dart strikes through their liver'; an 
admirable descriptionby the wayof the foul diseasewhich 
is a poisonous deadly contagion mingling with the blood
whose centre or foundation is in the liver; from whenceby 
the swift circulation of the whole massthat dreadful nauseous 
plague strikes immediately through his liverand his spirits are 
infectedhis vitals stabbed through as with a dart. 
It is true this poor unguarded wretch was in no danger from 
methough I was greatly apprehensive at first of what danger 
I might be in from him; but he was really to be pitied in one 
respectthat he seemed to be a good sort of man in himself; 
a gentleman that had no harm in his design; a man of sense
and of a fine behavioura comely handsome persona sober 
solid countenancea charming beautiful faceand everything 
that could be agreeable; only had unhappily had some drink 
the night beforehad not been in bedas he told me when we 
were together; was hotand his blood fired with wineand in 
that condition his reasonas it were asleephad given him up. 
As for memy business was his moneyand what I could make 
of him; and after thatif I could have found out any way to 
have done itI would have sent him safe home to his house 
and to his familyfor 'twas ten to one but he had an honest
virtuous wife and innocent childrenthat were anxious for his 
safetyand would have been glad to have gotten him home
and have taken care of him till he was restored to himself. 
And then with what shame and regret would he look back 
upon himself! how would he reproach himself with associating 
himself with a whore! picked up in the worst of all holesthe 
cloisteramong the dirt and filth of all the town! how would 
he be trembling for fear he had got the poxfor fear a dart had 
struck through his liverand hate himself every time he looked 
back upon the madness and brutality of his debauch! how 
would heif he had any principles of honouras I verily believe 
he had--I sayhow would he abhor the thought of giving any 
ill distemperif he had itas for aught he knew he mightto 
his modest and virtuous wifeand thereby sowing the contagion 
in the life-blood of his prosterity. 
Would such gentlemen but consider the contemptible thoughts 
which the very women they are concerned within such cases 
as thesehave of themit would be a surfeit to them. As I 
said abovethey value not the pleasurethey are raised by no 
inclination to the manthe passive jade thinks of no pleasure 
but the money; and when he isas it weredrunk in the 
ecstasies of his wicked pleasureher hands are in his pockets 
searching for what she can find thereand of which he can no 
more be sensible in the moment of his folly that he can forethink 
of it when he goes about it. 
I knew a woman that was so dexterous with a fellowwho 
indeed deserved no better usagethat while he was busy with 
her another wayconveyed his purse with twenty guineas in 
it out of his fob-pocketwhere he had put it for fear of her
and put another purse with gilded counters in it into the room 
of it. After he had donehe says to her'Now han't you picked 
my pocket?' She jested with himand told him she supposed 
he had not much to lose; he put his hand to his foband with 
his fingers felt that his purse was therewhich fully satisfied 
himand so she brought off his money. And this was a trade 
with her; she kept a sham gold watchthat isa watch of silver 
giltand a purse of counters in her pocket to be ready on all 
such occasionsand I doubt not practiced it with success. 
I came home with this last booty to my governessand really 
when I told her the storyit so affected her that she was hardly 
able to forbear tearsto know how such a gentleman ran a 
daily risk of being undone every time a glass of wine got into 
his head. 
But as to the purchase I gotand how entirely I stripped him
she told me it please her wonderfully. 'Nay child' says she
'the usage mayfor aught I knowdo more to reform him than 
all the sermons that ever he will hear in his life.' And if the 
remainder of the story be trueso it did. 
I found the next day she was wonderful inquisitive about this 
gentleman; the description I had given her of himhis dress
his personhis faceeverything concurred to make her think 
of a gentleman whose character she knewand family too. 
She mused a whileand I going still on with the particulars
she starts up; says she'I'll lay #100 I know the gentleman.' 
'I am sorry you do' says I'for I would not have him exposed 
on any account in the world; he has had injury enough already 
by meand I would not be instrumental to do him any more.' 
'Nono' says she'I will do him no injuryI assure youbut 
you may let me satisfy my curiosity a littlefor if it is heI 
warrant you I find it out.' I was a little startled at thatand 
told herwith an apparent concern in my facethat by the same 
rule he might find me outand then I was undone. She returned 
warmly'Whydo you think I will betray youchild? Nono' 
says she'not for all he is worth in the world. I have kept your 
counsel in worse things than these; sure you may trust me in 
this.' So I said no more at that time. 
She laid her scheme another wayand without acquainting me 
of itbut she was resolved to find it out if possible. So she 
goes to a certain friend of hers who was acquainted in the 
family that she guessed atand told her friend she had some 
extraordinary business with such a gentleman (whoby the 
waywas no less than a baronetand of a very good family)
and that she knew not how to come at him without somebody 
to introduce her. Her friend promised her very readily to do 
itand accordingly goes to the house to see if the gentleman 
was in town. 
The next day she come to my governess and tells her that 
Sir ---- was at homebut that he had met with a disaster and 
was very illand there was no speaking with him. 'What 
disaster?' says my governess hastilyas if she was surprised 
at it. 'Why' says her friend'he had been at Hampstead to 
visit a gentleman of his acquaintanceand as he came back 
again he was set upon and robbed; and having got a little drink 
tooas they supposethe rogues abused himand he is very ill.' 
'Robbed!' says my governess'and what did they take from 
him?' 'Why' says her friend'they took his gold watch and 
his gold snuff-boxhis fine periwigand what money he had 
in his pocketwhich was considerableto be surefor Sir ---never 
goes without a purse of guineas about him.' 
'Pshaw!' says my old governessjeering'I warrant you he 
has got drunk now and got a whoreand she has picked his 
pocketand so he comes home to his wife and tells her he has 
been robbed. That's an old sham; a thousand such tricks are 
put upon the poor women every day.' 
'Fie!' says her friend'I find you don't know Sir ----; why he 
is a civil a gentlemanthere is not a finer mannor a soberer
gravermodester person in the whole city; he abhors such things; 
there's nobody that knows him will think such a thing of him.' 
'Wellwell' says my governess'that's none of my business; 
if it wasI warrant I should find there was something of that 
kind in it; your modest men in common opinion are sometimes 
no better than other peopleonly they keep a better character
orif you pleaseare the better hypocrites.' 
'Nono' says her friend'I can assure you Sir ---- is no 
hypocritehe is really an honestsober gentlemanand he has 
certainly been robbed.' 'Nay' says my governess'it may be 
he has; it is no business of mineI tell you; I only want to 
speak with him; my business is of another nature.' 'But' says 
her friend'let your business be of what nature it willyou 
cannot see him yetfor he is not fit to be seenfor he is very 
illand bruised very much' 'Ay' says my governess'nay
then he has fallen into bad handsto be sure' And then she 
asked gravely'Praywhere is he bruised?' 'Whyin the head' 
says her friend'and one of his handsand his facefor they 
used him barbarously.' 'Poor gentleman' says my governess
'I must waitthentill he recovers'; and adds'I hope it will 
not be longfor I want very much to speak with him.' 
Away she comes to me and tells me this story. 'I have found 
out your fine gentlemanand a fine gentleman he was' says 
she; 'butmercy on himhe is in a sad pickle now. I wonder 
what the d--l you have done to him; whyyou have almost 
killed him.' I looked at her with disorder enough. 'I killed 
him!' says I; 'you must mistake the person; I am sure I did 
nothing to him; he was very well when I left him' said I'only 
drunk and fast asleep.' 'I know nothing of that' says she
'but he is in a sad pickle now'; and so she told me all that her 
friend had said to her. 'Wellthen' says I'he fell into bad 
hands after I left himfor I am sure I left him safe enough.' 
About ten days afteror a little moremy governess goes again 
to her friendto introduce her to this gentleman; she had 
inquired other ways in the meantimeand found that he was 
about againif not abroad againso she got leave to speak 
with him. 
She was a woman of a admirable addressand wanted nobody 
to introduce her; she told her tale much better than I shall be 
able to tell it for herfor she was a mistress of her tongueas 
I have said already. She told him that she camethough a 
strangerwith a single design of doing him a service and he 
should find she had no other end in it; that as she came purely 
on so friendly an accountshe begged promise from himthat 
if he did not accept what she should officiously propose he 
would not take it ill that she meddled with what was not her 
business. She assured him that as what she had to say was a 
secret that belonged to him onlyso whether he accepted her 
offer or notit should remain a secret to all the worldunless 
he exposed it himself; nor should his refusing her service in it 
make her so little show her respect as to do him the least injury
so that he should be entirely at liberty to act as he thought fit. 
He looked very shy at firstand said he knew nothing that 
related to him that required much secrecy; that he had never 
done any man any wrongand cared not what anybody might 
say of him; that it was no part of his character to be unjust to 
anybodynor could he imagine in what any man could render 
him any service; but that if it was so disinterested a service as 
she saidhe could not take it ill from any one that they should 
endeavour to serve him; and soas it wereleft her a liberty 
either to tell him or not to tellas she thought fit. 
She found him so perfectly indifferentthat she was almost 
afraid to enter into the point with him; buthoweverafter 
some other circumlocutions she told him that by a strange and 
unaccountable accident she came to have a particular knowledge 
of the late unhappy adventure he had fallen intoand that in such 
a mannerthat there was nobody in the world but herself and 
him that were acquainted with itnonot the very person that 
was with him. 
He looked a little angrily at first. 'What adventure?' said he. 
'Why' said she'of your being robbed coming from Knightbr----; 
HampsteadsirI should say' says she. 'Be not surprisedsir' 
says she'that I am able to tell you every step you took that 
day from the cloister in Smithfield to the Spring Garden at 
Knightsbridgeand thence to the ---- in the Strandand how 
you were left asleep in the coach afterwards. I saylet not 
this surprise youforsirI do not come to make a booty of 
youI ask nothing of youand I assure you the woman that 
was with you knows nothing who you areand never shall; 
and yet perhaps I may serve you further stillfor I did not come 
barely to let you know that I was informed of these thingsas 
if I wanted a bride to conceal them; assure yourselfsir' said 
she'that whatever you think fit to do or say to meit shall be 
all a secret as it isas much as if I were in my grave.' 
He was astonished at her discourseand said gravely to her
'Madamyou are a stranger to mebut it is very unfortunate 
that you should be let into the secret of the worst action of 
my lifeand a thing that I am so justly ashamed ofthat the 
only satisfaction of it to me wasthat I thought it was known 
only to God any my own conscience.' 'Praysir' says she
'do not reckon the discovery of it to me to be any part of your 
misfortune. It was a thingI believeyou were surprised into
and perhaps the woman used some art to prompt you to it; 
howeveryou will never find any just cause' said she'to 
repent that I came to hear of it; nor can your own mouth be 
more silent in it that I have beenand ever shall be.' 
'Well' says he'but let me do some justice to the woman too; 
whoever she isI do assure you she prompted me to nothing
she rather declined me. It was my own folly and madness that 
brought me into it allayand brought her into it too; I must 
give her her due so far. As to what she took from meI could 
expect no less from her in the condition I was inand to this 
hour I know not whether she robbed me or the coachman; if 
she did itI forgive herand I think all gentlemen that do so 
should be used in the same manner; but I am more concerned 
for some other things that I am for all that she took from me.' 
My governess now began to come into the whole matterand 
he opened himself freely to her. First she said to himin answer 
to what he had said about me'I am gladsiryou are so just 
to the person that you were with; I assure you she is a 
gentlewomanand no woman of the town; and however you 
prevailed with her so far as you didI am sure 'tis not her 
practice. You ran a great venture indeedsir; but if that be 
any part of your careI am persuaded you may be perfectly 
easyfor I dare assure you no man has touched herbefore 
yousince her husbandand he has been dead now almost 
eight years.' 
It appeared that this was his grievanceand that he was in a 
very great fright about it; howeverwhen my governess said 
this to himhe appeared very well pleasedand said'Well
madamto be plain with youif I was satisfied of thatI should 
not so much value what I lost; foras to thatthe temptation 
was greatand perhaps she was poor and wanted it.' 'If she 
had not been poorsir ----' says my governess'I assure you 
she would never have yielded to you; and as her poverty first 
prevailed with her to let you do as you didso the same poverty 
prevailed with her to pay herself at lastwhen she saw you 
was in such a conditionthat if she had not done itperhaps 
the next coachman might have done it.' 
'Well' says he'much good may it do her. I say againall the 
gentlemen that do so ought to be used in the same manner
and then they would be cautious of themselves. I have no 
more concern about itbut on the score which you hinted at 
beforemadam.' Here he entered into some freedoms with 
her on the subject of what passed between uswhich are not 
so proper for a woman to writeand the great terror that was 
upon his mind with relation to his wifefor fear he should have 
received any injury from meand should communicate if farther; 
and asked her at last if she could not procure him an opportunity 
to speak with me. My governess gave him further assurances 
of my being a woman clear from any such thingand that he 
was as entirely save in that respect as he was with his own 
lady; but as for seeing meshe said it might be of dangerous 
consequence; buthoweverthat she would talk with meand 
let him know my answerusing at the same time some arguments 
to persuade him not to desire itand that it could be of no 
service to himseeing she hoped he had no desire to renew a 
correspondence with meand that on my account it was a kind 
of putting my life in his hands. 
He told her he had a great desire to see methat he would 
give her any assurances that were in his powernot to take 
any advantages of meand that in the first place he would give 
me a general release from all demands of any kind. She insisted 
how it might tend to a further divulging the secretand might 
in the end be injurious to himentreating him not to press for 
it; so at length he desisted. 
They had some discourse upon the subject of the things he had 
lostand he seemed to be very desirous of his gold watchand 
told her if she could procure that for himhe would willingly 
give as much for it as it was worth. She told him she would 
endeavour to procure it for himand leave the valuing it to 
himself. 
Accordingly the next day she carried the watchand he gave 
her thirty guineas for itwhich was more than I should have 
been able to make of itthough it seems it cost much more. 
He spoke something of his periwigwhich it seems cost him 
threescore guineasand his snuff-boxand in a few days more 
she carried them too; which obliged him very muchand he 
gave her thirty more. The next day I sent him his fine sword 
and cane gratisand demanded nothing of himbut I had no 
mind to see himunless it had been so that he might be satisfied 
I knew who he waswhich he was not willing to. 
Then he entered into a long talk with her of the manner how 
she came to know all this matter. She formed a long tale of 
that part; how she had it from one that I had told the whole 
story toand that was to help me dispose of the goods; and 
this confidante brought the things to hershe being by profession 
a pawnbroker; and she hearing of his worship's disasterguessed 
at the thing in general; that having gotten the things into her 
handsshe had resolved to come and try as she had done. She 
then gave him repeated assurances that it should never go out 
of her mouthand though she knew the woman very wellyet 
she had not let her knowmeaning meanything of it; that is 
to saywho the person waswhichby the waywas false; but
howeverit was not to his damagefor I never opened my 
mouth of it to anybody. 
I had a great many thoughts in my head about my seeing him 
againand was often sorry that I had refused it. I was persuaded 
that if I had seen himand let him know that I knew himI 
should have made some advantage of himand perhaps have 
had some maintenance from him; and though it was a life 
wicked enoughyet it was not so full of danger as this I was 
engaged in. Howeverthose thoughts wore offand I declined 
seeing him againfor that time; but my governess saw him 
oftenand he was very kind to hergiving her something almost 
every time he saw her. One time in particular she found him 
very merryand as she thought he had some wine in his head
and he pressed her again very earnestly to let him see that 
woman thatas he saidhad bewitched him so that nightmy 
governesswho was from the beginning for my seeing him
told him he was so desirous of it that she could almost yield 
of itif she could prevail upon me; adding that if he would 
please to come to her house in the eveningshe would 
endeavour itupon his repeated assurances of forgetting what 
was past. 
Accordingly she came to meand told me all the discourse; 
in shortshe soon biassed me to consentin a case which I had 
some regret in my mind for declining before; so I prepared to 
see him. I dressed me to all the advantage possibleI assure 
youand for the first time used a little art; I say for the first 
timefor I had never yielded to the baseness of paint before
having always had vanity enough to believe I had no need of it. 
At the hour appointed he came; and as she observed before
so it was plain stillthat he had been drinkingthough very far 
from what we call being in drink. He appeared exceeding 
pleased to see meand entered into a long discourse with me 
upon the old affair. I begged his pardon very often for my 
share of itprotested I had not any such design when first I 
met himthat I had not gone out with him but that I took him 
for a very civil gentlemanand that he made me so many 
promises of offering no uncivility to me. 
He alleged the wine he drankand that he scarce knew what 
he didand that if it had not been soI should never have let 
him take the freedom with me that he had done. He protested 
to me that he never touched any woman but me since he was 
married to his wifeand it was a surprise upon him; complimented 
me upon being so particularly agreeable to himand the like; 
and talked so much of that kindtill I found he had talked 
himself almost into a temper to do the same thing over again. 
But I took him up short. I protested I had never suffered any 
man to touch me since my husband diedwhich was near eight 
years. He said he believed it to be so truly; and added that 
madam had intimated as much to himand that it was his 
opinion of that part which made hi desire to see me again; and 
that since he had once broke in upon his virtue with meand 
found no ill consequenceshe could be safe in venturing there 
again; and soin shortit went on to what I expectedand to 
what will not bear relating. 
My old governess had foreseen itas well as Iand therefore 
led him into a room which had not a bed in itand yet had a 
chamber within it which had a bedwhither we withdrew for 
the rest of the night; andin shortafter some time being 
togetherhe went to bedand lay there all night. I withdrew
but came again undressed in the morningbefore it was day
and lay with him the rest of the time. 
Thusyou seehaving committed a crime once is a sad handle 
to the committing of it again; whereas all the regret and 
reflections wear off when the temptation renews itself. Had 
I not yielded to see him againthe corrupt desire in him had 
worn offand 'tis very probable he had never fallen into it 
with anybody elseas I really believe he had not done before. 
When he went awayI told him I hoped he was satisfied he 
had not been robbed again. He told me he was satisfied in 
that pointand could trust me againand putting his hand in 
his pocketgave me five guineaswhich was the first money 
I had gained that way for many years. 
I had several visits of the like kind from himbut he never 
came into a settled way of maintenancewhich was what I 
would have best pleased with. Onceindeedhe asked me 
how I did to live. I answered him pretty quickthat I assured 
him I had never taken that course that I took with himbut 
that indeed I worked at my needleand could just maintain 
myself; that sometime it was as much as I was able to doand 
I shifted hard enough. 
He seemed to reflect upon himself that he should be the first 
person to lead me into thatwhich he assured me he never 
intended to do himself; and it touched him a littlehe said
that he should be the cause of his own sin and mine too. He 
would often make just reflections also upon the crime itself
and upon the particular circumstances of it with respect to 
himself; how wine introduced the inclinations how the devil 
led him to the placeand found out an object to tempt him
and he made the moral always himself. 
When these thoughts were upon him he would go awayand 
perhaps not come again in a month's time or longer; but then 
as the serious part wore offthe lewd part would wear inand 
then he came prepared for the wicked part. Thus we lived for 
some time; thought he did not keepas they call ityet he 
never failed doing things that were handsomeand sufficient 
to maintain me without workingandwhich was better
without following my old trade. 
But this affair had its end too; for after about a yearI found 
that he did not come so often as usualand at last he left if 
off altogether without any dislike to bidding adieu; and so 
there was an end of that short scene of lifewhich added no 
great store to meonly to make more work for repentance. 
Howeverduring this interval I confined myself pretty much 
at home; at leastbeing thus provided forI made no adventures
nonot for a quarter of a year after he left me; but then finding 
the fund failand being loth to spend upon the main stockI 
began to think of my old tradeand to look abroad into the 
street again; and my first step was lucky enough. 
I had dressed myself up in a very mean habitfor as I had 
several shapes to appear inI was now in an ordinary stuff-gown
a blue apronand a straw hat and I placed myself at the door 
of the Three Cups Inn in St. John Street. There were several 
carriers used the innand the stage-coaches for Barnetfor 
Totteridgeand other towns that way stood always in the street 
in the eveningwhen they prepared to set outso that I was 
ready for anything that offeredfor either one or other. The 
meaning was this; people come frequently with bundles and 
small parcels to those innsand call for such carriers or coaches 
as they wantto carry them into the country; and there generally 
attend womenporters' wives or daughtersready to take in 
such things for their respective people that employ them. 
It happened very oddly that I was standing at the inn gateand 
a woman that had stood there beforeand which was the 
porter's wife belonging to the Barnet stage-coachhaving 
observed measked if I waited for any of the coaches. I told 
her YesI waited for my mistressthat was coming to go to 
Barnet. She asked me who was my mistressand I told her 
any madam's name that came next me; but as it seemedI 
happened upon a namea family of which name lived at 
Hadleyjust beyond Barnet. 
I said no more to heror she to mea good while; but by and 
bysomebody calling her at a door a little way offshe desired 
me that if anybody called for the Barnet coachI would step 
and call her at the housewhich it seems was an alehouse. I 
said Yesvery readilyand away she went. 
She was no sooner gone but comes a wench and a childpuffing 
and sweatingand asks for the Barnet coach. I answered 
presently'Here.' 'Do you belong to the Barnet coach?' says 
she. 'Yessweetheart' said I; 'what do ye want?' 'I want 
room for two passengers' says she. 'Where are theysweetheart?' 
said I. 'Here's this girlpray let her go into the coach' says 
she'and I'll go and fetch my mistress.' 'Make hastethen
sweetheart' says I'for we may be full else.' The maid had 
a great bundle under her arm; so she put the child into the 
coachand I said'You had best put your bundle into the coach 
too.' 'No' says she'I am afraid somebody should slip it away 
from the child.' 'Give to methen' said I'and I'll take care 
of it.' 'Dothen' says she'and be sure you take of it.' 'I'll 
answer for it' said I'if it were for #20 value.' "Theretake 
itthen' says sheand away she goes. 
As soon as I had got the bundleand the maid was out of sight
I goes on towards the alehousewhere the porter's wife was
so that if I had met herI had then only been going to give her 
the bundleand to call her to her businessas if I was going 
awayand could stay no longer; but as I did not meet herI 
walked awayand turning into Charterhouse Lanethen 
crossed into Batholomew Closeso into Little Britainand 
through the Bluecoat Hospitalinto Newgate Street. 
To prevent my being knownI pulled off my blue apronand 
wrapped the bundle in itwhich before was made up in a piece 
of painted calicoand very remarkable; I also wrapped up my 
straw hat in itand so put the bundle upon my head; and it was 
very well that I did thusfor coming through the Bluecoat 
Hospitalwho should I meet but the wench that had given me 
the bundle to hold. It seems she was going with her mistress
whom she had been gone to fetchto the Barnet coaches. 
I saw she was in hasteand I had no business to stop her; so 
away she wentand I brought my bundle safe home to my 
governess. There was no moneynor plateor jewels in the 
bundlebut a very good suit of Indian damaska gown and a 
petticoata laced-head and ruffles of very good Flanders lace
and some linen and other thingssuch as I knew very well the 
value of. 
This was not indeed my own inventionbut was given me by 
one that had practised it with successand my governess liked 
it extremely; and indeed I tried it again several timesthough 
never twice near the same place; for the next time I tried it in 
White Chapeljust by the corner of Petticoat Lanewhere the 
coaches stand that go out to Stratford and Bowand that side 
of the countryand another time at the Flying Horsewithout 
Bishopgatewhere the Cheston coaches then lay; and I had 
always the good luck to come off with some booty. 
Another time I placed myself at a warehouse by the waterside
where the coasting vessels from the north comesuch as from 
Newcastle-upon-TyneSunderlandand other places. Here
the warehouses being shutcomes a young fellow with a letter; 
and he wanted a box and a hamper that was come from 
Newcastle-upon-Tyne. I asked him if he had the marks of it; 
so he shows me the letterby virtue of which he was to ask 
for itand which gave an account of the contentsthe box 
being full of linenand the hamper full of glass ware. I read 
the letterand took care to see the nameand the marksthe 
name of the person that sent the goodsthe name of the person 
that they were sent to; then I bade the messenger come in the 
morningfor that the warehouse-keeper would not be there 
any more that night. 
Away went Iand getting materials in a public houseI wrote 
a letter from Mr. John Richardson of Newcastle to his dear 
cousin Jemmy Colein Londonwith an account that he sent 
by such a vessel (for I remembered all the particulars to a title)
so many pieces of huckaback linenso many ells of Dutch 
holland and the likein a boxand a hamper of flint glasses 
from Mr. Henzill's glasshouse; and that the box was marked 
I. C. No. 1and the hamper was directed by a label on the 
cording. 
About an hour afterI came to the warehousefound the 
warehouse-keeperand had the goods delivered me without 
any scruple; the value of the linen being about #22. 
I could fill up this whole discourse with the variety of such 
adventureswhich daily invention directed toand which I 
managed with the utmost dexterityand always with success. 
At length-as when does the pitcher come safe home that goes 
so very often to the well?-I fell into some small broilswhich 
though they could not affect me fatallyyet made me known
which was the worst thing next to being found guilty that 
could befall me. 
I had taken up the disguise of a widow's dress; it was without 
any real design in viewbut only waiting for anything that 
might offeras I often did. It happened that while I was going 
along the street in Covent Gardenthere was a great cry of 
'Stop thief! Stop thief!' some artists hadit seemsput a trick 
upon a shopkeeperand being pursuedsome of them fled 
one wayand some another; and one of them wasthey said
dressed up in widow's weedsupon which the mob gathered 
about meand some said I was the personothers said no. 
Immediately came the mercer's journeymanand he swore 
aloud I was the personand so seized on me. Howeverwhen 
I was brought back by the mob to the mercer's shopthe 
master of the house said freely that I was not the woman that 
was in his shopand would have let me go immediately; but 
another fellow said gravely'Pray stay till Mr. ----' (meaning 
the journeyman) 'comes backfor he knows her.' So they 
kept me by force near half an hour. They had called a constable
and he stood in the shop as my jailer; and in talking with the 
constable I inquired where he livedand what trade he was; 
the man not apprehending in the least what happened afterwards
readily told me his nameand tradeand where he lived; and 
told me as a jestthat I might be sure to hear of his name when 
I came to the Old Bailey. 
Some of the servants likewise used me saucilyand had much 
ado to keep their hands off me; the master indeed was civiller 
to me than theybut he would not yet let me gothough he 
owned he could not say I was in his shop before. 
I began to be a little surly with himand told him I hoped he 
would not take it ill if I made myself amends upon him in a 
more legal way another time; and desired I might send for 
friends to see me have right done me. Nohe saidhe could 
give no such liberty; I might ask it when I came before the 
justice of peace; and seeing I threatened himhe would take 
care of me in the meantimeand would lodge me safe in 
Newgate. I told him it was his time nowbut it would be 
mine by and byand governed my passion as well as I was able. 
HoweverI spoke to the constable to call me a porterwhich 
he didand then I called for peninkand paperbut they 
would let me have none. I asked the porter his nameand 
where he livedand the poor man told it me very willingly. 
I bade him observe and remember how I was treated there; 
that he saw I was detained there by force. I told him I should 
want his evidence in another placeand it should not be the 
worse for him to speak. The porter said he would serve me 
with all his heart. 'Butmadam' says he'let me hear them 
refuse to let you gothen I may be able to speak the plainer.' 
With that I spoke aloud to the master of the shopand said
'Siryou know in your own conscience that I am not the 
person you look forand that I was not in your shop before
therefore I demand that you detain me here no longeror tell 
me the reason of your stopping me.' The fellow grew surlier 
upon this than beforeand said he would do neither till he 
thought fit. 'Very well' said I to the constable and to the 
porter; 'you will be pleased to remember thisgentlemen
another time.' The porter said'Yesmadam'; and the 
constable began not to like itand would have persuaded the 
mercer to dismiss himand let me gosinceas he saidhe 
owned I was not the person. 'Goodsir' says the mercer to 
him tauntingly'are you a justice of peace or a constable? I 
charged you with her; pray do you do your duty.' The constable 
told hima little movedbut very handsomely'I know my 
dutyand what I amsir; I doubt you hardly know what you 
are doing.' They had some other hard wordsand in the 
meantime the journeymanimpudent and unmanly to the last 
degreeused me barbarouslyand one of themthe same that 
first seized upon mepretended he would search meand began 
to lay hands on me. I spit in his facecalled out to the constable
and bade him to take notice of my usage. 'And prayMr. 
Constable' said I'ask that villain's name' pointing to the 
man. The constable reproved him decentlytold him that he 
did not know what he didfor he knew that his master 
acknowledged I was not the person that was in his shop; 'and' 
says the constable'I am afraid your master is bringing himself
and me toointo troubleif this gentlewoman comes to prove 
who she isand where she wasand it appears that she is not 
the woman you pretend to.' 'Damn her' says the fellow again
with a impudenthardened face'she is the ladyyou may depend 
upon it; I'll swear she is the same body that was in the shop
and that I gave the pieces of satin that is lost into her own hand. 
You shall hear more of it when Mr. William and Mr. Anthony 
(those were other journeymen) come back; they will know her 
again as well as I.' 
Just as the insolent rogue was talking thus to the constable
comes back Mr. William and Mr. Anthonyas he called them
and a great rabble with thembringing along with them the 
true widow that I was pretended to be; and they came sweating 
and blowing into the shopand with a great deal of triumph
dragging the poor creature in the most butcherly manner up 
towards their masterwho was in the back shopand cried 
out aloud'Here's the widowsir; we have catcher her at last.' 
'What do ye mean by that?' says the master. 'Whywe have 
her already; there she sits' says he'and Mr.----' says he
'can swear this is she.' The other manwhom they called Mr. 
Anthonyreplied'Mr. ---- may say what he willand swear 
what he willbut this is the womanand there's the remnant 
of satin she stole; I took it out of her clothes with my own hand.' 
I sat still nowand began to take a better heartbut smiled and 
said nothing; the master looked pale; the constable turned 
about and looked at me. 'Let 'em aloneMr. Constable' said 
I; 'let 'em go on.' The case was plain and could not be denied
so the constable was charged with the right thiefand the 
mercer told me very civilly he was sorry for the mistakeand 
hoped I would not take it ill; that they had so many things of 
this nature put upon them every daythat they could not be 
blamed for being very sharp in doing themselves justice. 'Not 
take it illsir!' said I; 'how can I take it well! If you had 
dismissed me when your insolent fellow seized on me it the 
streetand brought me to youand when you yourself 
acknowledged I was not the personI would have put it by
and not taken it illbecause of the many ill things I believe 
you have put upon you daily; but your treatment of me since 
has been insufferableand especially that of your servant; I 
must and will have reparation for that.' 
Then be began to parley with mesaid he would make me any 
reasonable satisfactionand would fain have had me tell him 
what it was I expected. I told him that I should not be my 
own judgethe law should decide it for me; and as I was to be 
carried before a magistrateI should let him hear there what 
I had to say. He told me there was no occasion to go before 
the justice nowI was at liberty to go where I pleased; and so
calling to the constabletold him he might let me gofor I 
was discharge. The constable said calmly to him'siryou 
asked me just now if I knew whether I was a constable or 
justiceand bade me do my dutyand charged me with this 
gentlewoman as a prisoner. NowsirI find you do not 
understand what is my dutyfor you would make me a justice 
indeed; but I must tell you it is not in my power. I may keep 
a prisoner when I am charged with himbut 'tis the law and 
the magistrate alone that can discharge that prisoner; therefore 
'tis a mistakesir; I must carry her before a justice now
whether you think well of it or not.' The mercer was very 
high with the constable at first; but the constable happening 
to be not a hired officerbut a goodsubstantial kind of man 
(I think he was a corn-handler)and a man of good sense
stood to his businesswould not discharge me without going 
to a justice of the peace; and I insisted upon it too. When the 
mercer saw that'Well' says he to the constable'you may 
carry her where you please; I have nothing to say to her.' 
'Butsir' says the constable'you will go with usI hopefor 
'tis you that charged me with her.' 'Nonot I' says the 
mercer; 'I tell you I have nothing to say to her.' 'But praysir
do' says the constable; 'I desire it of you for your own sake
for the justice can do nothing without you.' 'Pritheefellow' 
says the mercer'go about your business; I tell you I have 
nothing to say to the gentlewoman. I charge you in the king's 
name to dismiss her.' 'Sir' says the constable'I find you 
don't know what it is to be constable; I beg of you don't oblige 
me to be rude to you.' 'I think I need not; you are rude enough 
already' says the mercer. 'Nosir' says the constable'I am 
not rude; you have broken the peace in bringing an honest 
woman out of the streetwhen she was about her lawful 
occasionconfining her in your shopand ill-using her here 
by your servants; and now can you say I am rude to you? I 
think I am civil to you in not commanding or charging you in 
the king's name to go with meand charging every man I see 
that passes your door to aid and assist me in carrying you by 
force; this you cannot but know I have power to doand yet I 
forbear itand once more entreat you to go with me.' Wellhe 
would not for all thisand gave the constable ill language. 
Howeverthe constable kept his temperand would not be 
provoked; and then I put in and said'ComeMr. Constable
let him alone; I shall find ways enough to fetch him before a 
magistrateI don't fear that; but there's the fellow' says I
'he was the man that seized on me as I was innocently going 
along the streetand you are a witness of the violence with 
me since; give me leave to charge you with himand carry 
him before the justice.' 'Yesmadam' says the constable; 
and turning to the fellow 'Comeyoung gentleman' says he 
to the journeyman'you must go along with us; I hope you 
are not above the constable's powerthough your master is.' 
The fellow looked like a condemned thiefand hung back
then looked at his masteras if he could help him; and helike 
a foolencourage the fellow to be rudeand he truly resisted 
the constableand pushed him back with a good force when 
he went to lay hold on himat which the constable knocked 
him downand called out for help; and immediately the shop 
was filled with peopleand the constable seized the master 
and manand all his servants. 
This first ill consequence of this fray wasthat the woman 
they had takenwho was really the thiefmade offand got 
clear away in the crowd; and two other that they had stopped 
also; whether they were really guilty or notthat I can say 
nothing to. 
By this time some of his neighbours having come inand
upon inquiryseeing how things wenthad endeavoured to 
bring the hot-brained mercer to his sensesand he began to 
be convinced that he was in the wrong; and so at length we 
went all very quietly before the justicewith a mob of about 
five hundred people at our heels; and all the way I went I 
could hear the people ask what was the matterand other reply 
and saya mercer had stopped a gentlewoman instead of a 
thiefand had afterwards taken the thiefand now the 
gentlewoman had taken the mercerand was carrying him 
before the justice. This pleased the people strangelyand 
made the crowd increaseand they cried out as they went
'Which is the rogue? which is the mercer?' and especially 
the women. Then when they saw him they cried out'That's 
hethat's he'; and every now and then came a good dab of 
dirt at him; and thus we marched a good whiletill the mercer 
thought fit to desire the constable to call a coach to protect 
himself from the rabble; so we rode the rest of the waythe 
constable and Iand the mercer and his man. 
When we came to the justicewhich was an ancient gentleman 
in Bloomsburythe constable giving first a summary account 
of the matterthe justice bade me speakand tell what I had 
to say. And first he asked my namewhich I was very loth to 
givebut there was no remedyso I told him my name was 
Mary Flandersthat I was a widowmy husband being a sea 
captaindied on a voyage to Virginia; and some other 
circumstances I told which he could never contradictand 
that I lodged at present in town with such a personnaming 
my governess; but that I was preparing to go over to America
where my husband's effects layand that I was going that day 
to buy some clothes to put myself into second mourningbut 
had not yet been in any shopwhen that fellowpointing to 
the mercer's journeymancame rushing upon me with such 
fury as very much frighted meand carried me back to his 
master's shopwherethough his master acknowledged I was 
not the personyet he would not dismiss mebut charged a 
constable with me. 
Then I proceeded to tell how the journeyman treated me; how 
they would not suffer me to send for any of my friends; how 
afterwards they found the real thiefand took the very goods 
they had lost upon herand all the particulars as before. 
Then the constable related his case: his dialogue with the 
mercer about discharging meand at last his servant's refusing 
to go with himwhen he had charged him with himand his 
master encouraging him to do soand at last his striking the 
constableand the likeall as I have told it already. 
The justice then heard the mercer and his man. The mercer 
indeed made a long harangue of the great loss they have daily 
by lifters and thieves; that it was easy for them to mistake
and that when he found it he would have dismissed meetc.
as above. As to the journeymanhe had very little to saybut 
that he pretended other of the servants told him that I was 
really the person. 
Upon the wholethe just first of all told me very courteously 
I was discharged; that he was very sorry that the mercer's man 
should in his eager pursuit have so little discretion as to take 
up an innocent person for a guilty person; that if he had not 
been so unjust as to detain me afterwardhe believed I would 
have forgiven the first affront; thathoweverit was not in his 
power to award me any reparation for anythingother than by 
openly reproving themwhich he should do; but he supposed 
I would apply to such methods as the law directed; in the 
meantime he would bind him over. 
But as to the breach of the peace committed by the journeyman
he told me he should give me some satisfaction for thatfor he 
should commit him to Newgate for assaulting the constable
and for assaulting me also. 
Accordingly he sent the fellow to Newgate for that assault
and his master gave bailand so we came away; but I had the 
satisfaction of seeing the mob wait upon them bothas they 
came outhallooing and throwing stones and dirt at the coaches 
they rode in; and so I came home to my governess. 
After this hustlecoming home and telling my governess the 
storyshe falls a-laughing at me. 'Why are you merry?' says 
I; 'the story has not so much laughing room in it as you imagine; 
I am sure I have had a great deal of hurry and fright toowith 
a pack of ugly rogues.' 'Laugh!' says my governess; 'I laugh
childto see what a lucky creature you are; whythis job will 
be the best bargain to you that ever you made in your lifeif 
you manage it well. I warrant you' says she'you shall make 
the mercer pay you #500 for damagesbesides what you shall 
get out of the journeyman.' 
I had other thoughts of the matter than she had; and especially
because I had given in my name to the justice of peace; and 
I knew that my name was so well known among the people 
at Hick's Hallthe Old Baileyand such placesthat if this 
cause came to be tried openlyand my name came to be inquired 
intono court would give much damagesfor the reputation 
of a person of such a character. HoweverI was obliged to 
begin a prosecution in formand accordingly my governess 
found me out a very creditable sort of a man to manage it
being an attorney of very good businessand of a good 
reputationand she was certainly in the right of this; for had 
she employed a pettifogging hedge solicitoror a man not 
knownand not in good reputationI should have brought it 
to but little. 
I met this attorneyand gave him all the particulars at large
as they are recited above; and he assured me it was a caseas 
he saidthat would very well support itselfand that he did 
not question but that a jury would give very considerable 
damages on such an occasion; so taking his full instructions 
he began the prosecutionand the mercer being arrestedgave 
bail. A few days after his giving bailhe comes with his 
attorney to my attorneyto let him know that he desired to 
accommodate the matter; that it was all carried on I the heat 
of an unhappy passion; that his clientmeaning mehad a 
sharp provoking tonguethat I used them illgibing at them
and jeering themeven while they believed me to be the very 
personand that I had provoked themand the like. 
My attorney managed as well on my side; made them believe
I was a widow of fortunethat I was able to do myself justice
and had great friends to stand by me toowho had all made me 
promise to sue to the utmostand that if it cost me a thousand 
pounds I would be sure to have satisfactionfor that the affronts 
I had received were insufferable. 
Howeverthey brought my attorney to thisthat he promised 
he would not blow the coalsthat if I inclined to accommodation
he would not hinder meand that he would rather persuade 
me to peace than to war; for which they told him he should 
be no loser; all which he told me very honestlyand told me 
that if they offered him any bribeI should certainly know it; 
but upon the whole he told me very honestly that if I would 
take his opinionhe would advise me to make it up with them
for that as they were in a great frightand were desirous above 
all things to make it upand knew thatlet it be what it would
they would be allotted to bear all the costs of the suit; he believed 
they would give me freely more than any jury or court of justice 
would give upon a trial. I asked him what he thought they 
would be brought to. He told me he could not tell as to that
but he would tell me more when I saw him again. Some time 
after thisthey came again to know if he had talked with me. 
He told them he had; that he found me not so averse to an 
accommodation as some of my friends werewho resented the 
disgrace offered meand set me on; that they blowed the coals 
in secretprompting me to revengeor do myself justiceas 
they called it; so that he could not tell what to say to it; he told 
them he would do his endeavour to persuade mebut he ought 
to be able to tell me what proposal they made. They pretended 
they could not make any proposalbecause it might be made 
use of against them; and he told themthat by the same rule 
he could not make any offersfor that might be pleaded in 
abatement of what damages a jury might be inclined to give. 
Howeverafter some discourse and mutual promises that no 
advantage should be taken on either sideby what was 
transacted then or at any other of those meetingsthey came 
to a kind of a treaty; but so remoteand so wide from one 
anotherthat nothing could be expected from it; for my 
attorney demanded #500 and chargesand they offered #50 
without charges; so they broke offand the mercer proposed 
to have a meeting with me myself; and my attorney agreed to 
that very readily. 
My attorney gave me notice to come to this meeting in good 
clothesand with some statethat the mercer might see I was 
something more than I seemed to be that time they had me. 
Accordingly I came in a new suit of second mourningaccording 
to what I had said at the justice's. I set myself outtooas well 
as a widow's dress in second mourning would admit; my 
governess also furnished me with a good pearl necklacethat 
shut in behind with a locket of diamondswhich she had in 
pawn; and I had a very good figure; and as I stayed till I was 
sure they were comeI came in a coach to the doorwith my 
maid with me. 
When I came into the room the mercer was surprised. He 
stood up and made his bowwhich I took a little notice of
and but a littleand went and sat down where my own attorney 
had pointed to me to sitfor it was his house. After a little 
while the mercer saidhe did not know me againand began 
to make some compliments his way. I told himI believed he 
did not know me at firstand that if he hadI believed he 
would not have treated me as he did. 
He told me he was very sorry for what had happenedand that 
it was to testify the willingness he had to make all possible 
reparation that he had appointed this meeting; that he hoped 
I would not carry things to extremitywhich might be not only 
too great a loss to himbut might be the ruin of his business 
and shopin which case I might have the satisfaction of 
repaying an injury with an injury ten times greater; but that I 
would then get nothingwhereas he was willing to do me any 
justice that was in his powerwithout putting himself or me 
to the trouble or charge of a suit at law. 
I told him I was glad to hear him talk so much more like a man 
of sense than he did before; that it was trueacknowledgment 
in most cases of affronts was counted reparation sufficient; 
but this had gone too far to be made up so; that I was not 
revengefulnor did I seek his ruinor any man's elsebut that 
all my friends were unanimous not to let me so far neglect my 
character as to adjust a thing of this kind without a sufficient 
reparation of honour; that to be taken up for a thief was such 
an indignity as could not be put up; that my character was 
above being treated so by any that knew mebut because in 
my condition of a widow I had been for some time careless 
of myselfand negligent of myselfI might be taken for such 
a creaturebut that for the particular usage I had from him 
afterwards--and then I repeated all as before; it was so 
provoking I had scarce patience to repeat it. 
Wellhe acknowledged alland was might humble indeed; 
he made proposals very handsome; he came up to #100 and 
to pay all the law chargesand added that he would make me 
a present of a very good suit of clothes. I came down to #300
and I demanded that I should publish an advertisement of the 
particulars in the common newspapers. 
This was a clause he never could comply with. Howeverat 
last he came upby good management of my attorneyto 
#150 and a suit of black silk clothes; and there I agreeand as 
it wereat my attorney's requestcomplied with ithe paying 
my attorney's bill and chargesand gave us a good supper into 
the bargain. 
When I came to receive the moneyI brought my governess 
with medressed like an old duchessand a gentleman very 
well dressedwho we pretended courted mebut I called him 
cousinand the lawyer was only to hint privately to him that 
his gentleman courted the widow. 
He treated us handsomely indeedand paid the money 
cheerfully enough; so that it cost him #200 in allor rather 
more. At our last meetingwhen all was agreedthe case of 
the journeyman came upand the mercer begged very hard 
for him; told me he was a man that had kept a shop of his 
ownand been in good businesshad a wifeand several 
childrenand was very poor; that he had nothing to make 
satisfaction withbut he should come to beg my pardon on 
his kneesif I desired itas openly as I pleased. I had no 
spleen at the saucy roguenor were his submissions anything 
to mesince there was nothing to be got by himso I thought 
it was as good to throw that in generously as not; so I told 
him I did not desire the ruin of any manand therefore at his 
request I would forgive the wretch; it was below me to seek 
any revenge. 
When we were at supper he brought the poor fellow in to 
make acknowledgmentwhich he would have done with as 
much mean humility as his offence was with insulting 
haughtiness and pridein which he was an instance of a 
complete baseness of spiritimpiouscrueland relentless 
when uppermost and in prosperityabject and low-spirited 
when down in affliction. HoweverI abated his cringestold 
him I forgave himand desired he might withdrawas if I did 
not care for the sight of himthough I had forgiven him. 
I was now in good circumstances indeedif I could have 
known my time for leaving offand my governess often said 
I was the richest of the trade in England; and so I believe I 
wasfor I had #700 by me in moneybesides clothesrings
some plateand two gold watchesand all of them stolenfor 
I had innumerable jobs besides these I have mentioned. Oh! 
had I even now had the grace of repentanceI had still leisure 
to have looked back upon my folliesand have made some 
reparation; but the satisfaction I was to make for the public 
mischiefs I had done was yet left behind; and I could not forbear 
going abroad againas I called it nowthan any more I could 
when my extremity really drove me out for bread. 
It was not long after the affair with the mercer was made up
that I went out in an equipage quite different from any I had 
ever appeared in before. I dressed myself like a beggar woman
in the coarsest and most despicable rags I could getand I 
walked about peering and peeping into every door and window 
I came near; and indeed I was in such a plight now that I knew 
as ill how to behave in as ever I did in any. I naturally abhorred 
dirt and rags; I had been bred up tight and cleanlyand could 
be no otherwhatever condition I was in; so that this was the 
most uneasy disguise to me that ever I put on. I said presently 
to myself that this would not dofor this was a dress that 
everybody was shy and afraid of; and I thought everybody 
looked at meas if they were afraid I should come near them
lest I should take something from themor afraid to come near 
melest they should get something from me. I wandered about 
all the evening the first time I went outand made nothing of 
itbut came home again wetdraggledand tired. However
I went out again the next nightand then I met with a little 
adventurewhich had like to have cost me dear. As I was 
standing near a tavern doorthere comes a gentleman on 
horsebackand lights at the doorand wanting to go into the 
tavernhe calls one of the drawers to hold his horse. He stayed 
pretty long in the tavernand the drawer heard his master call
and thought he would be angry with him. Seeing me stand by 
himhe called to me'Herewoman' says he'hold this horse 
a whiletill I go in; if the gentleman comeshe'll give you 
something.' 'Yes' says Iand takes the horseand walks off 
with him very soberlyand carried him to my governess. 
This had been a booty to those that had understood it; but 
never was poor thief more at a loss to know what to do with 
anything that was stolen; for when I came homemy governess 
was quite confoundedand what to do with the creaturewe 
neither of us knew. To send him to a sable was doing nothing
for it was certain that public notice would be given in the 
Gazetteand the horse describedso that we durst not go to 
fetch it again. 
All the remedy we had for this unlucky adventure was to go 
and set up the horse at an innand send a note by a porter to 
the tavernthat the gentleman's horse that was lost such a time 
was left at such an innand that he might be had there; that 
the poor woman that held himhaving led him about the street
not being able to lead him back againhad left him there. We 
might have waited till the owner had published and offered a 
rewardbut we did not care to venture the receiving the reward. 
So this was a robbery and no robberyfor little was lost by it
and nothing was got by itand I was quite sick of going out in 
a beggar's dress; it did not answer at alland besidesI thought 
it was ominous and threatening. 
While I was in this disguiseI fell in with a parcel of folks of 
a worse kind than any I ever sorted withand I saw a little into 
their ways too. These were coiners of moneyand they made 
some very good offers to meas to profit; but the part they 
would have had me have embarked in was the most dangerous 
part. I mean that of the very working the dieas they call it
whichhad I been takenhad been certain deathand that at a 
stake--I sayto be burnt to death at a stake; so that though I 
was to appearance but a beggarand they promised mountains 
of gold and silver to me to engageyet it would not do. It is 
trueif I had been really a beggaror had been desperate as 
when I beganI might perhaps have closed with it; for what 
care they to die that can't tell how to live? But at present 
this was not my conditionat least I was for no such terrible 
risks as those; besidesthe very thoughts of being burnt at a 
stake struck terror into my very soulchilled my bloodand 
gave me the vapours to such a degreeas I could not think 
of it without trembling. 
This put an end to my disguise toofor as I did not like the 
proposalso I did not tell them sobut seemed to relish itand 
promised to meet again. But I durst see them no more; for if I 
had seen themand not compliedthough I had declined it with 
the greatest assurance of secrecy in the worldthey would have 
gone near to have murdered meto make sure workand make 
themselves easyas they call it. What kind of easiness that is
they may best judge that understand how easy men are that 
can murder people to prevent danger. 
This and horse-stealing were things quite out of my wayand 
I might easily resolve I would have to more to say to them; my 
business seemed to lie another wayand though it had hazard 
enough in it tooyet it was more suitable to meand what had 
more of art in itand more room to escapeand more chances 
for a-coming off if a surprise should happen. 
I had several proposals made also to me about that timeto 
come into a gang of house-breakers; but that was a thing I had 
no mind to venture at neitherany more than I had at the 
coining trade. I offered to go along with two men and a 
womanthat made it their business to get into houses by 
stratagemand with them I was willing enough to venture. 
But there were three of them alreadyand they did not care 
to partnor I to have too many in a gangso I did not close 
with thembut declined themand they paid dear for their 
next attempt. 
But at length I met with a woman that had often told me what 
adventures she had madeand with successat the waterside
and I closed with herand we drove on our business pretty 
well. One day we came among some Dutch people at St. 
Catherine'swhere we went on pretence to buy goods that 
were privately got on shore. I was two or three times in a 
house where we saw a good quantity of prohibited goods
and my companion once brought away three pieces of Dutch 
black silk that turned to good accountand I had my share of 
it; but in all the journeys I made by myselfI could not get an 
opportunity to do anythingso I laid it asidefor I had been so 
oftenthat they began to suspect somethingand were so shy
that I saw nothing was to be done. 
This baulked me a littleand I resolved to push at something 
or otherfor I was not used to come back so often without 
purchase; so the next day I dressed myself up fineand took 
a walk to the other end of the town. I passed through the 
Exchange in the Strandbut had no notion of finding anything 
to do therewhen on a sudden I saw a great cluttering in the 
placeand all the peopleshopkeepers as well as others
standing up and staring; and what should it be but some great 
duchess come into the Exchangeand they said the queen was 
coming. I set myself close up to a shop-side with my back to 
the counteras if to let the crowd pass bywhen keeping my 
eye upon a parcel of lace which the shopkeeper was showing 
to some ladies that stood by methe shopkeeper and her maid 
were so taken up with looking to see who was comingand 
what shop they would go tothat I found means to slip a paper 
of lace into my pocket and come clear off with it; so the 
lady-milliner paid dear enough for her gaping after the queen. 
I went off from the shopas if driven along by the throngand 
mingling myself with the crowdwent out at the other door 
of the Exchangeand so got away before they missed their 
lace; and because I would not be followedI called a coach 
and shut myself up in it. I had scarce shut the coach doors up
but I saw the milliner's maid and five or six more come 
running out into the streetand crying out as if they were 
frightened. They did not cry 'Stop thief!' because nobody ran 
awaybut I could hear the word 'robbed' and 'lace' two or 
three timesand saw the wench wringing her handsand run 
staring to and againlike one scared. The coachman that had 
taken me up was getting up into the boxbut was not quite up
so that the horse had not begun to move; so that I was terrible 
uneasyand I took the packet of lace and laid it ready to have 
dropped it out at the flap of the coachwhich opens before
just behind the coachman; but to my great satisfactionin less 
than a minute the coach began to movethat is to sayas soon 
as the coachman had got up and spoken to his horses; so he 
drove away without any interruptionand I brought off my 
purchasewhich was work near #20. 
The next day I dressed up againbut in quite different clothes
and walked the same way againbut nothing offered till I 
came into St. James's Parkwhere I saw abundance of fine 
ladies in the Parkwalking in the Malland among the rest 
there was a little missa young lady of about twelve or thirteen 
years oldand she had a sisteras I suppose it waswith her
that might be about nine years old. I observed the biggest 
had a fine gold watch onand a good necklace of pearland 
they had a footman in livery with them; but as it is not usual 
for the footman to go behind the ladies in the Mallso I 
observed the footman stopped at their going into the Mall
and the biggest of the sisters spoke to himwhich I perceived 
was to bid him be just there when they came back. 
When I heard her dismiss the footmanI stepped up to him 
and asked himwhat little lady that was? and held a little chat 
with him about what a pretty child it was with herand how 
genteel and well-carriaged the ladythe eldestwould be: how 
womanishand how grave; and the fool of a fellow told me 
presently who she was; that she was Sir Thomas----'s eldest 
daughterof Essexand that she was a great fortune; that her 
mother was not come to town yet; but she was with Sir 
William----'s ladyof Suffolkat her lodging in Suffolk 
Streetand a great deal more; that they had a maid and a 
woman to wait on thembesides Sir Thomas's coachthe 
coachmanand himself; and that young lady was governess 
to the whole familyas well here as at home too; andin short
told me abundance of things enough for my business. 
I was very well dressedand had my gold watch as well as 
she; so I left the footmanand I puts myself in a rank with 
this young ladyhaving stayed till she had taken one double 
turn in the Malland was going forward again; by and by I 
saluted her by her namewith the title of Lady Betty. I asked 
her when she heard from her father; when my lady her mother 
would be in townand how she did. 
I talked so familiarly to her of her whole family that she could 
not suspect but that I knew them all intimately. I asked her 
why she would come abroad without Mrs. Chime with her 
(that was the name of her woman) to take of Mrs. Judiththat 
was her sister. Then I entered into a long chat with her about 
her sisterwhat a fine little lady she wasand asked her if she 
had learned Frenchand a thousand such little things to entertain 
herwhen on a sudden we saw the guards comeand the crowd 
ran to see the king go by to the Parliament House. 
The ladies ran all to the side of the Malland I helped my 
lady to stand upon the edge of the boards on the side of the 
Mallthat she might be high enough to see; and took the little 
one and lifter her quite up; during whichI took care to convey 
the gold watch so clean away from the Lady Bettythat she 
never felt itnor missed ittill all the crowd was goneand she 
was gotten into the middle of the Mall among the other ladies. 
I took my leave of her in the very crowdand said to heras 
if in haste'Dear Lady Bettytake care of your little sister.' 
And so the crowd did as it were thrust me away from herand 
that I was obliged unwillingly to take my leave. 
The hurry in such cases is immediately overand the place 
clear as soon as the king is gone by; but as there is always a 
great running and clutter just as the king passesso having 
dropped the two little ladiesand done my business with them 
without any miscarriageI kept hurrying on among the crowd
as if I ran to see the kingand so I got before the crowd and 
kept so till I came to the end of the Mallwhen the king going 
on towards the Horse GuardsI went forward to the passage
which went then through against the lower end of the Haymarket
and there I bestowed a coach upon myselfand made offand I 
confess I have not yet been so good as my wordviz. to go and 
visit my Lady Betty. 
I was once of the mind to venture staying with Lady Betty till 
she missed the watchand so have made a great outcry about 
it with herand have got her into the coachand put myself in 
the coach with herand have gone home with her; for she 
appeared so fond of meand so perfectly deceived by my so 
readily talking to her of all her relations and familythat I 
thought it was very easy to push the thing fartherand to have 
got at least the necklace of pearl; but when I considered that 
though the child would not perhaps have suspected meother 
people mightand that if I was searched I should be discovered
I thought it was best to go off with what I had gotand be 
satisfied. 
I came accidentally afterwards to hearthat when the young 
lady missed her watchshe made a great outcry in the Park
and sent her footman up and down to see if he could find me 
outshe having described me so perfectly that he knew presently 
that it was the same person that had stood and talked so long 
with himand asked him so many questions about them; but I 
gone far enough out of their reach before she could come at 
her footman to tell him the story. 
I made another adventure after thisof a nature different from 
all I had been concerned in yetand this was at a gaming-house 
near Covent Garden. 
I saw several people go in and out; and I stood in the passage 
a good while with another woman with meand seeing a 
gentleman go up that seemed to be of more than ordinary 
fashionI said to him'Sirpray don't they give women leave 
to go up?' 'Yesmadam' says he'and to play tooif they 
please.' 'I mean sosir' said I. And with that he said he 
would introduce me if I had a mind; so I followed him to the 
doorand he looking in'Theremadam' says he'are the 
gamestersif you have a mind to venture.' I looked in and 
said to my comrade aloud'Here's nothing but men; I won't 
venture among them.' At which one of the gentlemen cried 
out'You need not be afraidmadamhere's none but fair 
gamesters; you are very welcome to come and set what you 
please.' so I went a little nearer and looked onand some of 
them brought me a chairand I sat down and saw the box and
dice go round apace; then I said to my comrade'The gentlemen
play too high for us; comelet us go.'
The people were all very civiland one gentleman in particular
encouraged meand said'Comemadamif you please to
ventureif you dare trust meI'll answer for it you shall have
nothing put upon you here.' 'Nosir' said Ismiling'I hope
the gentlemen would not cheat a woman.' But still I declined
venturingthough I pulled out a purse with money in itthat
they might see I did not want money.
After I had sat a whileone gentleman said to mejeering
'ComemadamI see you are afraid to venture for yourself;
I always had good luck with the ladiesyou shall set for me
if you won't set for yourself.' I told him'sirI should be very
loth to lose your money' though I added'I am pretty lucky
too; but the gentlemen play so highthat I dare not indeed
venture my own.'
'Wellwell' says he'there's ten guineasmadam; set them
for me.' so I took his money and sethimself looking on. I
ran out nine of the guineas by one and two at a timeand then
the box coming to the next man to memy gentleman gave
me ten guineas moreand made me set five of them at once
and the gentleman who had the box threw outso there was
five guineas of his money again. He was encouraged at this
and made me take the boxwhich was a bold venture. However
I held the box so long that I had gained him his whole money
and had a good handful of guineas in my lapand which was
the better luckwhen I threw outI threw but at one or two of
those that had set meand so went off easy.
When I was come this lengthI offered the gentleman all the
goldfor it was his own; and so would have had him play for
himselfpretending I did not understand the game well enough.
He laughedand said if I had but good luckit was no matter
whether I understood the game or no; but I should not leave
off. Howeverhe took out the fifteen guineas that he had put
in at firstand bade me play with the rest. I would have told
them to see how much I had gotbut he said'Nonodon't
tell themI believe you are very honestand 'tis bad luck to
tell them'; so I played on.
I understood the game well enoughthough I pretended I did
notand played cautiously. It was to keep a good stock in my
lapout of which I every now and then conveyed some into
my pocketbut in such a mannerand at such convenient times
as I was sure he could not see it.
I played a great whileand had very good luck for him; but
the last time I held the boxthey set me highand I threw
boldly at all; I held the box till I gained near fourscore guineas
but lost above half of it back in the last throw; so I got upfor
I was afraid I should lose it all back againand said to him
'Pray comesirnowand take it and play for yourself; I think
I have done pretty well for you.' He would have had me play
onbut it grew lateand I desired to be excused. When I gave
it up to himI told him I hoped he would give me leave to tell
it nowthat I might see what I had gainedand how lucky I
had been for him; when I told themthere were threescore
and three guineas. 'Ay' says I'if it had not been for that
unlucky throwI had got you a hundred guineas.' So I gave
him all the moneybut he would not take it till I had put my
hand into itand taken some for myselfand bid me please 
myself. I refused itand was positive I would not take it 
myself; if he had a mind to anything of that kindit should 
be all his own doings. 
The rest of the gentlemen seeing us striving cried'Give it 
her all'; but I absolutely refused that. Then one of them said
'D----n yejackhalve it with her; don't you know you should 
be always upon even terms with the ladies.' Soin shorthe 
divided it with meand I brought away thirty guineasbesides 
about forty-three which I had stole privatelywhich I was 
sorry for afterwardbecause he was so generous. 
Thus I brought home seventy-three guineasand let my old 
governess see what good luck I had at play. Howeverit was 
her advice that I should not venture againand I took her 
counselfor I never went there any more; for I knew as well 
as sheif the itch of play came inI might soon lose thatand 
all the rest of what I had got. 
Fortune had smiled upon me to that degreeand I had thriven 
so muchand my governess toofor she always had a share 
with methat really the old gentlewoman began to talk of 
leaving off while we were welland being satisfied with what 
we had got; butI know not what fate guided meI was as 
backward to it now as she was when I proposed it to her 
beforeand so in an ill hour we gave over the thoughts of it 
for the presentandin a wordI grew more hardened and 
audacious than everand the success I had made my name as 
famous as any thief of my sort ever had been at Newgateand 
in the Old Bailey. 
I had sometime taken the liberty to play the same gave over 
againwhich is not according to practicewhich however 
succeeded not amiss; but generally I took up new figuresand 
contrived to appear in new shapes every time I went abroad. 
It was not a rumbling time of the yearand the gentlemen 
being most of them gone out of townTunbridgeand Epsom
and such places were full of people. But the city was thin
and I thought our trade felt it a littleas well as other; so that 
at the latter end of the year I joined myself with a gang who 
usually go every year to Stourbridge Fairand from thence to 
Bury Fairin Suffolk. We promised ourselves great things 
therebut when I came to see how things wereI was weary 
of it presently; for except mere picking of pocketsthere was 
little worth meddling with; neitherif a booty had been made
was it so easy carrying it offnor was there such a variety of 
occasion for business in our wayas in London; all that I made 
of the whole journey was a gold watch at Bury Fairand a 
small parcel of linen at Cambridgewhich gave me an occasion 
to take leave of the place. It was on old biteand I though 
might do with a country shopkeeperthough in London it 
would not. 
I bought at a linen-draper's shopnot in the fairbut in the 
town of Cambridgeas much fine holland and other things as 
came to about seven pounds; when I had doneI bade them 
be sent to such an innwhere I had purposely taken up my 
being the same morningas if I was to lodge there that night. 
I ordered the draper to send them home to meabout such an 
hourto the inn where I layand I would pay him his money. 
At the time appointed the draper sends the goodsand I placed 
one of our gang at the chamber doorand when the innkeeper's 
maid brought the messenger to the doorwho was a young 
fellowan apprenticealmost a manshe tells him her mistress 
was asleepbut if he would leave the things and call in about 
an hourI should be awakeand he might have the money. He 
left the parcel very readilyand goes his wayand in about 
half an hour my maid and I walked offand that very evening 
I hired a horseand a man to ride before meand went to 
Newmarketand from thence got my passage in a coach that 
was not quite full to St. Edmund's Burywhereas I told you
I could make but little of my tradeonly at a little country 
opera-house made a shift to carry off a gold watch from a 
lady's sidewho was not only intolerably merrybutas I 
thoughta little fuddledwhich made my work much easier. 
I made off with this little booty to Ipswichand from thence 
to Harwichwhere I went into an innas if I had newly arrived 
from Hollandnot doubting but I should make some purchase 
among the foreigners that came on shore there; but I found 
them generally empty of things of valueexcept what was in 
their portmanteaux and Dutch hamperswhich were generally 
guarded by footmen; howeverI fairly got one of their 
portmanteaux one evening out of the chamber where the 
gentleman laythe footman being fast asleep on the bedand 
I suppose very drunk. 
The room in which I lodged lay next to the Dutchman'sand 
having dragged the heavy thing with much ado out of the 
chamber into mineI went out into the streetto see if I could 
find any possibility of carrying it off. I walked about a great 
whilebut could see no probability either of getting out the 
thingor of conveying away the goods that were in it if I had 
opened itthe town being so smalland I a perfect stranger in 
it; so I was returning with a resolution to carry it back again
and leave it where I found it. Just in that very moment I heard 
a man make a noise to some people to make hastefor the boat 
was going to put offand the tide would be spent. I called to 
the fellow'What boat is itfriend' says I'that you belong to?' 
'The Ipswich wherrymadam' says he. 'When do you go off?' 
says I. 'This momentmadam' says he; 'do you want to go 
thither?' 'Yes' said I'if you can stay till I fetch my things.' 
'Where are your thingsmadam?' says he. 'At such an inn' 
said I. 'WellI'll go with youmadam' says hevery civilly
'and bring them for you.' 'Come awaythen' says Iand takes 
him with me. 
The people of the inn were in a great hurrythe packet-boat 
from Holland being just come inand two coaches just come 
also with passengers from Londonfor another packet-boat 
that was going off for Hollandwhich coaches were to go back 
next day with the passengers that were just landed. In this 
hurry it was not much minded that I came to the bar and paid 
my reckoningtelling my landlady I had gotten my passage by 
sea in a wherry. 
These wherries are large vesselswith good accommodation 
for carrying passengers from Harwich to London; and though 
they are called wherrieswhich is a word used in the Thames 
for a small boat rowed with one or two menyet these are 
vessels able to carry twenty passengersand ten or fifteen tons 
of goodsand fitted to bear the sea. All this I had found out 
by inquiring the night before into the several ways of going 
to London. 
My landlady was very courteoustook my money for my 
reckoningbut was called awayall the house being in a hurry. 
So I left hertook the fellow up to my chambergave him the 
trunkor portmanteaufor it was like a trunkand wrapped it 
about with an old apronand he went directly to his boat with 
itand I after himnobody asking us the least question about 
it; as for the drunken Dutch footman he was still asleepand 
his master with other foreign gentlemen at supperand very 
merry belowso I went clean off with it to Ipswich; and going 
in the nightthe people of the house knew nothing but that I 
was gone to London by the Harwich wherryas I had told my 
landlady. 
I was plagued at Ipswich with the custom-house officerswho 
stopped my trunkas I called itand would open and search it. 
I was willingI told themthey should search itbut husband 
had the keyand he was not yet come from Harwich; this I 
saidthat if upon searching it they should find all the things 
be such as properly belonged to a man rather than a woman
it should not seem strange to them. Howeverthey being 
positive to open the trunk I consented to have it be broken 
openthat is to sayto have the lock taken offwhich was not 
difficult. 
They found nothing for their turnfor the trunk had been 
searched beforebut they discovered several things very much 
to my satisfactionas particularly a parcel of money in French 
pistolsand some Dutch ducatoons or rix-dollarsand the rest 
was chiefly two periwigswearing-linenand razorswash-balls
perfumesand other useful things necessary for a gentleman
which all passed for my husband'sand so I was quit to them. 
It was now very early in the morningand not lightand I 
knew not well what course to take; for I made no doubt but I 
should be pursued in the morningand perhaps be taken with 
the things about me; so I resolved upon taking new measures. 
I went publicly to an inn in the town with my trunkas I called 
itand having taken the substance outI did not think the 
lumber of it worth my concern; howeverI gave it the landlady 
of the house with a charge to take great care of itand lay it 
up safe till I should come againand away I walked in to the 
street. 
When I was got into the town a great way from the innI met 
with an ancient woman who had just opened her doorand I 
fell into chat with herand asked her a great many wild 
questions of things all remote to my purpose and design; but 
in my discourse I found by her how the town was situated
that I was in a street that went out towards Hadleybut that 
such a street went towards the water-sidesuch a street towards 
Colchesterand so the London road lay there. 
I had soon my ends of this old womanfor I only wanted to 
know which was the London roadand away I walked as fast 
as I could; not that I intended to go on footeither to London 
or to Colchesterbut I wanted to get quietly away from Ipswich. 
I walked about two or three milesand then I met a plain 
countrymanwho was busy about some husbandry workI did 
not know whatand I asked him a great many questions first
not much to the purposebut at last told him I was going for 
Londonand the coach was fulland I could not get a passage
and asked him if he could tell me where to hire a horse that 
would carry doubleand an honest man to ride before me to 
Colchesterthat so I might get a place there in the coaches.
The honest clown looked earnestly at meand said nothing
for above half a minutewhenscratching his poll'A horse
say you and to Colchesterto carry double? why yesmistress
alack-a-dayyou may have horses enough for money.' 'Well
friend' says I'that I take for granted; I don't expect it without
money.' 'Whybutmistress' says he'how much are you
willing to give?' 'Nay' says I again'friendI don't know
what your rates are in the country herefor I am a stranger;
but if you can get one for meget it as cheap as you canand
I'll give you somewhat for your pains.'
'Whythat's honestly said too' says the countryman. 'Not
so honestneither' said I to myself'if thou knewest all.'
'Whymistress' says he'I have a horse that will carry double
and I don't much care if I go myself with you' and the like.
'Will you?' says I; 'wellI believe you are an honest man; if
you willI shall be glad of it; I'll pay you in reason.' 'Why
look yemistress' says he'I won't be out of reason with you
then; if I carry you to Colchesterit will be worth five shillings
for myself and my horsefor I shall hardly come back to-night.'
In shortI hired the honest man and his horse; but when we
came to a town upon the road (I do not remember the name
of itbut it stands upon a river)I pretended myself very ill
and I could go no farther that night but if he would stay there
with mebecause I was a strangerI would pay him for himself
and his horse with all my heart.
This I did because I knew the Dutch gentlemen and their
servants would be upon the road that dayeither in the
stagecoaches or riding postand I did not know but the drunken
fellowor somebody else that might have seen me at Harwich
might see me againand so I thought that in one day's stop
they would be all gone by.
We lay all that night thereand the next morning it was not
very early when I set outso that it was near ten o'clock by
the time I got to Colchester. It was no little pleasure that I
saw the town where I had so many pleasant daysand I made
many inquiries after the good old friends I had once had there
but could make little out; they were all dead or removed. The
young ladies had been all married or gone to London; the old
gentleman and the old lady that had been my early benefacress
all dead; and which troubled me mostthe young gentleman
my first loverand afterwards my brother-in-lawwas dead;
but two sonsmen grownwere left of himbut they too were
transplanted to London.
I dismissed my old man hereand stayed incognito for three
or four days in Colchesterand then took a passage in a waggon
because I would not venture being seen in the Harwich coaches.
But I needed not have used so much cautionfor there was
nobody in Harwich but the woman of the house could have
known me; nor was it rational to think that sheconsidering
the hurry she was inand that she never saw me but onceand
that by candlelightshould have ever discovered me.
I was now returned to Londonand though by the accident of
the last adventure I got something considerableyet I was not
fond of any more country ramblesnor should I have ventured
abroad again if I had carried the trade on to the end of my
days. I gave my governess a history of my travels; she liked
the Harwich journey well enoughand in discoursing of these
things between ourselves she observedthat a thief being a 
creature that watches the advantages of other people's mistakes
'tis impossible but that to one that is vigilant and industrious 
many opportunities must happenand therefore she thought 
that one so exquisitely keen in the trade as I waswould scarce 
fail of something extraordinary wherever I went. 
On the other handevery branch of my storyif duly considered
may be useful to honest peopleand afford a due caution to 
people of some sort or other to guard against the like surprises
and to have their eyes about them when they have to do with 
strangers of any kindfor 'tis very seldom that some snare or 
other is not in their way. The moralindeedof all my history 
is left to be gathered by the senses and judgment of the reader; 
I am not qualified to preach to them. Let the experience of 
one creature completely wickedand completely miserable
be a storehouse of useful warning to those that read. 
I am drawing now towards a new variety of the scenes of life. 
Upon my returnbeing hardened by along race of crimeand 
success unparalleledat least in the reach of my own knowledge
I hadas I have saidno thoughts of laying down a trade which
if I was to judge by the example of othermusthoweverend 
at last in misery and sorrow. 
It was on the Christmas day followingin the eveningthat
to finish a long train of wickednessI went abroad to see what 
might offer in my way; when going by a working silversmith's 
in Foster LaneI saw a tempting bait indeedand not be 
resisted by one of my occupationfor the shop had nobody in 
itas I could seeand a great deal of loose plate lay in the 
windowand at the seat of the manwho usuallyas I suppose
worked at one side of the shop. 
I went boldly inand was just going to lay my hand upon a 
piece of plateand might have done itand carried it clear off
for any care that the men who belonged to the shop had taken 
of it; but an officious fellow in a housenot a shopon the 
other side of the wayseeing me go inand observing that 
there was nobody in the shopcomes running over the street
and into the shopand without asking me what I wasor who
seizes upon mean cries out for the people of the house. 
I had notas I said abovetouched anything in the shopand 
seeing a glimpse of somebody running over to the shopI had 
so much presence of mind as to knock very hard with my 
foot on the floor of the houseand was just calling out too
when the fellow laid hands on me. 
Howeveras I had always most courage when I was in most 
dangerso when the fellow laid hands on meI stood very 
high upon itthat I came in to buy half a dozen of silver spoons; 
and to my good fortuneit was a silversmith's that sold plate
as well as worked plate for other shops. The fellow laughed 
at that partand put such a value upon the service that he had 
done his neighbourthat he would have it be that I came not 
to buybut to steal; and raising a great crowd. I said to the 
master of the shopwho by this time was fetched home from 
some neighbouring placethat it was in vain to make noise
and enter into talk there of the case; the fellow had insisted 
that I came to stealand he must prove itand I desired we 
might go before a magistrate without any more words; for I 
began to see I should be too hard for the man that had seized me. 
The master and mistress of the shop were really not so violent 
as the man from t'other side of the way; and the man said
'Mistressyou might come into the shop with a good design 
for aught I knowbut it seemed a dangerous thing for you to 
come into such a shop as mine iswhen you see nobody there; 
and I cannot do justice to my neighbourwho was so kind to 
meas not to acknowledge he had reason on his side; though
upon the wholeI do not find you attempted to take anything
and I really know not what to do in it.' I pressed him to go 
before a magistrate with meand if anything could be proved 
on me that was like a design of robberyI should willingly 
submitbut if notI expected reparation. 
Just while we were in this debateand a crowd of people 
gathered about the doorcame by Sir T. B.an alderman of 
the cityand justice of the peaceand the goldsmith hearing 
of itgoes outand entreated his worship to come in and 
decide the case. 
Give the goldsmith his duehe told his story with a great deal 
of justice and moderationand the fellow that had come over
and seized upon metold his with as much heat and foolish 
passionwhich did me good stillrather than harm. It came 
then to my turn to speakand I told his worship that I was a 
stranger in Londonbeing newly come out of the north; that I 
lodged in such a placethat I was passing this streetand went 
into the goldsmith's shop to buy half a dozen of spoons. By 
great luck I had an old silver spoon in my pocketwhich I 
pulled outand told him I had carried that spoon to match it 
with half a dozen of new onesthat it might match some I had 
in the country. 
That seeing nobody I the shopI knocked with my foot very 
hard to make the people hearand had also called aloud with 
my voice; 'tis truethere was loose plate in the shopbut that 
nobody could say I had touched any of itor gone near it; that 
a fellow came running into the shop out of the streetand laid 
hands on me in a furious mannerin the very moments while 
I was calling for the people of the house; that if he had really 
had a mind to have done his neighbour any servicehe should 
have stood at a distanceand silently watched to see whether 
I had touched anything or noand then have clapped in upon 
meand taken me in the fact. 'That is very true' says Mr. 
Aldermanand turning to the fellow that stopped mehe asked 
him if it was true that I knocked with my foot? He saidyes
I had knockedbut that might be because of his coming. 'Nay' 
says the aldermantaking him short'now you contradict 
yourselffor just now you said she was in the shop with her 
back to youand did not see you till you came upon her.' Now 
it was true that my back was partly to the streetbut yet as my 
business was of a kind that required me to have my eyes every 
wayso I really had a glance of him running overas I said 
beforethough he did not perceive it. 
After a full hearingthe alderman gave it as his opinion that 
his neighbour was under a mistakeand that I was innocent
and the goldsmith acquiesced in it tooand his wifeand so 
I was dismissed; but as I was going to departMr. Alderman 
said'But holdmadamif you were designing to buy spoons
I hope you will not let my friend here lose his customer by 
the mistake.' I readily answered'NosirI'll buy the spoons 
stillif he can match my odd spoonwhich I brought for a 
pattern'; and the goldsmith showed me some of the very same 
fashion. So he weighed the spoonsand they came to five-and-thirty 
shillingsso I pulls out my purse to pay himin which I had 
near twenty guineasfor I never went without such a sum 
about mewhatever might happenand I found it of use at 
other times as well as now. 
When Mr. Alderman saw my moneyhe said'Wellmadam
now I am satisfied you were wrongedand it was for this 
reason that I moved you should buy the spoonsand stayed 
till you had bought themfor if you had not had money to pay 
for themI should have suspected that you did not come into 
the shop with an intent to buyfor indeed the sort of people 
who come upon these designs that you have been charged 
withare seldom troubled with much gold in their pockets
as I see you are.' 
I smiledand told his worshipthat then I owed something of 
his favour to my moneybut I hoped he saw reason also in 
the justice he had done me before. He saidyeshe hadbut 
this had confirmed his opinionand he was fully satisfied now 
of my having been injured. So I came off with flying colours
though from an affair in which I was at the very brink of 
destruction. 
It was but three days after thisthat not at all made cautious 
by my former dangeras I used to beand still pursuing the 
art which I had so long been employed inI ventured into a 
house where I saw the doors openand furnished myselfas 
I though verily without being perceivedwith two pieces of 
flowered silkssuch as they call brocaded silkvery rich. It 
was not a mercer's shopnor a warehouse of a mercerbut 
looked like a private dwelling-houseand wasit seems
inhabited by a man that sold goods for the weavers to the 
mercerslike a broker or factor. 
That I may make short of this black part of this storyI was 
attacked by two wenches that came open-mouthed at me just 
as I was going out at the doorand one of them pulled me 
back into the roomwhile the other shut the door upon me. 
I would have given them good wordsbut there was no room 
for ittwo fiery dragons could not have been more furious 
than they were; they tore my clothesbullied and roared as if 
they would have murdered me; the mistress of the house came 
nextand then the masterand all outrageousfor a while especially. 
I gave the master very good wordstold him the door was 
openand things were a temptation to methat I was poor and 
distressedand poverty was when many could not resistand 
begged him with tears to have pity on me. The mistress of 
the house was moved with compassionand inclined to have 
let me goand had almost persuaded her husband to it also
but the saucy wenches were runeven before they were sent
and had fetched a constableand then the master said he could 
not go backI must go before a justiceand answered his wife 
that he might come into trouble himself if he should let me go. 
The sight of the constableindeedstruck me with terrorand 
I thought I should have sunk into the ground. I fell into 
faintingsand indeed the people themselves thought I would 
have diedwhen the woman argued again for meand entreated 
her husbandseeing they had lost nothingto let me go. I 
offered him to pay for the two pieceswhatever the value was
though I had not got themand argued that as he had his goods
and had really lost nothingit would be cruel to pursue me to 
deathand have my blood for the bare attempt of taking them. 
I put the constable in mind that I had broke no doorsnor 
carried anything away; and when I came to the justiceand 
pleaded there that I had neither broken anything to get innor 
carried anything outthe justice was inclined to have released 
me; but the first saucy jade that stopped meaffirming that I 
was going out with the goodsbut that she stopped me and 
pulled me back as I was upon the thresholdthe justice upon 
that point committed meand I was carried to Newgate. That 
horrid place! my very blood chills at the mention of its name; 
the place where so many of my comrades had been locked up
and from whence they went to the fatal tree; the place where 
my mother suffered so deeplywhere I was brought into the 
worldand from whence I expected no redemption but by an 
infamous death: to concludethe place that had so long 
expected meand which with so much art and success I had 
so long avoided. 
I was not fixed indeed; 'tis impossible to describe the terror 
of my mindwhen I was first brought inand when I looked 
around upon all the horrors of that dismal place. I looked on 
myself as lostand that I had nothing to think of but of going 
out of the worldand that with the utmost infamy: the hellish 
noisethe roaringswearingand clamourthe stench and 
nastinessand all the dreadful crowd of afflicting things that 
I saw therejoined together to make the place seem an emblem 
of hell itselfand a kind of an entrance into it. 
Now I reproached myself with the many hints I had hadas I 
have mentioned abovefrom my own reasonfrom the sense 
of my good circumstancesand of the many dangers I had 
escapedto leave off while I was welland how I had withstood 
them alland hardened my thoughts against all fear. It seemed 
to me that I was hurried on by an inevitable and unseen fate 
to this day of miseryand that now I was to expiate all my 
offences at the gallows; that I was now to give satisfaction to 
justice with my bloodand that I was come to the last hour of 
my life and of my wickedness together. These things poured 
themselves in upon my thoughts in a confused mannerand 
left me overwhelmed with melancholy and despair. 
Them I repented heartily of all my life pastbut that repentance 
yielded me no satisfactionno peacenonot in the least
becauseas I said to myselfit was repenting after the power 
of further sinning was taken away. I seemed not to mourn that 
I had committed such crimesand for the fact as it was an 
offence against God and my neighbourbut I mourned that I 
was to be punished for it. I was a penitentas I thoughtnot 
that I had sinnedbut that I was to sufferand this took away 
all the comfortand even the hope of my repentance in my 
own thoughts. 
I got no sleep for several nights or days after I came into that 
wretched placeand glad I would have been for some time to 
have died therethough I did not consider dying as it ought to 
be considered neither; indeednothing could be filled with 
more horror to my imagination than the very placenothing 
was more odious to me than the company that was there. Oh! 
if I had but been sent to any place in the worldand not to 
NewgateI should have thought myself happy. 
In the next placehow did the hardened wretches that were 
there before me triumph over me! What! Mrs. Flanders come 
to Newgate at last? What! Mrs. MaryMrs. Mollyand after 
that plain Moll Flanders? They thought the devil had helped 
methey saidthat I had reigned so long; they expected me 
there many years agoand was I come at last? Then they 
flouted me with my dejectionswelcomed me to the place
wished me joybid me have a good heartnot to be cast down
things might not be so bad as I fearedand the like; then called 
for brandyand drank to mebut put it all up to my scorefor 
they told me I was but just come to the collegeas they called 
itand sure I had money in my pocketthough they had none. 
I asked one of this crew how long she had been there. She 
said four months. I asked her how the place looked to her 
when she first came into it. 'Just as it did now to you' says 
shedreadful and frightful'; that she thought she was in hell; 
'and I believe so still' adds she'but it is natural to me nowI 
don't disturb myself about it.' 'I suppose' says I'you are in 
no danger of what is to follow?' 'Nay' says she'for you are 
mistaken thereI assure youfor I am under sentenceonly I 
pleaded my bellybut I am no more with child than the judge 
that tried meand I expect to be called down next sessions.' 
This 'calling down' is calling down to their former judgment
when a woman has been respited for her bellybut proves not 
to be with childor if she has been with childand has been 
brought to bed. 'Well' says I'are you thus easy?' 'Ay' says 
she'I can't help myself; what signifies being sad? If I am 
hangedthere's an end of me' says she; and away she turns 
dancingand sings as she goes the following piece of Newgate 
wit ---
'If I swing by the string 
I shall hear the bell ring1 And then there's an end of poor Jenny.'I mention this because it would merry in their misery as they were when out of it. 
I cannot sayas some dothis devil is not so black as he is 
painted; for indeed no colours can represent the place to the 
lifenot any soul conceive aright of it but those who have 
been suffers there. But how hell should become by degree so 
naturaland not only tolerablebut even agreeableis a thing 
unintelligible but by those who have experienced itas I have. 
The same night that I was sent to NewgateI sent the news of 
it to my old governesswho was surprised at ityou may be 
sureand spent the night almost as ill out of Newgateas I did 
in it. 
The next morning she came to see me; she did what she could 
to comfort mebut she saw that was to no purpose; however
as she saidto sink under the weight was but to increase the 
weight; she immediately applied herself to all the proper 
methods to prevent the effects of itwhich we fearedand 
first she found out the two fiery jades that had surprised me. 
She tampered with themoffered them moneyandin a word
tried all imaginable ways to prevent a prosecution; she offered 
one of the wenches #100 to go away from her mistressand 
not to appear against mebut she was so resolutethat though 
she was but a servant maid at #3 a year wages or thereabouts
she refused itand would have refused itas my governess 
said she believedif she had offered her #500. Then she 
attacked the other maid; she was not so hard-hearted in 
appearance as the otherand sometimes seemed inclined to 
be merciful; but the first wench kept her upand changed her 
mindand would not so much as let my governess talk with 
herbut threatened to have her up for tampering with the 
evidence. 
Then she applied to the masterthat is to saythe man whose 
goods had been stolenand particularly to his wifewhoas 
I told youwas inclined at first to have some compassion for 
me; she found the woman the same stillbut the man alleged 
he was bound by the justice that committed meto prosecute
and that he should forfeit his recognisance. 
My governess offered to find friends that should get his 
recognisances off of the fileas they call itand that he 
should not suffer; but it was not possible to convince him that 
could be doneor that he could be safe any way in the world 
but by appearing against me; so I was to have three witnesses 
of fact against methe master and his two maids; that is to say
I was as certain to be cast for my life as I was certain that I 
was aliveand I had nothing to do but to think of dyingand 
prepare for it. I had but a sad foundation to build uponas I 
said beforefor all my repentance appeared to me to be only 
the effect of my fear of deathnot a sincere regret for the 
wicked life that I had livedand which had brought this misery 
upon mefor the offending my Creatorwho was now suddenly 
to be my judge. 
I lived many days here under the utmost horror of soul; I had 
deathas it werein viewand thought of nothing night and 
daybut of gibbets and haltersevil spirits and devils; it is not 
to be expressed by words how I was harassedbetween the 
dreadful apprehensions of death and the terror of my conscience 
reproaching me with my past horrible life. 
The ordinary Of Newgate came to meand talked a little in 
his waybut all his divinity ran upon confessing my crimeas 
he called it (though he knew not what I was in for)making a 
full discoveryand the likewithout which he told me God 
would never forgive me; and he said so little to the purpose
that I had no manner of consolation from him; and then to 
observe the poor creature preaching confession and repentance 
to me in the morningand find him drunk with brandy and 
spirits by noonthis had something in it so shockingthat I 
began to nauseate the man more than his workand his work 
too by degreesfor the sake of the man; so that I desired him 
to trouble me no more. 
I know not how it wasbut by the indefatigable application 
of my diligent governess I had no bill preferred against me 
the first sessionsI mean to the grand juryat Guildhall; so I 
had another month or five weeks before meand without doubt 
this ought to have been accepted by meas so much time given 
me for reflection upon what was pastand preparation for what 
was to come; orin a wordI ought to have esteemed it as a 
space given me for repentanceand have employed it as such
but it was not in me. I was sorry (as before) for being in 
Newgatebut had very few signs of repentance about me. 
On the contrarylike the waters in the cavities and hollows 
of mountainswhich petrify and turn into stone whatever they 
are suffered to drop onso the continual conversing with such 
a crew of hell-hounds as I washad the same common operation 
upon me as upon other people. I degenerated into stone; I 
turned first stupid and senselessthen brutish and thoughtless
and at last raving mad as any of them were; andin shortI 
became as naturally pleased and easy with the placeas if 
indeed I had been born there. 
It is scarce possible to imagine that our natures should be 
capable of so much degeneracyas to make that pleasant and 
agreeable that in itself is the most complete misery. Here 
was a circumstance that I think it is scarce possible to mention 
a worse: I was as exquisitely miserable asspeaking of 
common casesit was possible for any one to be that had life 
and healthand money to help themas I had. 
I had weight of guilt upon me enough to sink any creature 
who had the least power of reflection leftand had any sense 
upon them of the happiness of this lifeof the misery of 
another; then I had at first remorse indeedbut no repentance; 
I had now neither remorse nor repentance. I had a crime 
charged on methe punishment of which was death by our 
law; the proof so evidentthat there was no room for me so 
much as to plead not guilty. I had the name of an old offender
so that I had nothing to expect but death in a few weeks' time
neither had I myself any thoughts of escaping; and yet a certain 
strange lethargy of soul possessed me. I had no troubleno 
apprehensionsno sorrow about methe first surprise was 
gone; I wasI may well sayI know not how; my sensesmy 
reasonnaymy consciencewere all asleep; my course of life 
for forty years had been a horrid complication of wickedness
whoredomadulteryincestlyingtheft; andin a word
everything but murder and treason had been my practice from 
the age of eighteenor thereaboutsto three-score; and now I 
was engulfed in the misery of punishmentand had an infamous 
death just at the doorand yet I had no sense of my condition
no thought of heaven or hell at leastthat went any farther than 
a bare flying touchlike the stitch or pain that gives a hint and 
goes off. I neither had a heart to ask God's mercynor indeed 
to think of it. And in thisI thinkI have given a brief 
description of the completest misery on earth. 
All my terrifying thoughts were pastthe horrors of the place 
were become familiarand I felt no more uneasiness at the 
noise and clamours of the prisonthan they did who made 
that noise; in a wordI was become a mere Newgate-birdas 
wicked and as outrageous as any of them; nayI scarce 
retained the habit and custom of good breeding and manners
which all along till now ran through my conversation; so 
thorough a degeneracy had possessed methat I was no more 
the same thing that I had beenthan if I had never been 
otherwise than what I was now. 
In the middle of this hardened part of my life I had another 
sudden surprisewhich called me back a little to that thing 
called sorrowwhich indeed I began to be past the sense of 
before. They told me one night that there was brought into 
the prison late the night before three highwaymenwho had 
committed robbery somewhere on the road to Windsor
Hounslow HeathI think it wasand were pursued to Uxbridge 
by the countryand were taken there after a gallant resistance
in which I know not how many of the country people were 
woundedand some killed. 
It is not to be wondered that we prisoners were all desirous 
enough to see these bravetopping gentlementhat were 
talked up to be such as their fellows had not been knownand 
especially because it was said they would in the morning be 
removed into the press-yardhaving given money to the head 
master of the prisonto be allowed the liberty of that better 
part of the prison. So we that were women placed ourselves 
in the waythat we would be sure to see them; but nothing 
could express the amazement and surprise I was inwhen the 
very first man that came out I knew to be my Lancashire husband
the same who lived so well at Dunstableand the same who I 
afterwards saw at Brickhillwhen I was married to my last 
husbandas has been related. 
I was struck dumb at the sightand knew neither what to say 
nor what to do; he did not know meand that was all the 
present relief I had. I quitted my companyand retired as 
much as that dreadful place suffers anybody to retireand I 
cried vehemently for a great while. 'Dreadful creature that I 
am' said I'how may poor people have I made miserable? 
How many desperate wretches have I sent to the devil?' He 
had told me at Chester he was ruined by that matchand that 
his fortunes were made desperate on my account; for that 
thinking I had been a fortunehe was run into debt more than 
he was able to payand that he knew not what course to take; 
that he would go into the army and carry a musketor buy a 
horse and take a touras he called it; and though I never told 
him that I was a fortuneand so did not actually deceive him 
myselfyet I did encourage the having it thought that I was so
and by that means I was the occasion originally of his mischief. 
The surprise of the thing only struck deeper into my thoughts
any gave me stronger reflections than all that had befallen me 
before. I grieved day and night for himand the more for that 
they told me he was the captain of the gangand that he had 
committed so many robberiesthat Hindor Whitneyor the 
Golden Farmer were fools to him; that he would surely be 
hanged if there were no more men left in the country he was 
born in; and that there would abundance of people come in 
against him. 
I was overwhelmed with grief for him; my own case gave me 
no disturbance compared to thisand I loaded myself with 
reproaches on his account. I bewailed his misfortunesand 
the ruin he was now come toat such a ratethat I relished 
nothing now as I did beforeand the first reflections I made 
upon the horriddetestable life I had lived began to return upon 
meand as these things returnedmy abhorrence of the place 
I was inand of the way of living in itreturned also; in a word
I was perfectly changedand become another body. 
While I was under these influences of sorrow for himcame 
notice to me that the next sessions approaching there would 
be a bill preferred to the grand jury against meand that I 
should be certainly tried for my life at the Old Bailey. My 
temper was touched beforethe hardenedwretched boldness 
of spirit which I had acquired abatedand conscious in the 
prisonguilt began to flow in upon my mind. In shortI began 
to thinkand to think is one real advance from hell to heaven. 
All that hellishhardened state and temper of soulwhich I 
have said so much of beforeis but a deprivation of thought; 
he that is restored to his power of thinkingis restored to himself. 
As soon as I beganI sayto thinkthe first think that occurred 
to me broke out thus: 'Lord! what will become of me? I shall 
certainly die! I shall be castto be sureand there is nothing 
beyond that but death! I have no friends; what shall I do? I 
shall be certainly cast! Lordhave mercy upon me! What 
will become of me?' This was a sad thoughtyou will sayto 
be the firstafter so long a timethat had started into my soul 
of that kindand yet even this was nothing but fright at what 
was to come; there was not a word of sincere repentance in it 
all. HoweverI was indeed dreadfully dejectedand disconsolate 
to the last degree; and as I had no friend in the world to 
communicate my distressed thoughts toit lay so heavy upon 
methat it threw me into fits and swoonings several times a 
day. I sent for my old governessand shegive her her due
acted the part of a true friend. She left no stone unturned to 
prevent the grand jury finding the bill. She sought out one or 
two of the jurymentalked with themand endeavoured to 
possess them with favourable dispositionson account that 
nothing was taken awayand no house brokenetc.; but all 
would not dothey were over-ruled by the rest; the two wenches 
swore home to the factand the jury found the bill against me 
for robbery and house-breakingthat isfor felony and burglary. 
I sunk down when they brought me news of itand after I came 
to myself againI thought I should have died with the weight 
of it. My governess acted a true mother to me; she pitied me
she cried with meand for mebut she could not help me; 
and to add to the terror of it'twas the discourse all over the 
house that I should die for it. I could hear them talk it among 
themselves very oftenand see them shake their heads and say 
they were sorry for itand the likeas is usual in the place. 
But still nobody came to tell me their thoughtstill at last one 
of the keepers came to me privatelyand said with a sigh
'WellMrs. Flandersyou will be tried on Friday' (this was 
but a Wednesday); 'what do you intend to do?' I turned as 
white as a cloutand said'God knows what I shall do; for my 
partI know not what to do.' 'Why' says he'I won't flatter 
youI would have you prepare for deathfor I doubt you will 
be cast; and as they say you are an old offenderI doubt you 
will find but little mercy. They say' added he'your case is 
very plainand that the witnesses swear so home against you
there will be no standing it.' 
This was a stab into the very vitals of one under such a burthen 
as I was oppressed with beforeand I could not speak to him a 
wordgood or badfor a great while; but at last I burst out into 
tearsand said to him'Lord! Mr.----what must I do?' 'Do!' 
says he'send for the ordinary; send for a minister and talk 
with him; forindeedMrs. Flandersunless you have very 
good friendsyou are no woman for this world.' 
This was plain dealing indeedbut it was very harsh to me
at least I thought it so. He left me in the greatest confusion 
imaginableand all that night I lay awake. And now I began 
to say my prayerswhich I had scarce done before since my 
last husband's deathor from a little while after. And truly I 
may well call it saying my prayersfor I was in such a confusion
and had such horror upon my mindthat though I criedand 
repeated several times the ordinary expression of 'Lordhave 
mercy upon me!' I never brought myself to any sense of my 
being a miserable sinneras indeed I wasand of confessing 
my sins to Godand begging pardon for the sake of Jesus 
Christ. I was overwhelmed with the sense of my condition
being tried for my lifeand being sure to be condemnedand 
then I was as sure to be executedand on this account I cried 
out all night'Lordwhat will become of me? Lord! what 
shall I do? Lord! I shall be hanged! Lordhave mercy upon 
me!' and the like. 
My poor afflicted governess was now as much concerned as 
Iand a great deal more truly penitentthough she had no 
prospect of being brought to trial and sentence. Not but that 
she deserved it as much as Iand so she said herself; but she 
had not done anything herself for many yearsother than 
receiving what I and others stoleand encouraging us to steal 
it. But she criedand took on like a distracted bodywringing 
her handsand crying out that she was undonethat she 
believed there was a curse from heaven upon herthat she 
should be damnedthat she had been the destruction of all her 
friendsthat she had brought such a oneand such a oneand 
such a one to the gallows; and there she reckoned up ten or 
eleven peoplesome of which I have given account ofthat 
came to untimely ends; and that now she was the occasion 
of my ruinfor she had persuaded me to go onwhen I would 
have left off. I interrupted her there. 'Nomotherno' said I
'don't speak of thatfor you would have had me left off when 
I got the mercer's money againand when I came home from 
Harwichand I would not hearken to you; therefore you have 
not been to blame; it is I only have ruined myselfI have 
brought myself to this misery'; and thus we spent many hours 
together. 
Wellthere was no remedy; the prosecution went onand on 
the Thursday I was carried down to the sessions-housewhere 
I was arraignedas they called itand the next day I was 
appointed to be tried. At the arraignment I pleaded 'Not guilty' 
and well I mightfor I was indicted for felony and burglary; 
that isfor feloniously stealing two pieces of brocaded silk
value #46the goods of Anthony Johnsonand for breaking 
open his doors; whereas I knew very well they could not 
pretend to prove I had broken up the doorsor so much as 
lifted up a latch. 
On the Friday I was brought to my trial. I had exhausted my 
spirits with crying for two or three days beforeso that I slept 
better the Thursday night than I expectedand had more courage 
for my trial than indeed I thought possible for me to have. 
When the trial beganthe indictment was readI would have 
spokebut they told me the witnesses must be heard firstand 
then I should have time to be heard. The witnesses were the 
two wenchesa couple of hard-mouthed jades indeedfor 
though the thing was truth in the mainyet they aggravated it 
to the utmost extremityand swore I had the goods wholly in 
my possessionthat I had hid them among my clothesthat I 
was going off with themthat I had one foot over the threshold 
when they discovered themselvesand then I put t' other over
so that I was quite out of the house in the street with the goods 
before they took hold of meand then they seized meand 
brought me back againand they took the goods upon me. The 
fact in general was all truebut I believeand insisted upon it
that they stopped me before I had set my foot clear of the 
threshold of the house. But that did not argue muchfor certain 
it was that I had taken the goodsand I was bringing them away
if I had not been taken. 
But I pleaded that I had stole nothingthey had lost nothing
that the door was openand I went inseeing the goods lie 
thereand with design to buy. Ifseeing nobody in the houseI 
had taken any of them up in my hand it could not be concluded 
that I intended to steal themfor that I never carried them 
farther than the door to look on them with the better light. 
The Court would not allow that by any meansand made a 
kind of a jest of my intending to buy the goodsthat being no 
shop for the selling of anythingand as to carrying them to the 
door to look at themthe maids made their impudent mocks 
upon thatand spent their wit upon it very much; told the 
Court I had looked at them sufficientlyand approved them 
very wellfor I had packed them up under my clothesand 
was a-going with them. 
In shortI was found guilty of felonybut acquitted of the 
burglarywhich was but small comfort to methe first bringing 
me to a sentence of deathand the last would have done no 
more. The next day I was carried down to receive the dreadful 
sentenceand when they came to ask me what I had to say 
why sentence should not passI stood mute a whilebut 
somebody that stood behind me prompted me aloud to speak 
to the judgesfor that they could represent things favourably 
for me. This encouraged me to speakand I told them I had 
nothing to say to stop the sentencebut that I had much to say 
to bespeak the mercy of the Court; that I hoped they would 
allow something in such a case for the circumstances of it; 
that I had broken no doorshad carried nothing off; that 
nobody had lost anything; that the person whose goods they 
were was pleased to say he desired mercy might be shown 
(which indeed he very honestly did); thatat the worstit was 
the first offenceand that I had never been before any court 
of justice before; andin a wordI spoke with more courage 
that I thought I could have doneand in such a moving tone
and though with tearsyet not so many tears as to obstruct my 
speechthat I could see it moved others to tears that heard me. 
The judges sat grave and mutegave me an easy hearingand 
time to say all that I wouldbutsaying neither Yes nor No to 
itpronounced the sentence of death upon mea sentence that 
was to me like death itselfwhichafter it was readconfounded 
me. I had no more spirit left in meI had no tongue to speak
or eyes to look up either to God or man. 
My poor governess was utterly disconsolateand she that was 
my comforter beforewanted comfort now herself; and sometimes 
mourningsometimes ragingwas as much out of herselfas to 
all outward appearanceas any mad woman in Bedlam. Nor 
was she only disconsolate as to mebut she was struck with 
horror at the sense of her own wicked lifeand began to look 
back upon it with a taste quite different from minefor she 
was penitent to the highest degree for her sinsas well as 
sorrowful for the misfortune. She sent for a ministertooa 
seriouspiousgood manand applied herself with such 
earnestnessby his assistanceto the work of a sincere repentance
that I believeand so did the minister toothat she was a true 
penitent; andwhich is still moreshe was not only so for the 
occasionand at that juncturebut she continued soas I was 
informedto the day of her death. 
It is rather to be thought of than expressed what was now my 
condition. I had nothing before me but present death; and as 
I had no friends to assist meor to stir for meI expected 
nothing but to find my name in the dead warrantwhich was 
to come down for the executionthe Friday afterwardsof five 
more and myself. 
In the meantime my poor distressed governess sent me a 
ministerwho at her request firstand at my own afterwards
came to visit me. He exhorted me seriously to repent of all 
my sinsand to dally no longer with my soul; not flattering 
myself with hopes of lifewhichhe saidhe was informed 
there was no room to expectbut unfeignedly to look up to 
God with my whole souland to cry for pardon in the name 
of Jesus Christ. He backed his discourses with proper quotations 
of Scriptureencouraging the greatest sinner to repentand turn 
from their evil wayand when he had donehe kneeled down 
and prayed with me. 
It was now thatfor the first timeI felt any real signs of 
repentance. I now began to look back upon my past life with 
abhorrenceand having a kind of view into the other side of 
timeand things of lifeas I believe they do with everybody 
at such a timebegan to look with a different aspectand quite 
another shapethan they did before. The greatest and best 
thingsthe views of felicitythe joythe griefs of lifewere 
quite other things; and I had nothing in my thoughts but what 
was so infinitely superior to what I had known in lifethat it 
appeared to me to be the greatest stupidity in nature to lay 
any weight upon anythingthough the most valuable in this 
world. 
The word eternity represented itself with all its incomprehensible 
additionsand I had such extended notions of itthat I know 
not how to express them. Among the resthow vilehow gross
how absurd did every pleasant thing look!--I meanthat we 
had counted pleasant before--especially when I reflected that 
these sordid trifles were the things for which we forfeited 
eternal felicity. 
With these reflections cameof mere coursesevere reproaches 
of my own mind for my wretched behaviour in my past life; 
that I had forfeited all hope of any happiness in the eternity 
that I was just going to enter intoand on the contrary was 
entitled to all that was miserableor had been conceived of 
misery; and all this with the frightful addition of its being 
also eternal. 
I am not capable of reading lectures of instruction to anybody
but I relate this in the very manner in which things then 
appeared to meas far as I am ablebut infinitely short of the 
lively impressions which they made on my soul at that time; 
indeedthose impressions are not to be explained by words
or if they areI am not mistress of words enough to express 
them. It must be the work of every sober reader to make just 
reflections on themas their own circumstances may direct; 
andwithout questionthis is what every one at some time or 
other may feel something of; I meana clearer sight into things 
to come than they had hereand a dark view of their own 
concern in them. 
But I go back to my own case. The minister pressed me to 
tell himas far as I though convenientin what state I found 
myself as to the sight I had of things beyond life. He told me 
he did not come as ordinary of the placewhose business it 
is to extort confessions from prisonersfor private endsor 
for the further detecting of other offenders; that his business 
was to move me to such freedom of discourse as might serve 
to disburthen my own mindand furnish him to administer 
comfort to me as far as was in his power; and assured me
that whatever I said to him should remain with himand be 
as much a secret as if it was known only to God and myself; 
and that he desired to know nothing of mebut as above to 
qualify him to apply proper advice and assistance to meand 
to pray to God for me. 
This honestfriendly way of treating me unlocked all the 
sluices of my passions. He broke into my very soul by it; and 
I unravelled all the wickedness of my life to him. In a wordI 
gave him an abridgment of this whole history; I gave him a 
picture of my conduct for fifty years in miniature. 
I hid nothing from himand he in return exhorted me to sincere 
repentanceexplained to me what he meant by repentanceand 
then drew out such a scheme of infinite mercyproclaimed 
from heaven to sinners of the greatest magnitudethat he left 
me nothing to saythat looked like despairor doubting of 
being accepted; and in this condition he left me the first night. 
He visited me again the next morningand went on with his 
method of explaining the terms of divine mercywhich 
according to him consisted of nothing moreor more difficult
than that of being sincerely desirous of itand willing to accept 
it; only a sincere regret forand hatred ofthose things I had 
donewhich rendered me so just an object of divine vengeance. 
I am not able to repeat the excellent discourses of this 
extraordinary man; 'tis all that I am able to doto say that he 
revived my heartand brought me into such a condition that 
I never knew anything of in my life before. I was covered 
with shame and tears for things pastand yet had at the same 
time a secret surprising joy at the prospect of being a true 
penitentand obtaining the comfort of a penitent--I meanthe 
hope of being forgiven; and so swift did thoughts circulate
and so high did the impressions they had made upon me run
that I thought I could freely have gone out that minute to 
executionwithout any uneasiness at allcasting my soul 
entirely into the arms of infinite mercy as a penitent. 
The good gentleman was so moved also in my behalf with a 
view of the influence which he saw these things had on me
that he blessed God he had come to visit meand resolved not 
to leave me till the last moment; that isnot to leave visiting me. 
It was no less than twelve days after our receiving sentence 
before any were ordered for executionand then upon a 
Wednesday the dead warrantas they call itcame downand 
I found my name was among them. A terrible blow this was 
to my new resolutions; indeed my heart sank within meand 
I swooned away twiceone after anotherbut spoke not a word. 
The good minister was sorely afflicted for meand did what he 
could to comfort me with the same argumentsand the same 
moving eloquence that he did beforeand left me not that 
evening so long as the prisonkeepers would suffer him to stay 
in the prisonunless he would be locked up with me all night
which he was not willing to be. 
I wondered much that I did not see him all the next dayit 
being the day before the time appointed for execution; and I 
was greatly discouragedand dejected in my mindand indeed 
almost sank for want of the comfort which he had so often
and with such successyielded me on his former visits. I 
waited with great impatienceand under the greatest oppressions 
of spirits imaginabletill about four o'clock he came to my 
apartment; for I had obtained the favourby the help of money
nothing being to be done in that place without itnot to be 
kept in the condemned holeas they call itamong the rest of 
the prisoners who were to diebut to have a little dirty 
chamber to myself. 
My heart leaped within me for joy when I heard his voice at 
the dooreven before I saw him; but let any one judge what 
kind of motion I found in my soulwhen after having made a 
short excuse for his not cominghe showed me that his time 
had been employed on my account; that he had obtained a 
favourable report from the Recorder to the Secretary of State 
in my particular caseandin shortthat he had brought me 
a reprieve. 
He used all the caution that he was able in letting me know 
a thing which it would have been a double cruelty to have 
concealed; and yet it was too much for me; for as grief had 
overset me beforeso did joy overset me nowand I fell into 
a much more dangerous swooning than I did at firstand it 
was not without a great difficulty that I was recovered at all. 
The good man having made a very Christian exhortation to 
menot to let the joy of my reprieve put the remembrance of 
my past sorrow out of my mindand having told me that he 
must leave meto go and enter the reprieve in the booksand 
show it to the sheriffsstood up just before his going away
and in a very earnest manner prayed to God for methat my 
repentance might be made unfeigned and sincere; and that 
my coming backas it wereinto life againmight not be a 
returning to the follies of life which I had made such solemn 
resolutions to forsakeand to repent of them. I joined heartily 
in the petitionand must needs say I had deeper impressions 
upon my mind all that nightof the mercy of God in sparing 
my lifeand a greater detestation of my past sinsfrom a sense 
of the goodness which I had tasted in this casethan I had in 
all my sorrow before. 
This may be thought inconsistent in itselfand wide from the 
business of this book; particularlyI reflect that many of those 
who may be pleased and diverted with the relation of the wild 
and wicked part of my story may not relish thiswhich is 
really the best part of my lifethe most advantageous to myself
and the most instructive to others. SuchhoweverwillI hope
allow me the liberty to make my story complete. It would be 
a severe satire on such to say they do not relish the repentance 
as much as they do the crime; and that they had rather the 
history were a complete tragedyas it was very likely to have been. 
But I go on with my relation. The next morning there was a 
sad scene indeed in the prison. The first thing I was saluted 
with in the morning was the tolling of the great bell at St. 
Sepulchre'sas they call itwhich ushered in the day. As soon 
as it began to tolla dismal groaning and crying was heard 
from the condemned holewhere there lay six poor souls who 
were to be executed that daysome from one crimesome for 
anotherand two of them for murder. 
This was followed by a confused clamour in the houseamong 
the several sorts of prisonersexpressing their awkward sorrows 
for the poor creatures that were to diebut in a manner extremely 
differing one from another. Some cried for them; some huzzaed
and wished them a good journey; some damned and cursed those 
that had brought them to it--that ismeaning the evidenceor 
prosecutors--many pitying themand some fewbut very few
praying for them. 
There was hardly room for so much composure of mind as 
was required for me to bless the merciful Providence that had
as it weresnatched me out of the jaws of this destruction. I 
remainedas it weredumb and silentovercome with the 
sense of itand not able to express what I had in my heart; for 
the passions on such occasions as these are certainly so agitated 
as not to be able presently to regulate their own motions. 
All the while the poor condemned creatures were preparing 
to their deathand the ordinaryas they call himwas busy 
with themdisposing them to submit to their sentence--I say
all this while I was seized with a fit of tremblingas much as 
I could have been if I had been in the same conditionas to be 
sure the day before I expected to be; I was so violently agitated 
by this surprising fitthat I shook as if it had been in the cold 
fit of an agueso that I could not speak or look but like one 
distracted. As soon as they were all put into carts and gone
whichhoweverI had not courage enough to see--I sayas 
soon as they were goneI fell into a fit of crying involuntarily
and without designbut as a mere distemperand yet so violent
and it held me so longthat I knew not what course to take
nor could I stopor put a check to itnonot with all the 
strength and courage I had. 
This fit of crying held me near two hoursandas I believe
held me till they were all out of the worldand then a most 
humblepenitentserious kind of joy succeeded; a real transport 
it wasor passion of joy and thankfulnessbut still unable to 
give vent to it by wordsand in this I continued most part of 
the day. 
In the evening the good minister visited me againand then 
fell to his usual good discourses. He congratulated my having 
a space yet allowed me for repentancewhereas the state of 
those six poor creatures was determinedand they were now 
past the offers of salvation; he earnestly pressed me to retain 
the same sentiments of the things of life that I had when I had 
a view of eternity; and at the end of all told me I should not 
conclude that all was overthat a reprieve was not a pardon
that he could not yet answer for the effects of it; howeverI 
had this mercythat I had more time given meand that it was 
my business to improve that time. 
This discoursethough very seasonableleft a kind of sadness 
on my heartas if I might expect the affair would have a 
tragical issue stillwhichhoweverhe had no certainty of; 
and I did not indeedat that timequestion him about ithe 
having said that he would do his utmost to bring it to a good 
endand that he hoped he mightbut he would not have me 
be secure; and the consequence proved that he had reason for 
what he said. 
It was about a fortnight after this that I had some just apprehensions 
that I should be included in the next dead warrant at the ensuing 
sessions; and it was not without great difficultyand at last a 
humble petition for transportationthat I avoided itso ill was 
I beholding to fameand so prevailing was the fatal report of 
being an old offender; though in that they did not do me strict 
justicefor I was not in the sense of the law an old offender
whatever I was in the eye of the judgefor I had never been 
before them in a judicial way before; so the judges could not 
charge me with being an old offenderbut the Recorder was 
pleased to represent my case as he thought fit. 
I had now a certainty of life indeedbut with the hard conditions 
of being ordered for transportationwhich indeed was hard 
condition in itselfbut not when comparatively considered; 
and therefore I shall make no comments upon the sentence
nor upon the choice I was put to. We shall all choose anything 
rather than deathespecially when 'tis attended with an 
uncomfortable prospect beyond itwhich was my case. 
The good ministerwhose interestthough a stranger to me
had obtained me the reprievemourned sincerely for this part. 
He was in hopeshe saidthat I should have ended my days 
under the influence of good instructionthat I should not have 
been turned loose again among such a wretched crew as they 
generally arewho are thus sent abroadwhereas he saidI 
must have more than ordinary secret assistance from the grace 
of Godif I did not turn as wicked again as ever. 
I have not for a good while mentioned my governesswho 
had during mostif not allof this part been dangerously sick
and being in as near a view of death by her disease as I was 
by my sentencewas a great penitent--I sayI have not mentioned 
hernor indeed did I see her in all this time; but being now 
recoveringand just able to come abroadshe came to see me. 
I told her my conditionand what a different flux and reflux 
of tears and hopes I had been agitated with; I told her what I 
had escapedand upon what terms; and she was present when 
the minister expressed his fears of my relapsing into wickedness 
upon my falling into the wretched companies that are generally 
transported. Indeed I had a melancholy reflection upon it in 
my own mindfor I knew what a dreadful gang was always 
sent away togetherand I said to my governess that the good 
minister's fears were not without cause. 'Wellwell' says she
'but I hope you will not be tempted with such a horrid example 
as that.' And as soon as the minister was goneshe told me she 
would not have me discouragedfor perhaps ways and means 
might be found out to dispose of me in a particular wayby 
myselfof which she would talk further to me afterward. 
I looked earnestly at herand I thought she looked more cheerful 
than she usually had doneand I entertained immediately a 
thousand notions of being deliveredbut could not for my life 
image the methodsor think of one that was in the least feasible; 
but I was too much concerned in it to let her go from me without 
explaining herselfwhichthough she was very loth to doyet 
my importunity prevailedandwhile I was still pressingshe 
answered me in a few wordsthus: 'Whyyou have money
have you not? Did you ever know one in your life that was 
transported and had a hundred pounds in his pocketI'll warrant 
youchild?'says she. 
I understood her presentlybut told her I would leave all that 
to herbut I saw no room to hope for anything but a strict 
execution of the orderand as it was a severity that was 
esteemed a mercythere was no doubt but it would be strictly 
observed. She said no more but this: 'We will try what can 
be done' and so we parted for that night. 
I lay in the prison near fifteen weeks after this order for 
transportation was signed. What the reason of it wasI know 
notbut at the end of this time I was put on board of a ship in 
the Thamesand with me a gang of thirteen as hardened vile 
creatures as ever Newgate produced in my time; and it would 
really well take up a history longer than mine to describe the 
degrees of impudence and audacious villainy that those thirteen 
were arrived toand the manner of their behaviour in the 
voyage; of which I have a very diverting account by mewhich 
the captain of the ship who carried them over gave me the 
minutes ofand which he caused his mate to write down at large. 
It may perhaps be thought trifling to enter here into a relation 
of all the little incidents which attended me in this interval of
my circumstances; I meanbetween the final order of my
transporation and the time of my going on board the ship; and
I am too near the end of my story to allow room for it; but
something relating to me any my Lancashire husband I must
not omit.
He hadas I have observed alreadybeen carried from the
master's side of the ordinary prison into the press-yardwith
three of his comradesfor they found another to add to them
after some time; herefor what reason I knew notthey were
kept in custody without being brought to trial almost three
months. It seems they found means to bribe or buy off some
of those who were expected to come in against themand they
wanted evidence for some time to convict them. After some
puzzle on this accountat first they made a shift to get proof
enough against two of them to carry them off; but the other
twoof which my Lancashire husband was onelay still in
suspense. They hadI thinkone positive evidence against
each of thembut the law strictly obliging them to have two
witnessesthey could make nothing of it. Yet it seems they
were resolved not to part with the men neithernot doubting
but a further evidence would at last come in; and in order to
thisI think publication was madethat such prisoners being
takenany one that had been robbed by them might come to
the prison and see them.
I took this opportunity to satisfy my curiositypretending that
I had been robbed in the Dunstable coachand that I would go
to see the two highwaymen. But when I came into the press-yard
I so disguised myselfand muffled my face up sothat he could
see little of meand consequently knew nothing of who I was;
and when I came backI said publicly that I knew them very well.
Immediately it was rumoured all over the prison that Moll
Flanders would turn evidence against one of the highwaymen
and that I was to come off by it from the sentence of transportation.
They heard of itand immediately my husband desired to see
this Mrs. Flanders that knew him so welland was to be an
evidence against him; and accordingly I had leave given to go
to him. I dressed myself up as well as the best clothes that I
suffered myself ever to appear in there would allow meand
went to the press-yardbut had for some time a hood over my
face. He said little to me at firstbut asked me if I knew him.
I told himYesvery well; but as I concealed my faceso I
counterfeited my voicethat he had not the least guess at who
I was. He asked me where I had seen him. I told him between
Dunstable and Brickhill; but turning to the keeper that stood
byI asked if I might not be admitted to talk with him alone.
He said Yesyesas much as I pleasedand so very civilly
withdrew.
As soon as he was goneI had shut the doorI threw off my
hoodand bursting out into tears'My dear' says I'do you not
know me?' He turned paleand stood speechlesslike one
thunderstruckandnot able to conquer the surprisesaid no
more but this'Let me sit down'; and sitting down by a table
he laid his elbow upon the tableand leaning his head on his
handfixed his eyes on the ground as one stupid. I cried so
vehementlyon the other handthat it was a good while ere I
could speak any more; but after I had given some vent to my
passion by tearsI repeated the same words'My deardo you
not know me?' At which he answeredYesand said no more
a good while. 
After some time continuing in the surpriseas abovehe cast 
up his eyes towards me and said'How could you be so cruel?' 
I did not readily understand what he meant; and I answered
'How can you call me cruel? What have I been cruel to you in?' 
'To come to me' says he'in such a place as thisis it not to 
insult me? I have not robbed youat least not on the highway.' 
I perceived by this that he knew nothing of the miserable 
circumstances I was inand thought thathaving got some 
intelligence of his being thereI had come to upbraid him 
with his leaving me. But I had too much to say to him to be 
affrontedand told him in few wordsthat I was far from 
coming to insult himbut at best I came to condole mutually; 
that he would be easily satisfied that I had no such view
when I should tell him that my condition was worse than his
and that many ways. He looked a little concerned at the 
general expression of my condition being worse than hisbut
with a kind smilelooked a little wildlyand said'How can 
that be? When you see me fetteredand in Newgateand two 
of my companions executed alreadycan you can your condition 
is worse than mine?' 
'Comemy dear' says I'we have along piece of work to do
if I should be to relatedor you to hearmy unfortunate history; 
but if you are disposed to hear ityou will soon conclude with 
me that my condition is worse than yours.' 'How is that possible' 
says he again'when I expect to be cast for my life the very 
next sessions?' 'Yessays I''tis very possiblewhen I shall 
tell you that I have been cast for my life three sessions ago
and am under sentence of death; is not my case worse than yours?' 
Then indeedhe stood silent againlike one struck dumband 
after a while he starts up. 'Unhappy couple!' says he. 'How 
can this be possible?' I took him by the hand. 'Comemy 
dear' said I'sit downand let us compare our sorrows. I am 
a prisoner in this very houseand in much worse circumstances 
than youand you will be satisfied I do not come to insult you
when I tell you the particulars.' Any with this we sat down 
togetherand I told him so much of my story as I thought was 
convenientbringing it at last to my being reduced to great 
povertyand representing myself as fallen into some company 
that led me to relieve my distresses by way that I had been 
utterly unacquainted withand that they making an attempt at 
a tradesman's houseI was seized upon for having been but 
just at the doorthe maid-servant pulling me in; that I neither 
had broke any lock nor taken anything awayand that 
notwithstanding thatI was brought in guilty and sentenced 
to die; but that the judgeshaving been made sensible of the 
hardship of my circumstanceshad obtained leave to remit the 
sentence upon my consenting to be transported. 
I told him I fared the worse for being taken in the prison for 
one Moll Flanderswho was a famous successful thiefthat 
all of them had heard ofbut none of them had ever seen; but 
thatas he knew wellwas none of my name. But I placed all 
to the account of my ill fortuneand that under this name I 
was dealt with as an old offenderthough this was the first 
thing they had ever known of me. I gave him a long particular 
of things that had befallen me since I saw himbut I told him 
if I had seen him since he might thing I hadand then gave 
him an account how I had seen him at Brickhill; how furiously 
he was pursuedand howby giving an account that I knew 
himand that he was a very honest gentlemanone Mr.----
the hue-and-cry was stoppedand the high constable went 
back again. 
He listened most attentively to all my storyand smiled at 
most of the particularsbeing all of them petty mattersand 
infinitely below what he had been at the head of; but when I 
came to the story of Brickhillhe was surprised. 'And was it 
youmy dear' said he'that gave the check to the mob that 
was at our heels thereat Brickhill?' 'Yes' said I'it was I 
indeed.' And then I told him the particulars which I had 
observed him there. 'Whythen' said he'it was you that 
saved my life at that timeand I am glad I owe my life to you
for I will pay the debt to you nowand I'll deliver you from 
the present condition you are inor I will die in the attempt.' 
I told himby no means; it was a risk too greatnot worth his 
running the hazard ofand for a life not worth his saving. 
'Twas no matter for thathe saidit was a life worth all the 
world to him; a life that had given him a new life; 'for' says 
he'I was never in real danger of being takenbut that time
till the last minute when I was taken.' Indeedhe told me his 
danger then lay in his believing he had not been pursued that 
way; for they had gone from Hockey quite another wayand 
had come over the enclosed country into Brickhillnot by the 
roadand were sure they had not been seen by anybody. 
Here he gave me a long history of his lifewhich indeed would 
make a very strange historyand be infinitely diverting. He 
told me he took to the road about twelve years before he 
married me; that the woman which called him brother was not 
really his sisteror any kin to himbut one that belonged to 
their gangand whokeeping correspondence with himlived 
always in townhaving good store of acquaintance; that she 
gave them a perfect intelligence of persons going out of town
and that they had made several good booties by her correspondence; 
that she thought she had fixed a fortune for him when she brought 
me to himbut happened to be disappointedwhich he really 
could not blame her for; that if it had been his good luck that 
I had had the estatewhich she was informed I hadhe had 
resolved to leave off the road and live a retiredsober live but 
never to appear in public till some general pardon had been 
passedor till he couldfor moneyhave got his name into 
some particular pardonthat so he might have been perfectly 
easy; but thatas it had proved otherwisehe was obliged to 
put off his equipage and take up the old trade again. 
He gave me a long account of some of his adventuresand 
particularly one when he robbed the West Chester coaches 
near Lichfieldwhen he got a very great booty; and after that
how he robbed five graziersin the westgoing to Burford Fair 
in Wiltshire to buy sheep. He told me he got so much money 
on those two occasionsthat if he had known where to have 
found mehe would certainly have embraced my proposal of 
going with me to Virginiaor to have settled in a plantation 
on some other parts of the English colonies in America. 
He told me he wrote two or three letters to medirected 
according to my orderbut heard nothing from me. This I 
indeed knew to be truebut the letters coming to my hand in 
the time of my latter husbandI could do nothing in itand 
therefore chose to give no answerthat so he might rather 
believe they had miscarried. 
Being thus disappointedhe saidhe carried on the old trade 
ever sincethough when he had gotten so much moneyhe 
saidhe did not run such desperate risks as he did before. 
Then he gave me some account of several hard and desperate 
encounters which he had with gentlemen on the roadwho 
parted too hardly with their moneyand showed me some 
wounds he had received; and he had one or two very terrible 
wounds indeedas particularly one by a pistol bulletwhich 
broke his armand another with a swordwhich ran him quite 
through the bodybut that missing his vitalshe was cured 
again; one of his comrades having kept with him so faithfully
and so friendlyas that he assisted him in riding near eighty 
miles before his arm was setand then got a surgeon in a 
considerable cityremote from that place where it was done
pretending they were gentlemen travelling towards Carlisle 
and that they had been attacked on the road by highwaymen
and that one of them had shot him into the arm and broke 
the bone. 
Thishe saidhis friend managed so wellthat they were not 
suspected at allbut lay still till he was perfectly cured. He 
gave me so many distinct accounts of his adventuresthat it 
is with great reluctance that I decline the relating them; but I 
consider that this is my own storynot his. 
I then inquired into the circumstances of his present case at 
that timeand what it was he expected when he came to be 
tried. He told me that they had no evidence against himor 
but very little; for that of three robberieswhich they were all 
charged withit was his good fortune that he was but in one 
of themand that there was but one witness to be had for that 
factwhich was not sufficientbut that it was expected some 
others would come in against him; that he thought indeed
when he first saw methat I had been one that came of that 
errand; but that if somebody came in against himhe hoped 
he should be cleared; that he had had some intimationthat if 
he would submit to transport himselfhe might be admitted 
to it without a trialbut that he could not think of it with any 
temperand thought he could much easier submit to be hanged. 
I blamed him for thatand told him I blamed him on two 
accounts; firstbecause if he was transportedthere might be 
a hundred ways for him that was a gentlemanand a bold 
enterprising manto find his way back againand perhaps 
some ways and means to come back before he went. He 
smiled at that partand said he should like the last the best of 
the twofor he had a kind of horror upon his mind at his being 
sent over to the plantationsas Romans sent condemned 
slaves to work in the mines; that he thought the passage into 
another statelet it be what it wouldmuch more tolerable at 
the gallowsand that this was the general notion of all the 
gentlemen who were driven by the exigence of their fortunes 
to take the road; that at the place of execution there was at 
least an end of all the miseries of the present stateand as for 
what was to followa man wasin his opinionas likely to 
repent sincerely in the last fortnight of his lifeunder the 
pressures and agonies of a jail and the condemned holeas he 
would ever be in the woods and wilderness of America; that 
servitude and hard labour were things gentlemen could never 
stoop to; that it was but the way to force them to be their own 
executioners afterwardswhich was much worse; and that 
therefore he could not have any patience when he did but 
think of being transported. 
I used the utmost of my endeavour to persuade himand joined 
that known woman's rhetoric to it--I meanthat of tears. I told 
him the infamy of a public execution was certainly a greater 
pressure upon the spirits of a gentleman than any of the 
mortifications that he could meet with abroad could be; that 
he had at least in the other a chance for his lifewhereas here 
he had none at all; that it was the easiest thing in the world 
for him to manage the captain of a shipwho weregenerally 
speakingmen of good-humour and some gallantry; and a 
small matter of conductespecially if there was any money 
to be hadwould make way for him to buy himself off when 
he came to Virginia. 
He looked wistfully at meand I thought I guessed at what he 
meantthat is to saythat he had no money; but I was mistaken
his meaning was another way. 'You hinted just nowmy dear' 
said he'that there might be a way of coming back before I 
wentby which I understood you that it might be possible to 
buy it off here. I had rather give #200 to prevent goingthan 
#100 to be set at liberty when I came there.' 'That ismy dear' 
said I'because you do not know the place so well as I do.' 
'That may be' said he; 'and yet I believeas well as you know 
ityou would do the sameunless it is becauseas you told 
meyou have a mother there.' 
I told himas to my motherit was next to impossible but 
that she must be dead many years before; and as for any other 
relations that I might have thereI knew them not now; that 
since the misfortunes I had been under had reduced me to the 
condition I had been in for some yearsI had not kept up any 
correspondence with them; and that he would easily believe
I should find but a cold reception from them if I should be 
put to make my first visit in the condition of a transported 
felon; that thereforeif I went thitherI resolved not to see 
them; but that I had many views in going thereif it should be 
my fatewhich took off all the uneasy part of it; and if he 
found himself obliged to go alsoI should easily instruct him 
how to manage himselfso as never to go a servant at all
especially since I found he was not destitute of moneywhich 
was the only friend in such a condition. 
He smiledand said he did not tell me he had money. I took 
him up shortand told him I hoped he did not understand by 
my speakingthat I should expect any supply from him if he 
had money; thaton the other handthough I had not a great 
dealyet I did not wantand while I had any I would rather 
add to him than weaken him in that articleseeingwhatever 
he hadI knew in the case of transportation he would have 
occasion of it all. 
He expressed himself in a most tender manner upon that head. 
He told me what money he had was not a great dealbut that 
he would never hide any of it from me if I wanted itand that 
he assured me he did not speak with any such apprehensions; 
that he was only intent upon what I had hinted to him before 
he went; that here he knew what to do with himselfbut that 
there he should be the most ignoranthelpless wretch alive. 
I told him he frighted and terrified himself with that which 
had no terror in it; that if he had moneyas I was glad to hear 
he hadhe might not only avoid the servitude supposed to be 
the consequence of transportationbut begin the world upon 
a new foundationand that such a one as he could not fail of 
success inwith the common application usual in such cases; 
that he could not but call to mind that is was what I had 
recommended to him many years before and had proposed it 
for our mutual subsistence and restoring our fortunes in the 
world; and I would tell him nowthat to convince him both 
of the certainty of it and of my being fully acquainted with the 
methodand also fully satisfied in the probability of success
he should first see me deliver myself from the necessity of 
going over at alland then that I would go with him freely
and of my own choiceand perhaps carry enough with me to 
satisfy him that I did not offer it for want of being able to live 
without assistance from himbut that I thought our mutual 
misfortunes had been such as were sufficient to reconcile us 
both to quitting this part of the worldand living where 
nobody could upbraid us with what was pastor we be in any 
dread of a prisonand without agonies of a condemned hole 
to drive us to it; this where we should look back on all our 
past disasters with infinite satisfactionwhen we should 
consider that our enemies should entirely forget usand that 
we should live as new people in a new worldnobody having 
anything to say to usor we to them. 
I pressed this home to him with so many argumentsand 
answered all his own passionate objections so effectually that 
he embraced meand told me I treated him with such sincerity 
and affection as overcame him; that he would take my advice
and would strive to submit to his fate in hope of having the 
comfort of my assistanceand of so faithful a counsellor and 
such a companion in his misery. But still he put me in mind 
of what I had mentioned beforenamelythat there might be 
some way to get off before he wentand that it might be 
possible to avoid going at allwhich he said would be much 
better. I told him he should seeand be fully satisfiedthat I 
would do my utmost in that part tooand if it did not succeed
yet that I would make good the rest. 
We parted after this long conference with such testimonies of 
kindness and affection as I thought were equalif not superior
to that at our parting at Dunstable; and now I saw more plainly 
than beforethe reason why he declined coming at that time 
any farther with me toward London than Dunstableand why
when we parted therehe told me it was not convenient for 
him to come part of the way to London to bring me goingas 
he would otherwise have done. I have observed that the 
account of his life would have made a much more pleasing 
history than this of mine; andindeednothing in it was more 
strange than this partviz. that he carried on that desperate 
trade full five-and-twenty years and had never been taken
the success he had met with had been so very uncommonand 
such that sometimes he had lived handsomelyand retired in 
place for a year or two at a timekeeping himself and a 
man-servant to wait on himand had often sat in the 
coffee-houses and heard the very people whom he had robbed 
give accounts of their being robbedand of the place and 
circumstancesso that he could easily remember that it was 
the same. 
In this mannerit seemshe lived near Liverpool at the time 
he unluckily married me for a fortune. Had I been the fortune 
he expectedI verily believeas he saidthat he would have 
taken up and lived honestly all his days. 
He had with the rest of his misfortunes the good luck not to 
be actually upon the spot when the robbery was done which 
he was committed forand so none of the persons robbed 
could swear to himor had anything to charge upon him. But 
it seems as he was taken with the gangone hard-mouthed 
countryman swore home to himand they were like to have 
others come in according to the publication they had made; 
so that they expected more evidence against himand for that 
reason he was kept in hold. 
Howeverthe offer which was made to him of admitting him to 
transportation was madeas I understoodupon the intercession 
of some great person who pressed him hard to accept of it before 
a trial; and indeedas he knew there were several that might 
come in against himI thought his friend was in the rightand 
I lay at him night and day to delay it no longer. 
At lastwith much difficultyhe gave his consent; and as he 
was not therefore admitted to transportation in courtand on 
his petitionas I wasso he found himself under a difficulty 
to avoid embarking himself as I had said he might have done; 
his great friendwho was his intercessor for the favour of that 
granthaving given security for him that he should transport 
himselfand not return within the term. 
This hardship broke all my measuresfor the steps I took 
afterwards for my own deliverance were hereby rendered 
wholly ineffectualunless I would abandon himand leave 
him to go to America by himself; than which he protested he 
would much rather venturealthough he were certain to go 
directly to the gallows. 
I must now return to my case. The time of my being transported 
according to my sentence was near at hand; my governesswho 
continued my fast friendhad tried to obtain a pardonbut it 
could not be done unless with an expense too heavy for my 
purseconsidering that to be left naked and emptyunless I had 
resolved to return to my old trade againhad been worse than 
my transportationbecause there I knew I could livehere I 
could not. The good minister stood very hard on another 
account to prevent my being transported also; but he was 
answeredthat indeed my life had been given me at his first 
solicitationsand therefore he ought to ask no more. He was 
sensibly grieved at my goingbecauseas he saidhe feared I 
should lose the good impressions which a prospect of death 
had at first made on meand which were since increased by 
his instructions; and the pious gentleman was exceedingly 
concerned about me on that account. 
On the other handI really was not so solicitous about it as I 
was beforebut I industriously concealed my reasons for it 
from the ministerand to the last he did not know but that I 
went with the utmost reluctance and affliction. 
It was in the month of February that I waswith seven other 
convictsas they called usdelivered to a merchant that traded 
to Virginiaon board a shipridingas they called itin 
Deptford Reach. The officer of the prison delivered us on 
boardand the master of the vessel gave a discharge for us. 
We were for that night clapped under hatchesand kept so 
close that I thought I should have been suffocated for want 
of air; and the next morning the ship weighedand fell down 
the river to a place they call Bugby's Holewhich was done
as they told usby the agreement of the merchantthat all 
opportunity of escape should be taken from us. However
when the ship came thither and cast anchorwe were allowed 
more libertyand particularly were permitted to come up on 
the deckbut not up on the quarter-deckthat being kept 
particularly for the captain and for passengers. 
When by the noise of the men over my headand the motion 
of the shipI perceived that they were under sailI was at first 
greatly surprisedfearing we should go away directlyand that 
our friends would not be admitted to see us any more; but I 
was easy soon afterwhen I found they had come to an anchor 
againand soon after that we had notice given by some of the 
men where we werethat the next morning we should have 
the liberty to come up on deckand to have our friends come 
and see us if we had any. 
All that night I lay upon the hard boards of the deckas the 
passengers didbut we had afterwards the liberty of little 
cabins for such of us as had any bedding to lay in themand 
room to stow any box or trunk for clothes and linenif we 
had it (which might well be put in)for some of them had 
neither shirt nor shift or a rag of linen or woollenbut what 
was on their backsor a farthing of money to help themselves; 
and yet I did not find but they fared well enough in the ship
especially the womenwho got money from the seamen for 
washing their clothessufficient to purchase any common 
things that they wanted. 
When the next morning we had the liberty to come up on the 
deckI asked one of the officers of the shipwhether I might 
not have the liberty to send a letter on shoreto let my friends 
know where the ship layand to get some necessary things 
sent to me. This wasit seemsthe boatswaina very civil
courteous sort of manwho told me I should have thator any 
other liberty that I desiredthat he could allow me with safety.
I told him I desired no other; and he answered that the ship's 
boat would go up to London the next tideand he would order 
my letter to be carried. 
Accordinglywhen the boat went offthe boatswain came to 
me and told me the boat was going offand that he went in it 
himselfand asked me if my letter was ready he would take 
care of it. I had prepared myselfyou may be surepenink
and paper beforehandand I had gotten a letter ready directed 
to my governessand enclosed another for my fellow-prisoner
whichhoweverI did not let her know was my husbandnot 
to the last. In that to my governessI let her know where the 
ship layand pressed her earnestly to send me what things I 
knew she had got ready for me for my voyage. 
When I gave the boatswain the letterI gave him a shilling 
with itwhich I told him was for the charge of a messenger 
or porterwhich I entreated him to send with the letter as 
soon as he came on shorethat if possible I might have an 
answer brought back by the same handthat I might know 
what was become of my things; 'for sir' says I'if the ship 
should go away before I have them on boardI am undone.' 
I took carewhen I gave him the shillingto let him see that 
I had a little better furniture about me than the ordinary 
prisonersfor he saw that I had a purseand in it a pretty deal 
of money; and I found that the very sight of it immediately 
furnished me with very different treatment from what I should 
otherwise have met with in the ship; for though he was very 
courteous indeed beforein a kind of natural compassion to 
meas a woman in distressyet he was more than ordinarily 
so afterwardsand procured me to be better treated in the ship
thanI sayI might otherwise have been; as shall appear in
its place.
He very honestly had my letter delivered to my governess's
own handsand brought me back an answer from her in writing;
and when he gave me the answergave me the shilling again.
'There' says he'there's your shilling again toofor I delivered
the letter myself.' I could not tell what to sayI was so surprised
at the thing; but after some pauseI said'Siryou are too kind;
it had been but reasonable that you had paid yourself coach-hire
then.'
'Nono' says he'I am overpaid. What is the gentlewoman?
Your sister.'
'Nosir' says I'she is no relation to mebut she is a dear
friendand all the friends I have in the world.' 'Well' says
he'there are few such friends in the world. Whyshe cried
after you like a child' 'Ay' says I again'she would give a
hundred poundsI believeto deliver me from this dreadful
condition I am in.'
'Would she so?' says he. 'For half the money I believe I could
put you in a way how to deliver yourself.' But this he spoke
softlythat nobody could hear.
'Alas! sir' said I'but then that must be such a deliverance
asif I should be taken againwould cost me my life.' 'Nay'
said he'if you were once out of the shipyou must look to
yourself afterwards; that I can say nothing to.' So we dropped
the discourse for that time.
In the meantimemy governessfaithful to the last moment
conveyed my letter to the prison to my husbandand got an
answer to itand the next day came down herself to the ship
bringing mein the first placea sea-bed as they call itand
all its furnituresuch as was convenientbut not to let the
people think it was extraordinary. She brought with her a
sea-chest--that isa chestsuch as are made for seamenwith
all the conveniences in itand filled with everything almost
that I could want; and in one of the corners of the chestwhere
there was a private drawerwas my bank of money--this is to
sayso much of it as I had resolved to carry with me; for I
ordered a part of my stock to be left behind meto be sent
afterwards in such goods as I should want when I came to
settle; for money in that country is not of much use where all
things are brought for tobaccomuch more is it a great loss
to carry it from hence.
But my case was particular; it was by no means proper to me
to go thither without money or goodsand for a poor convict
that was to be sold as soon as I came on shoreto carry with
me a cargo of goods would be to have notice taken of itand
perhaps to have them seized by the public; so I took part of my
stock with me thusand left the other part with my governess.
My governess brought me a great many other thingsbut it
was not proper for me to look too well provided in the ship
at least till I knew what kind of a captain we should have.
When she came into the shipI thought she would have died
indeed; her heart sank at the sight of meand at the thoughts
of parting with me in that conditionand she cried so intolerably
I could not for a long time have any talk with her.
I took that time to read my fellow-prisoner's letterwhich
howevergreatly perplexed me. He told me was determined 
to gobut found it would be impossible for him to be discharged 
time enough for going in the same shipand which was more 
than allhe began to question whether they would give him 
leave to go in what ship he pleasedthough he did voluntarily 
transport himself; but that they would see him put on board 
such a ship as they should directand that he would be charged 
upon the captain as other convict prisoners were; so that he 
began to be in despair of seeing me till he came to Virginia
which made him almost desperate; seeing thaton the other 
handif I should not be thereif any accident of the sea or of 
mortality should take me awayhe should be the most undone 
creature there in the world. 
This was very perplexingand I knew not what course to take. 
I told my governess the story of the boatswainand she was 
mighty eager with me treat with him; but I had no mind to it
till I heard whether my husbandor fellow-prisonerso she 
called himcould be at liberty to go with me or no. At last I 
was forced to let her into the whole matterexcept only that 
of his being my husband. I told her I had made a positive 
bargain or agreement with him to goif he could get the liberty 
of going in the same shipand that I found he had money. 
Then I read a long lecture to her of what I proposed to do 
when we came therehow we could plantsettleandin short
grow rich without any more adventures; andas a great secret
I told her that we were to marry as soon as he came on board. 
She soon agreed cheerfully to my going when she heard this
and she made it her business from that time to get him out of 
the prison in timeso that he might go in the same ship with 
mewhich at last was brought to passthough with great 
difficultyand not without all the forms of a transported 
prisoner-convictwhich he really was not yetfor he had not 
been triedand which was a great mortification to him. As 
our fate was now determinedand we were both on board
actually bound to Virginiain the despicable quality of 
transported convicts destined to be sold for slavesI for five 
yearsand he under bonds and security not to return to England 
any moreas long as he livedhe was very much dejected and 
cast down; the mortification of being brought on boardas he 
waslike a prisonerpiqued him very muchsince it was first 
told him he should transport himselfand so that he might go 
as a gentleman at liberty. It is true he was not ordered to be 
sold when he came thereas we wereand for that reason he 
was obliged to pay for his passage to the captainwhich we 
were not; as to the resthe was as much at a loss as a child 
what to do with himselfor with what he hadbut by directions. 
Our first business was to compare our stock. He was very 
honest to meand told me his stock was pretty good when he 
came into the prisonbut the living there as he did in a figure 
like a gentlemanandwhich was ten times as muchthe 
making of friendsand soliciting his casehad been very 
expensive; andin a wordall his stock that he had left was 
#108which he had about him all in gold. 
I gave him an account of my stock as faithfullythat is to say
of what I had taken to carry with mefor I was resolved
whatever should happento keep what I had left with my 
governess in reserve; that in case I should diewhat I had with 
me was enough to give himand that which was left in my 
governess's hands would be her ownwhich she had well 
deserved of me indeed. 
My stock which I had with me was #246 some odd shillings; 
so that we had #354 between usbut a worse gotten estate was 
scarce ever put together to being the world with. 
Our greatest misfortune as to our stock was that it was all in 
moneywhich every one knows is an unprofitable cargo to be 
carried to the plantations. I believe his was really all he had 
left in the worldas he told me it was; but Iwho had between 
#700 and #800 in bank when this disaster befell meand who 
had one of the faithfullest friends in the world to manage it 
for meconsidering she was a woman of manner of religious 
principleshad still #300 left in her handwhich I reserved as 
above; besidessome very valuable thingsas particularly two 
gold watchessome small pieces of plateand some rings--all 
stolen goods. The plateringsand watches were put in my 
chest with the moneyand with this fortuneand in the 
sixty-first year of my ageI launched out into a new world
as I may call itin the condition (as to what appeared) only 
of a poornaked convictordered to be transported in respite 
from the gallows. My clothes were poor and meanbut not 
ragged or dirtyand none knew in the whole ship that I had 
anything of value about me. 
Howeveras I had a great many very good clothes and linen 
in abundancewhich I had ordered to be packed up in two 
great boxesI had them shipped on boardnot as my goods
but as consigned to my real name in Virginia; and had the 
bills of loading signed by a captain in my pocket; and in these 
boxes was my plate and watchesand everything of value 
except my moneywhich I kept by itself in a private drawer 
in my chestwhich could not be foundor openedif found
with splitting the chest to pieces. 
In this condition I lay for three weeks in the shipnot knowing 
whether I should have my husband with me or noand therefore 
not resolving how or in what manner to receive the honest 
boatswain's proposalwhich indeed he thought a little strange 
at first. 
At the end of this timebehold my husband came on board. 
He looked with a dejectedangry countenancehis great heart 
was swelled with rage and disdain; to be dragged along with 
three keepers of Newgateand put on board like a convict
when he had not so much as been brought to a trial. He made 
loud complaints of it by his friendsfor it seems he had some 
interest; but his friends got some check in their application
and were told he had had favour enoughand that they had 
received such an account of himsince the last grant of his 
transportationthat he ought to think himself very well treated 
that he was not prosecuted anew. This answer quieted him at 
oncefor he knew too much what might have happenedand 
what he had room to expect; and now he saw the goodness of 
the advice to himwhich prevailed with him to accept of the 
offer of a voluntary transportation. And after this his chagrin 
at these hell-houndsas he called themwas a little overhe 
looked a little composedbegan to be cheerfuland as I was 
telling him how glad I was to have him once more out of their 
handshe took me in his armsand acknowledged with great 
tenderness that I had given him the best advice possible. 'My 
dear' says he'thou has twice saved my life; from henceforward 
it shall be all employed for youand I'll always take your advice.' 
The ship began now to fill; several passengers came on board
who were embarked on no criminal accountand these had 
accommodations assigned them in the great cabinand other 
parts of the shipwhereas weas convictswere thrust down 
belowI know not where. But when my husband came on 
boardI spoke to the boatswainwho had so early given me 
hints of his friendship in carrying my letter. I told him he had 
befriended me in many thingsand I had not made any suitable 
return to himand with that I put a guinea into his hand. I told 
him that my husband was now come on board; that though 
we were both under the present misfortuneyet we had been 
persons of a different character from the wretched crew that 
we came withand desired to know of himwhether the captain 
might not be moved to admit us to some conveniences in the 
shipfor which we would make him what satisfaction he 
pleasedand that we would gratify him for his pains in procuring 
this for us. He took the guineaas I could seewith great 
satisfactionand assured me of his assistance. 
Then he told us he did not doubt but that the captainwho was 
one of the best-humoured gentlemen in the worldwould be 
easily brought to accommodate us as well as we could desire
andto make me easytold me he would go up the next tide 
on purpose to speak to the captain about it. The next morning
happening to sleep a little longer than ordinarywhen I got up
and began to look abroadI saw the boatswain among the men 
in his ordinary business. I was a little melancholy at seeing 
him thereand going forward to speak to himhe saw meand 
came towards mebut not giving him time to speak firstI said
smiling'I doubtsiryou have forgot usfor I see you are very 
busy.' He returned presently'Come along with meand you 
shall see.' So he took me into the great cabinand there sat 
a good sort of a gentlemanly man for a seamanwritingand 
with a great many papers before him. 
'Here' says the boatswain to him that was a-writing'is the 
gentlewoman that the captain spoke to you of'; and turning to 
mehe said'I have been so far from forgetting your business
that I have been up at the captain's houseand have represented 
faithfully to the captain what you saidrelating to you being 
furnished with better conveniences for yourself and your 
husband; and the captain has sent this gentlemanwho is made 
of the shipdown with meon purpose to show you everything
and to accommodate you fully to your contentand bid me 
assure you that you shall not be treated like what you were at 
first expected to bebut with the same respect as other passengers 
are treated.' 
The mate then spoke to meandnot giving me time to thank 
the boatswain for his kindnessconfirmed what the boatswain 
had saidand added that it was the captain's delight to show 
himself kind and charitableespecially to those that were 
under any misfortunesand with that he showed me several 
cabins built upsome in the great cabinand some partitioned 
offout of the steeragebut opening into the great cabin on 
purpose for the accommodation of passengersand gave me 
leave to choose where I would. HoweverI chose a cabin 
which opened into the steeragein which was very good 
conveniences to set our chest and boxesand a table to eat on. 
The mate then told me that the boatswain had given so good 
a character of me and my husbandas to our civil behaviour
that he had orders to tell me we should eat with himif we 
thought fitduring the whole voyageon the common terms 
of passengers; that we might lay in some fresh provisionsif 
we pleased; or if nothe should lay in his usual storeand we 
should have share with him. This was very reviving news to 
meafter so many hardships and afflictions as I had gone 
through of late. I thanked himand told him the captain should 
make his own terms with usand asked him leave to go and 
tell my husband of itwho was not very welland was not yet 
out of his cabin. Accordingly I wentand my husbandwhose 
spirits were still so much sunk with the indignity (as he 
understood it) offered himthat he was scare yet himselfwas 
so revived with the account that I gave him of the reception 
we were like to have in the shipthat he was quite another man
and new vigour and courage appeared in his very countenance. 
So true is itthat the greatest of spiritswhen overwhelmed 
by their afflictionsare subject to the greatest dejectionsand 
are the most apt to despair and give themselves up. 
After some little pause to recover himselfmy husband came 
up with meand gave the mate thanks for the kindnesswhich 
he had expressed to usand sent suitable acknowledgment by 
him to the captainoffering to pay him by advancewhatever 
he demanded for our passageand for the conveniences he had 
helped us to. The mate told him that the captain would be on 
board in the afternoonand that he would leave all that till he 
came. Accordinglyin the afternoon the captain cameand we 
found him the same courteousobliging man that the boatswain 
had represented him to be; and he was so well pleased with 
my husband's conversationthatin shorthe would not let us 
keep the cabin we had chosenbut gave us one thatas I said 
beforeopened into the great cabin. 
Nor were his conditions exorbitantor the man craving and 
eager to make a prey of usbut for fifteen guineas we had our 
whole passage and provisions and cabinate at the captain's 
tableand were very handsomely entertained. 
The captain lay himself in the other part of the great cabin
having let his round houseas they call itto a rich planter 
who went over with his wife and three childrenwho ate by 
themselves. He had some other ordinary passengerswho 
quartered in the steerageand as for our old fraternitythey 
were kept under the hatches while the ship lay thereand came 
very little on the deck. 
I could not refrain acquainting my governess with what had 
happened; it was but just that shewho was so really concerned 
for meshould have part in my good fortune. BesidesI wanted 
her assistance to supply me with several necessarieswhich 
before I was shy of letting anybody see me havethat it might 
not be public; but now I had a cabin and room to set things in
I ordered abundance of good things for our comfort in the 
voyageas brandysugarlemonsetc.to make punchand 
treat our benefactorthe captain; and abundance of things for 
eating and drinking in the voyage; also a larger bedand bedding 
proportioned to it; so thatin a wordwe resolved to want for 
nothing in the voyage. 
All this while I had provided nothing for our assistance when 
we should come to the place and begin to call ourselves planters; 
and I was far from being ignorant of what was needful on that 
occasion; particularly all sorts of tools for the planter's work
and for building; and all kinds of furniture for our dwelling
whichif to be bought in the countrymust necessarily cost 
double the price. 
So I discoursed that point with my governessand she went 
and waited upon the captainand told him that she hoped ways 
might be found out for her two unfortunate cousinsas she 
called usto obtain our freedom when we came into the country
and so entered into a discourse with him about the means and 
terms alsoof which I shall say more in its place; and after 
thus sounding the captainshe let him knowthough we were 
unhappy in the circumstances that occasioned our goingyet 
that we were not unfurnished to set ourselves to work in the 
countryand we resolved to settle and live there as planters
if we might be put in a way how to do it. The captain readily 
offered his assistancetold her the method of entering upon 
such businessand how easynayhow certain it was for 
industrious people to recover their fortunes in such a manner. 
'Madam' says he''tis no reproach to any many in that country 
to have been sent over in worse circumstances than I perceive 
your cousins are inprovided they do but apply with diligence 
and good judgment to the business of that place when they 
come there.' 
She then inquired of him what things it was necessary we 
should carry over with usand helike a very honest as well 
as knowing mantold her thus: 'Madamyour cousins in the 
first place must procure somebody to buy them as servants
in conformity to the conditions of their transportationand 
thenin the name of that personthey may go about what they 
will; they may either purchase some plantations already begun
or they may purchase land of the Government of the country
and begin where they pleaseand both will be done reasonably.' 
She bespoke his favour in the first articlewhich he promised 
to her to take upon himselfand indeed faithfully performed 
itand as to the resthe promised to recommend us to such as 
should give us the best adviceand not to impose upon us
which was as much as could be desired. 
She then asked him if it would not be necessary to furnish us 
with a stock of tools and materials for the business of planting
and he said'Yesby all means.' And then she begged his 
assistance in it. She told him she would furnish us with 
everything that was convenient whatever it cost her. He 
accordingly gave her a long particular of things necessary for 
a planterwhichby his accountcame to about fourscore or 
a hundred pounds. Andin shortshe went about as dexterously 
to buy themas if she had been an old Virginia merchant; only 
that she boughtby my directionabove twice as much of 
everything as he had given her a list of. 
These she put on board in her own nametook his bills of 
loading for themand endorsed those bills of loading to my 
husbandinsuring the cargo afterwards in her own nameby 
our order; so that we were provided for all eventsand for 
all disasters. 
I should have told you that my husband gave her all his whole 
stock of #108whichas I have saidhe had about him in gold
to lay out thusand I gave her a good sum besides; sot that I 
did not break into the stock which I had left in her hands at 
allbut after we had sorted out our whole cargowe had yet 
near #200 in moneywhich was more than enough for our 
purpose. 
In this conditionvery cheerfuland indeed joyful at being so 
happily accommodated as we werewe set sail from Bugby's 
Hole to Gravesendwhere the ship lay about ten more days
and where the captain came on board for good and all. Here 
thecaptain offered us a civilitywhich indeed we had no reason 
to expectnamelyto let us go on shore and refresh ourselves
upon giving our words in a solemn manner that we would not 
go from himand that we would return peaceably on board 
again. This was such an evidence of his confidence in us
that it overcame my husbandwhoin a mere principle of 
gratitudetold himas he could not be in any capacity to make 
a suitable return for such a favourso he could not think of 
accepting of itnor could he be easy that the captain should 
run such a risk. After some mutual civilitiesI gave my 
husband a pursein which was eighty guineasand he put in 
into the captain's hand. 'Therecaptain' says he'there's 
part of a pledge for our fidelity; if we deal dishonestly with 
you on any account'tis your own.' And on this we went 
on shore. 
Indeedthe captain had assurance enough of our resolutions 
to gofor that having made such provision to settle thereit 
did not seem rational that we would choose to remain here at 
the expense and peril of lifefor such it must have been if we 
had been taken again. In a wordwe went all on shore with 
the captainand supped together in Gravesendwhere we were 
very merrystayed all nightlay at the house where we supped
and came all very honestly on board again with him in the 
morning. Here we bought ten dozen bottles of good beersome 
winesome fowlsand such things as we thought might be 
acceptable on board. 
My governess was with us all this whileand went with us 
round into the Downsas did also the captain's wifewith 
whom she went back. I was never so sorrowful at parting 
with my own mother as I was at parting with herand I never 
saw her more. We had a fair easterly wind sprung up the third 
day after we came to the Downsand we sailed from thence 
the 10th of April. Nor did we touch any more at any place
tillbeing driven on the coast of Ireland by a very hard gale 
of windthe ship came to an anchor in a little baynear the 
mouth of a riverwhose name I remember notbut they said 
the river came down from Limerickand that it was the largest 
river in Ireland. 
Herebeing detained by bad weather for some timethe captain
who continued the same kindgood-humoured man as at 
firsttook us two on shore with him again. He id it now in 
kindness to my husband indeedwho bore the sea very illand 
was very sickespecially when it blew so hard. Here we 
bought in again a store of fresh provisionsespecially beef
porkmuttonand fowlsand the captain stayed to pickle up 
five or six barrels of beef to lengthen out the ship's store. We 
were here not above five dayswhen the weather turning mild
and a fair windwe set sail againand in two-and-forty days 
came safe to the coast of Virginia. 
When we drew near to the shorethe captain called me to him
and told me that he found by my discourse I had some relations 
in the placeand that I had been there beforeand so he supposed 
I understood the custom in their disposing the convict prisoners 
when they arrived. I told him I did notand that as to what 
relations I had in the placehe might be sure I would make 
myself known to none of them while I was in the circumstances 
of a prisonerand that as to the restwe left ourselves entirely 
to him to assist usas he was pleased to promise us he would 
do. He told me I must get somebody in the place to come and 
buy us as servantsand who must answer for us to the governor 
of the countryif he demanded us. I told him we should do as 
she should direct; so he brought a planter to treat with himas 
it werefor the purchase of these two servantsmy husband 
and meand there we were formally sold to himand went 
ashore with him. The captain went with usand carried us to 
a certain housewhether it was to be called a tavern or not I 
know notbut we had a bowl of punch there made of rumetc.
and were very merry. After some time the planter gave us a 
certificate of dischargeand an acknowledgment of having 
served him faithfullyand we were free from him the next 
morningto go wither we would. 
For this piece of service the captain demanded of us six 
thousand weight of tabaccowhich he said he was accountable 
for to his freighterand which we immediately bought for him
and made him a present of twenty guineas besideswith which 
he was abundantly satisfied. 
It is not proper to enter here into the particulars of what part 
of the colony of Virginia we settled infor divers reasons; it 
may suffice to mention that we went into the great river 
Potomacthe ship being bound thither; and there we intended 
to have settled firstthough afterwards we altered our minds. 
The first thing I did of moment after having gotten all our 
goods on shoreand placed them in a storehouseor warehouse
whichwith a lodgingwe hired at the small place or village 
where we landed--I saythe first thing was to inquire after my 
motherand after my brother (that fatal person whom I married 
as a husbandas I have related at large). A little inquiry 
furnished me with information that Mrs.----that ismy mother
was dead; that my brother (or husband) was alivewhich I 
confess I was not very glad to hear; but which was worseI 
found he was removed from the plantation where he lived 
formerlyand where I lived with himand lived with one of 
his sons in a plantation just by the place where we landed
and where we had hired a warehouse. 
I was a little surprised at firstbut as I ventured to satisfy 
myself that he could not know meI was not only perfectly 
easybut had a great mind to see himif it was possible to so 
do without his seeing me. In order to that I found out by 
inquiry the plantation where he livedand with a woman of 
that place whom I got to help melike what we call a chairwoman
I rambled about towards the place as if I had only a mind to 
see the country and look about me. At last I came so near that 
I saw the dwellinghouse. I asked the woman whose plantation 
that was; she said it belonged to such a manand looking out 
a little to our right hands'there' says sheis the gentleman 
that owns the plantationand his father with him.' 'What are 
their Christian names?' said I. 'I know not' says she'what 
the old gentleman's name isbut the son's name is Humphrey; 
and I believe' says she'the father's is so too.' You may 
guessif you canwhat a confused mixture of joy and fight 
possessed my thoughts upon this occasionfor I immediately 
knew that this was nobody else but my own sonby that father 
she showed mewho was my own brother. I had no mask
but I ruffled my hood so about my facethat I depended upon 
it that after above twenty years' absenceand withal not 
expecting anything of me in that part of the worldhe would 
not be able to know anything of me. But I need not have used 
all that cautionfor the old gentleman was grown dim-sighted 
by some distemper which had fallen upon his eyesand could 
but just see well enough to walk aboutand not run against a 
tree or into a ditch. The woman that was with me had told me 
that by a mere accidentknowing nothing of what importance 
it was to me. As they drew near to usI said'Does he know 
youMrs. Owen?' (so they called the woman). 'Yes' said 
she'if he hears me speakhe will know me; but he can't see 
well enough to know me or anybody else'; and so she told me 
the story of his sightas I have related. This made me secure
and so I threw open my hoods againand let them pass by me. 
It was a wretched thing for a mother thus to see her own son
a handsomecomely young gentleman in flourishing 
circumstancesand durst not make herself known to himand 
durst not take any notice of him. Let any mother of children 
that reads this consider itand but think with what anguish of 
mind I restrained myself; what yearnings of soul I had in me 
to embrace himand weep over him; and how I thought all my 
entrails turned within methat my very bowels movedand I 
knew not what to doas I now know not how to express those 
agonies! When he went from me I stood gazing and trembling
and looking after him as long as I could see him; then sitting 
down to rest mebut turned from herand lying on my face
weptand kissed the ground that he had set his foot on. 
I could not conceal my disorder so much from the woman but 
that she perceived itand thought I was not wellwhich I was 
obliged to pretend was true; upon which she pressed me to rise
the ground being damp and dangerouswhich I did accordingly
and walked away. 
As I was going back againand still talking of this gentleman 
and his sona new occasion of melancholy offered itself thus. 
The woman beganas if she would tell me a story to divert me: 
'There goes' says she'a very odd tale among the neighbours 
where this gentleman formerly live.' 'What was that?' said 
I. 'Why' says she'that old gentleman going to England
when he was a young manfell in love with a young lady there
one of the finest women that ever was seenand married her
and brought her over hither to his mother who was then living. 
He liver here several years with her' continued she'and had 
several children by herof which the young gentleman that was 
with him now was one; but after some timethe old gentlewoman
his mothertalking to her of something relating to herself when 
she was in Englandand of her circumstances in England
which were bad enoughthe daughter-in-law began to be very 
much surprised and uneasy; andin shortexamining further 
into thingsit appeared past all contradiction that the old 
gentlewoman was her own motherand that consequently that 
son was his wife's own brotherwhich struck the whole family 
with horrorand put them into such confusion that it had almost 
ruined them all. The young woman would not live with him; 
the sonher brother and husbandfor a time went distracted; 
and at last the young woman went away for Englandand has 
never been hears of since.' 
It is easy to believe that I was strangely affected with this story
but 'tis impossible to describe the nature of my disturbance. I 
seemed astonished at the storyand asked her a thousand 
questions about the particularswhich I found she was 
thoroughly acquainted with. At last I began to inquire into the 
circumstances of the familyhow the old gentlewomanI mean 
my motherdiedand how she left what she had; for my mother 
had promised me very solemnlythat when she died she would 
do something for meand leave it soas thatif I was livingI 
should one way or other come at itwithout its being in the 
power of her sonmy brother and husbandto prevent it. She 
told me she did not know exactly how it was orderedbut she 
had been told that my mother had left a sum of moneyand 
had tied her plantation for the payment of itto be made good 
to the daughterif ever she could be heard ofeither in England 
or elsewhere; and that the trust was left with this sonwho was 
the person that we saw with his father. 
This was news too good for me to make light ofandyou 
may be surefilled my heart with a thousand thoughtswhat 
courseI should takehowand whenand in what manner I 
should make myself knownor whether I should ever make 
myself know or no. 
Here was a perplexity that I had not indeed skill to manage 
myself inneither knew I what course to take. It lay heavy 
upon my mind night and day. I could neither sleep nor 
conversesothat my husband perceived itand wondered what 
ailed mestrove to divert mebut it was all to no purpose. He 
pressed me to tell him what it was troubled mebut I put it off
till at lastimportuning me continuallyI was forced to form 
a storywhich yet had a plain truth to lay it upon too. It old 
him I was troubled because I found we must shift our quarters 
and alter our scheme of settlingfor that I found I should be 
known if I stayed in that part of the country; for that my mother 
being deadseveral of my relations were come into that part 
where we then wasand that I must either discover myself to 
themwhich in our present circumstances was not proper on 
many accountsor remove; and which to do I knew notand 
that this it was that made me so melancholy and so thoughtful. 
He joined with me in thisthat it was by no means proper for 
me to make myself known to anybody in the circumstances 
inwhich we then were; and therefore he told me he would be 
willing to remove to any other part of the countryor even to 
any other country if I thought fit. But now I had another 
difficultywhich wasthat if I removed to any other colonyI 
put myself out of the way of ever making a due search after 
those effects which my mother had left. Again I could never 
so much as think of breaking the secret of my former marriage 
to my new husband; it was not a storyas I thoughtthat would 
bear tellingnor could I tell what might be the consequences 
of it; and it was impossible to search into the bottom of the 
thing without making it public all over the countryas well 
who I wasas what I now was also. 
In this perplexity I continued a great whileand this made my 
spouse very uneasy; for he found me perplexedand yet thought 
I was not open with himand did not let him into every part 
of my grievance; and he would often sayhe wondered what 
he had done that I would not trust him with whatever it was
especially if it was grievous and afflicting. The truth ishe 
ought to have been trusted with everythingfor no man in the 
world could deserve better of a wife; but this was a thing I 
knew not how to open to himand yet having nobody to 
disclose any part of it tothe burthen was too heavy for my 
mind; for let them say whatthey please of our sex not being 
able to keep a secretmy life is a plain conviction to me of the 
contrary; but be it our sexor the man's sexa secret of moment 
should always have a confidanta bosom friendto whom we 
may communicate the joy of itor the grief of itbe it which 
it willor it will be a double weight upon the spiritsand 
perhaps become even insupportable in itself; and this I appeal 
to all human testimony for the truth of. 
And this is the cause why many times men as well as women
and men of the greatest and best qualities other waysyet have 
found themselves weak in this partand have not been able to 
bear the weight of a secret joy or of a secret sorrowbut have 
been obliged to disclose iteven for the mere giving vent to 
themselvesand to unbend the mind oppressed with the load 
andweights which attended it. Nor was this any token of folly 
orthoughtlessness at allbut a natural consequence of the thing; 
and such peoplehad they struggled longer with the oppression
would certainly have told it in their sleepand disclosed the 
secretlet it have been of what fatal nature soeverwithout 
regard to the person to whom it might be exposed. This 
necessity of nature is a thing which works sometimes with 
such vehemence in the minds of those who are guilty of any 
atrocious villainysuch as secret murder in particularthat they 
have been obliged to discover itthough the consequence 
would necessarily be their own destruction. Nowthought it 
may be true that the divine justice ought to have the glory of 
all those discoveries and confessionsyet 'tis as certain that 
Providencewhich ordinarily works by the hands of nature
makes use here of the same naturalcauses to produce those 
extraordinary effects. 
I could give several remarkable instances of this in my long 
conversation with crime and with criminals. I knew one fellow 
thatwhile I was in prison in Newgatewas one of those they 
called then night-fliers. I know not what other word they may 
have understood it by sincebut he was one who by connivance 
was admitted to go abroad every eveningwhen he played his 
pranksand furnished those honest people they call thief-catchers 
with business to find out the next dayand restore for a reward 
what they had stolen the evening before. This fellow was as 
sure to tell in his sleep all that he had doneand every step he 
had takenwhat he had stolenand whereas sure as if he had 
engaged to tell it wakingand that there was no harm or danger 
in itand therefore he was obligedafter he had been outto 
lock himself upor be locked up by some of the keepers that 
had him in feethat nobody should hear him; buton the other 
handif he had told all the particularsand given a full account 
of his rambles and successto any comradeany brother thief
or to his employersas I may justly call themthen all was 
well with himand he slept as quietly as other people. 
As the publishing this account of my life is for the sake of the 
just moral of very part of itand for instructioncaution
warningand improvement to every readerso this will not 
passI hopefor an unnecessary digression concerning some 
people being obliged to disclose the greatest secrets either of 
their own or other people's affairs. 
Under the certain oppression of this weight upon my mindI 
laboured in the case I have been naming; and the only relief 
I found for it was to let my husband into so much of it as I 
thought would convince him of the necessity there was for us 
to think of settling in some other part of the world; and the 
next consideration before us waswhich part of the English 
settlements we should go to. My husband was a perfect stranger 
to the countryand had not yet so much as a geographical 
knowledge of the situation of the several places; and Ithat
till I wrote thisdid not know what the word geographical 
signifiedhad only a general knowledge from long conversation 
with people that came from or went to several places; but this 
I knewthat MarylandPennsylvaniaEast and West Jersey
New Yorkand New England lay all north of Virginiaand 
that they were consequently all colder climatesto which for 
that very reasonI had an aversion. For that as I naturally 
loved warm weatherso now I grew into years I had a stronger 
inclination to shun a cold climate. I therefore considered of 
going to Carolinewhich is the only southern colony of the 
English on the continent of Americaand hither I proposed to 
go; and the rather because I might with great ease come from 
thence at any timewhen it might be proper to inquire after 
my mother's effectsand to make myself known enough to 
demand them. 
With this resolution I proposed to my husband our going away 
from where we wasand carrying all our effects with us to 
Carolinewhere we resolved to settle; for my husband readily 
agreed to the first partviz. that was not at all proper to stay 
where we wassince I had assured him we should be known 
thereand the rest I effectually concealed from him. 
But now I found a new difficulty upon me. The main affair 
grew heavy upon my mind stilland I could not think of going 
out of the country without somehow or other making inquiry 
into the grand affair of what my mother had one for me; nor 
could I with any patience bear the thought of going awayand 
not make myself known to my old husband (brother)or to my 
childhis son; only I would fain have had this done without 
my new husband having any knowledge of itor they having 
any knowledge of himor that I had such a thing as a husband. 
I cast about innumerable ways in my thoughts how this might 
be done. I would gladly have sent my husband away to 
Caroline with all our goodsand have come after myselfbut 
this was impracticable; he would never stir without mebeing 
himself perfectly unacquainted with the countryand with the 
methods of settling there or anywhere else. Then I thought 
wewould both go first with part of our goodsand that when 
we were settled I should come back to Virginia and fetch the 
remainder; but even then I knew he would never part with me
and be left there to go on alone. The case was plain; he was 
bread a gentlemanand by consequence was not only 
unacquaintedbut indolentand when we did settlewould 
much rather go out into the woods with his gunwhich they 
call there huntingand which is the ordinary work of the 
Indiansand which they do as servants; I sayhe would rather 
do that than attend the natural business of his plantation. 
These were therefore difficulties insurmountableand such as 
I knew not what to do in. I had such strong impressions on 
mymind about discovering myself to my brotherformerly 
my husbandthat I could not withstand them; and the rather
because it ran constantly in my thoughtsthat if I did not do 
it while he livedI might in vain endeavour to convince my 
son afterward that I was really the same personand that I was 
his motherand so might both lose the assistance and comfort 
of the relationand the benefit of whatever it was my mother 
had leftme; and yeton the other handI could never think it 
proper to discover myself to them in the circumstances I was 
inas well relating to the having a husband with me as to my 
being brought over by a legal transportation as a criminal; on 
both which accounts it was absolutely necessary to me to 
remove from the place where I wasand come again to him
as from another place and in another figure. 
Upon those considerationsI went on with telling my husband 
the absolute necessity there was of our not settling in Potomac 
Riverat least that we should be presently made public there; 
whereas if we went to any other place in the worldwe should 
come in with as much reputation as any family that came to 
plant; thatas it was always agreeable to the inhabitants to 
have families come among them to plantwho brought substance 
with themeither to purchase plantations or begin new ones
so we should be sure of a kindagreeable receptionand that 
without any possibility of a discovery of our circumstances. 
I told him in generaltoothat as I had several relations in the 
place where we wasand that I durst not now let myself be 
known to thembecause they would soon come into a knowledge 
of the occasion and reason of my coming overwhich would be 
to expose myself to the last degreeso I had reason to believe 
that my motherwho dies herehad left me somethingand 
perhaps considerablewhich it might be very well worth my 
while to inquire after; but that this too could not be done 
without exposing us publiclyunless we went from hence; and 
thenwherever we settledI might comeas it wereto visit 
and to see my brother and nephewsmake myself known to 
themclaim and inquire after what was my duebe received 
with respectand at the same time have justice done me with 
cheerfulness and good will; whereasif I did it nowI could 
expect nothing but with troublesuch as exacting it by force
receiving it with curses and reluctanceand with all kinds of 
affrontswhich he would not perhaps bear to see; that in case 
of being obliged to legal proofs of being really her daughter
I might be at lossbe obliged to have recourse to Englandand 
it may be to fail at lastand so lose itwhatever it might be. 
With these argumentsand having thus acquainted my husband 
with the whole secret so far as was needful of himwe resolved 
to go and seek a settlement in some other colonyand at first 
thoughtsCaroline was the place we pitched upon. 
In order to this we began to make inquiry for vessels going to 
Carolinaand in a very little while got informationthat on the 
other side the bayas they call itnamelyin Marylandthere 
was a ship which came from Carolinaladen with rice and 
other goodsand was going back again thitherand from 
thence to Jamaicawith provisions. On this news we hired a 
sloop to take in our goodsand takingas it werea final 
farewell of Potomac Riverwe went with all our cargo over 
to Maryland. 
This was a long and unpleasant voyageand my spouse said 
it was worse to him than all the voyage from Englandbecause 
the weather was but indifferentthe water roughand the 
vessel small and inconvenient. In the next placewe were full 
a hundred miles up Potomac Riverin a part which they call 
Westmoreland Countyand as that river is by far the greatest 
in Virginiaand I have heard say it is the greatest river in the 
world that falls into another riverand not directly into the sea
so we had base weather in itand were frequently in great 
danger; for though we were in the middlewe could not see 
land on either side for many leagues together. Then we had 
the great river or bay of Chesapeake to crosswhich is where 
the river Potomac falls intoitnear thirty miles broadand we 
entered more great vast waters whose names I know notso 
that our voyage was full two hundred milesin a poorsorry 
sloopwith all our treasureand if any accident had happened 
to uswe might at last have been very miserable; supposing 
we had lost our goods and saved our lives onlyand had then 
been left naked and destituteand in a wildstrange place not 
having one friend or acquaintance in all that part of the world. 
The very thought of it gives me some horroreven since the 
danger is past. 
Wellwe came to the place in five days' sailing; I think they 
call it Philip's Point; and beholdwhen we came thitherthe 
ship bound to Carolina was loaded and gone away but three 
days before. This was a disappointment;; buthoweverI
that was to be discouraged with nothingtold my husband 
that since we could not get passage to Carolineand that the 
country we was in was very fertile and goodwe wouldif he 
liked of itsee if we could find out anything for our tune where 
we wasand that if he liked things we would settle here. 
We immediately went on shorebut found no conveniences 
just at that placeeither for our being on shore or preserving 
our goods on shorebut was directed by a very honest Quaker
whom we found thereto go to a place about sixty miles east; 
that is to saynearer the mouth of the baywhere he said he 
livedand where we should be accommodatedeither to plant
or to wait for any other place to plant in that might be more 
convenient; and he invited us with so much kindness and 
simply honestythat we agreed to goand the Quaker himself 
went with us. 
Here we bought us two servantsviz. an English woman-servant 
just come on shore from a ship of Liverpooland a Negro 
man-servantthings absolutely necessary for all people that 
pretended to settle in that country. This honest Quaker was 
very helpful to usand when we came to the place that he 
proposed to usfound us out a convenient storehouse for our 
goodsand lodging for ourselves and our servants; and about 
two months or thereabouts afterwardsby his directionwe 
took up a large piece of land from the governor of that country
in order to form our plantationand so we laid the thoughts 
of going to Caroline wholly asidehaving been very well 
received hereand accommodated with a convenient lodging 
till we could prepare thingsand have land enough cleared
and timber and materials provided for building us a houseall 
which we managed by the direction of the Quaker; so that in 
one year's time we had nearly fifty acres of land clearedpart 
of it enclosedand some of it planted with tabaccothough 
not much; besideswe had garden ground and corn sufficient 
to help supply our servants with roots and herbs and bread. 
And now I persuaded my husband to let me go over the bay 
againand inquire after my friends. He was the willinger to 
consent to it nowbecause he had business upon his hands 
sufficient to employ himbesides his gun to divert himwhich 
they call hunting thereand which he greatly delighted in; and 
indeed we used to look at one anothersometimes with a great 
deal of pleasurereflecting how much better that wasnot than 
Newgate onlybut than the most prosperous of our circumstances 
in the wicked trade that we had been both carrying on. 
Our affair was in a very good posture; we purchased of the 
proprietors of the colony as much land for #35paid in ready 
moneyas would make a sufficient plantation to employ 
between fifty and sixty servantsand whichbeing well 
improvedwould be sufficient to us as long as we could either 
of us live; and as for childrenI was past the prospect of 
anything of that kind. 
But out good fortune did not end here. I wentas I have said
over the bayto the place where my brotheronce a husband
lived; but I did not go to the same village where I was before
but went up another great riveron the east side of the river 
Potomaccalled Rappahannock Riverand by this means 
came on the back of his plantationwhich was largeand by 
the help of a navigable creekor little riverthat ran into the 
RappahannockI came very near it. 
I was now fully resolved to go up point-blank to my brother 
(husband)and to tell him who I was; but not knowing what 
temper I might find him inor how much out of temper rather
I might make him by such a rash visitI resolved to write a 
letter to him firstto let him know who I wasand that I was 
come not to give him any trouble upon the old relationwhich 
I hoped was entirely forgotbut that I applied to him as a sister 
to a brotherdesiring his assistance in the case of that provision 
which our motherat her deceasehad left for my supportand 
which I did not doubt but he would do me justice inespecially 
considering that I was come thus far to look after it. 
I said some very tenderkind things in the letter about his 
sonwhich I told him he knew to be my own childand that 
as I was guilty of nothing in marrying himany more than he 
was in marrying meneither of us having then known our 
being at all related to one anotherso I hoped he would allow 
me the most passionate desire of once seeing my one and only 
childand of showing something of the infirmities of a mother 
in preserving a violent affect for himwho had never been 
able to retain any thought of me one way or other. 
I did believe thathaving received this letterhe would 
immediately give it to his son to readI having understood 
his eyesbeing so dimthat he could not see to read it; but it 
fell out better than sofor as his sight was dimso he had 
allowed his son to open all letters that came to his hand for 
himand the old gentleman being from homeor out of the 
way when my messenger camemy letter came directly to my 
son's handand he opened and read it. 
He called the messenger inafter some little stayand asked 
him where the person was who gave him the letter. The 
messengertold him the placewhich was about seven miles 
offso he bid him stayand ordering a horse to be got ready
and two servantsaway he came to me with the messenger. 
Let any one judge the consternation I was in when my 
messenger came backand told me the old gentleman was not 
at homebut his son was come along with himand was just 
coming up to me. I was perfectly confoundedfor I knew not 
whether it was peace or warnor could I tell how to behave; 
howeverI had but a very few moments to thinkfor my son 
was at the heels of the messengerand coming up into my 
lodgingsasked the fellow at the door something. I suppose 
it wasfor I did not hear it so as to understand itwhich was 
the gentlewoman that sent him; for the messenger said'There 
she issir'; at which he comes directly up to mekisses me
took me in his armsand embraced me with so much passion 
that he could not speakbut I could feel his breast heave and 
throb like a childthat criesbut sobsand cannot cry it out. 
I can neither express nor describe the joy that touched my very 
soul when I foundfor it was easy to discover that partthat 
he came not as a strangerbut as a son to a motherand indeed 
as a son who had never before known what a mother of his 
own was; in shortwe cried over one another a considerable 
whilewhen at last he broke out first. 'My dear mother' says 
he'are you still alive? I never expected to have seen your 
face.' As for meI could say nothing a great while. 
After we had both recovered ourselves a littleand were able 
to talkhe told me how things stood. As to what I had written 
to his fatherhe told me he had not showed my letter to his 
fatheror told him anything about it; that what his grandmother 
left me was in his handsand that he would do me justice to 
my full satisfaction; that as to his fatherhe was old and infirm 
both in body and mind; that he was very fretful and passionate
almost blindand capable of nothing; and he questioned 
whether he would know how to act in an affair which was of 
so nice a nature as this; and that therefore he had come himself
as well to satisfy himself in seeing mewhich he could not 
restrain himself fromas also to put it into my power to make 
a judgmentafter I had seen how things werewhether I would 
discover myself to his father or no. 
This was really so prudently and wisely managedthat I found 
my son was a man of senseand needed no direction from me. 
I told him I did not wonder that his father was as he had 
described himfor that his head was a little touched before I 
went away; and principally his disturbance was because I 
could not be persuaded to conceal our relation and to live with 
him as myhusbandafter I knew that he was my brother; that 
as he knew better than I what his father's present condition 
wasI should readily join with him in such measure as he 
would direct; that I was indifferent as to seeing his father
since I had seen him firstand he could not have told me better 
news than to tell me that what his grandmother had left me 
was entrusted in his handswhoI doubted notnow he knew 
who I waswouldas he saiddo me justice. I inquired then 
how long my mother had been deadand where she diedand 
told so many particulars of the familythat I left him no room 
to doubt the truth of my being really and truly his mother. 
My son then inquired where I wasand how I had disposed 
myself. I told him I was on the Maryland side of the bayat 
the plantation of a particular friend who came from England 
in the same ship with me; that as for that side of the bay where 
he wasI had no habitation. He told me I should go home 
with himand live with himif I pleasedas long as I lived; 
that as to his fatherhe knew nobodyand would never so 
much as guess at me. I considered of that a littleand told 
himthat though it was really no concern to me to live at a 
distance from himyet I could not say it would be the most 
comfortable thing in the world to me to live in the house with 
himand to have that unhappy object always before mewhich 
had been such a blow to my peace before; that though I should 
be glad to have his company (my son)or to be as near him as 
possible while I stayedyet I could not think of being in the 
house where I should be also under constant restraint for fear 
of betraying myself in my discoursenor should I be able to 
refrain some expressions in my conversing with him as my 
sonthat might discover the whole affairwhich would by no 
means be convenient. 
He acknowledged that I was right in all this. 'But thendear 
mother' says he'you shall be as near me as you can.' So he 
took me with him on horseback to a plantation next to his own
and where I was as well entertained as I could have been in his 
own. Having left me there he went away hometelling me we 
would talk of the main business the next day; and having first 
called me his auntand given a charge to the peoplewho it 
seems were his tenantsto treat me with all possible respect. 
About two hours after he was gonehe sent me a maid-servant 
and a Negro boy to wait on meand provisions ready dressed 
for my supper; and thus I was as if I had been in a new world
and began secretly now to wish that I had not brought my 
Lancashire husband from England at all. 
Howeverthat wish was not hearty neitherfor I lived my 
Lancashire husband entirelyas indeed I had ever done from 
the beginning; and he merited from me as much as it was 
possible for a man to do; but that by the way. 
The next morning my son came to visit me again almost as 
soon as I was up. After a little discoursehe first of all pulled 
out a deerskin bagand gave it mewith five-and-fifty Spanish 
pistoles in itand told me that was to supply my expenses from 
Englandfor though it was not his business to inquireyet he 
ought to think I did not bring a great deal of money out with 
meit not being usual to bring much money into that country. 
Then he pulled out his grandmother's willand read it over to 
mewhereby it appeared that she had left a small plantation
as he called iton York Riverthat iswhere my mother lived
to mewith the stock of servants and cattle upon itand given 
it in trust to this son of mine for my usewhenever he should 
hear of my being aliveand to my heirsif I had any children
and in default of heirsto whomsoever I should by will dispose 
of it; but gave the income of ittill I should be heard ofor 
foundto my said son; and if I should not be livingthen it was 
to himand his heirs. 
This plantationthough remote from himhe said he did not 
let outbut managed it by a head-clerk (steward)as he did 
another that was his father'sthat lay hard by itand went over 
himself three or four times a year to look after it. I asked him 
what he thought the plantation might be worth. He saidif I 
would let it outhe would give me about 60 a year for it; but 
if I would live on itthen it would be worth much moreand
he believedwould bring me in about #150 a year. But seeing 
I was likely either to settle on the other side of the bayor 
might perhaps have a mind to go back to England againif I 
would let him be my steward he would manage it for meas 
he had done for himselfand that he believed he should be 
able to send me as much tobacco to England from it as would 
yield me about #100 a yearsometimes more. 
This was all strange news to meand things I had not been 
used to; and really my heart began to look up more seriously 
than I think it ever did beforeand to look with great thankfulness 
to the hand of Providencewhich had done such wonders for 
mewho had been myself the greatest wonder of wickedness 
perhaps that had been suffered to live in the world. And I must 
again observethat not on this occasion onlybut even on all 
other occasions of thankfulnessmy past wicked and abominable 
life never looked so monstrous to meand I never so completely 
abhorred itand reproached myself with itas when I had a 
sense upon me of Providence doing good to mewhile I had 
been making those vile returns on my part. 
But I leave the reader to improve these thoughtsas no doubt 
they will see causeand I go on to the fact. My son's tender 
carriage and kind offers fetched tears from mealmost all the 
while he talked with me. IndeedI could scarce discourse 
with him but in the intervals of my passion; howeverat length 
I beganand expressing myself with wonder at my being so 
happy to have the trust of what I had leftput into the hands 
of my own childI told himthat as to the inheritance of itI 
had no child but him in the worldand was now past having 
any if I should marryand therefore would desire him to get 
a writing drawnwhich I was ready to executeby which I 
wouldafter megive it wholly to him and to his heirs. And 
in the meantimesmilingI asked him what made him continue 
a bachelor so long. His answer was kind and readythat 
Virginia did not yield any great plenty of wivesand that since 
I talked of going back to EnglandI should send him a wife 
from London. 
This was the substance of our first day's conversationthe 
pleasantest day that ever passed over my head in my lifeand 
which gave me the truest satisfaction. He came every day 
after thisand spent great part of his time with meand carried 
me about to several of his friends' houseswhere I was 
entertained with great respect. Also I dines several times at 
his own housewhen he took care always to see his half-dead 
father so out of the way that I never saw himor he me. I 
made him one presentand it was all I had of valueand that 
was one of the gold watchesof which I mentioned above
that I had two in my chestand this I happened to have with 
meand I gave it him at his third visit. I told him I had nothing 
of any value to bestow but thatand I desired he would now 
and then kiss it for my sake. I did not indeed tell him that I 
had stole it from a gentlewoman's sideat a meeting-house in 
London. That's by the way. 
He stood a little while hesitatingas if doubtful whether to 
take it or no; but I pressed it on himand made him accept it
and it was not much less worth than his leather pouch full of 
Spanish gold; nothough it were to be reckoned as if at London
whereas it was worth twice as much therewhere I gave it him. 
At length he took itkissed ittold me the watch should be a 
debt upon him that he would be paying as long as I lived. 
A few days after he brought the writings of giftand the 
scrivener with themand I signed them very freelyand 
delivered them to him with a hundred kisses; for sure nothing 
ever passed between a mother and a tenderdutiful child with 
more affection. The next day he brings me an obligation 
under his hand and sealwhereby he engaged himself to 
manage and improve the plantation for my accountand with 
his utmost skilland to remit the produce to my order wherever 
I should be; and withalto be obliged himself to make up the 
produce #100 a year to me. When he had done sohe told me 
that as I came to demand it before the crop was offI had a 
right to produce of the current yearand so he paid me #100 
in Spanish pieces of eightand desired me to give him a receipt 
for it as in full for that yearending at Christmas following; 
this being about the latter end of August. 
I stayed here about five weeksand indeed had much ado to 
get away then. Nayhe would have come over the bay with 
mebut I would by no means allow him to it. Howeverhe 
would send me over in a sloop of his ownwhich was built 
like a yachtand served him as well for pleasure as business. 
This I accepted ofand soafter the utmost expressions both 
of duty and affectionhe let me come awayand I arrived safe 
in two days at my friend's the Quaker's. 
I brought over with me for the use of our plantationthree 
horseswith harness and saddlessome hogstwo cowsand 
a thousand other thingsthe gift of the kindest and tenderest 
child that ever woman had. I related to my husband all the 
particulars of this voyageexcept that I called my son my 
cousin; and first I told him that I had lost my watchwhich 
he seemed to take as a misfortune; but then I told him how 
kind my cousin had beenthat my mother had left me such a 
plantationand that he had preserved it for mein hopes some 
time or other he should hear from me; then I told him that I 
had left it to his managementthat he would render me a 
faithful account of its produce; and then I pulled him out the 
#100 in silveras the first year's produce; and then pulling 
out the deerskin purse with the pistoles'And heremy dear' 
says I'is the gold watch.' My husband--so is Heaven's 
goodness sure to work the same effects in all sensible minds 
where mercies touch the heart--lifted up both handsand with 
an ecstacy of joy'What is God a-doing' says he'for such an 
ungrateful dog as I am!' Then I let him know what I had 
brought over in the sloopbesides all this; I mean the horses
hogsand cowsand other stores for our plantation; all which 
added to his surpriseand filled his heart with thankfulness; 
and from this time forward I believe he was as sincere a penitent
and as thoroughly a reformed manas ever God's goodness 
brought back from a profligatea highwaymanand a robber. 
I could fill a larger history than this with the evidence of this 
truthand but that I doubt that part of the story will not be 
equally diverting as the wicked partI have had thoughts of 
making a volume of it by itself. 
As for myselfas this is to be my own storynot my husband's
I return to that part which related to myself. We went on with 
our plantationand managed it with the help and diversion of 
such friends as we got there by our obliging behaviourand 
especially the honest Quakerwho proved a faithfulgenerous
and steady friend to us; and we had very good successfor 
having a flourishing stock to begin withas I have saidand 
this being now increased by the addition of #150 sterling in 
moneywe enlarged our number of servantsbuilt us a very 
good houseand cured every year a great deal of land. The 
second year I wrote to my old governessgiving her part with 
us of the joy of our successand order her how to lay out the 
money I had left with herwhich was #250 as aboveand to 
send it to us in goodswhich she performed with her usual 
kindness and fidelityand this arrived safe to us. 
Here we had a supply of all sorts of clothesas well for my 
husband as for myself; and I took especial care to buy for 
him all those things that I knew he delighted to have; as two 
good long wigstwo silver-hilted swordsthree or four fine 
fowling-piecesa find saddle with holsters and pistols very 
handsomewith a scarlet cloak; andin a wordeverything I 
could think of to oblige himand to make him appearas he 
really wasa very fine gentleman. I ordered a good quantity 
of such household stuff as we yet wantedwith linen of all 
sorts for us both. As for myselfI wanted very little of clothes 
or linenbeing very well furnished before. The rest of my 
cargo consisted in iron-work of all sortsharness for horses
toolsclothes for servantsand woollen clothstuffsserges
stockingsshoeshatsand the likesuch as servants wear; 
and whole pieces also to make up for servantsall by direction 
of the Quaker; and all this cargo arrived safeand in good 
conditionwith three woman-servantslusty wencheswhich 
my old governess had picked for mesuitable enough to the 
placeand to the work we had for them to do; one of which 
happened to come doublehaving been got with child by one 
of the seamen in the shipas she owned afterwardsbefore 
the ship got so far as Gravesend; so she brought us a stout 
boyabout seven months after her landing. 
My husbandyou may supposewas a little surprised at the 
arriving of all this cargo from England; and talking with me 
after he saw the account of this particular'My dear' says he
'what is the meaning of all this? I fear you will run us too 
deep in debt: when shall we be able to make return for it all?' 
I smiledand told him that is was all paid for; and then I told 
himthat what our circumstances might expose us toI had 
not taken my whole stock with methat I had reserved so 
much in my friend's handswhich now we were come over 
safeand was settled in a way to liveI had sent foras he 
might see. 
He was amazedand stood a while telling upon his fingers
but said nothing. At last he began thus: 'Holdlet's see' says 
hetelling upon his fingers stilland first on his thumb; 'there's 
#246 in money at firstthen two gold watchesdiamond rings
and plate' says heupon the forefinger. Then upon the next 
finger'Here's a plantation on York River#100 a yearthen 
#150 in moneythen a sloop load of horsescowshogsand 
stores'; and so on to the thumb again. 'And now' says he'a 
cargo cost #250 in Englandand worth here twice the money.' 
'Well' says I'what do you make of all that?' 'Make of it?' 
says he; 'whywho says I was deceived when I married a wife 
in Lancashire? I think I have married a fortuneand a very 
good fortune too' says he. 
In a wordwe were now in very considerable circumstances
and every year increasing; for our new plantation grew upon 
our hands insensiblyand in eight years which we lived upon 
itwe brought it to such pitchthat the produce was at least 
#300 sterling a year; I meanworth so much in England. 
After I had been a year at home againI went over the bay to 
see my sonand to receive another year's income of my 
plantation; and I was surprised to hearjust at my landing there
that my old husband was deadand had not been buried above 
a fortnight. ThisI confesswas not disagreeable news
because now I could appear as I wasin a married condition; 
so I told my son before I came from himthat I believed I 
should marry a gentleman who had a plantation near mine; 
and though I was legally free to marryas to any obligation 
that was on me beforeyet that I was shy of itlest the blot 
should some time or other be revivedand it might make a 
husband uneasy. My sonthe same kinddutifuland obliging 
creature as evertreated me now at his own housepaid me 
my hundred poundsand sent me home again loaded with presents. 
Some time after thisI let my son know I was marriedand 
invited him over to see usand my husband wrote a very 
obliging letter to him alsoinviting him to come and see him; 
and he came accordingly some months afterand happened to 
be there just when my cargo from England came inwhich I 
let him believe belonged all to my husband's estatenot to me. 
It must be observed that when the old wretch my brother 
(husband) was deadI then freely gave my husband an account 
of all that affairand of this cousinas I had called him before
being my own son by that mistaken unhappy match. He was 
perfectly easy in the accountand told me he should have 
been as easy if the old manas we called himhad been alive. 
'For' said he'it was no fault of yoursnor of his; it was a 
mistake impossible to be prevented.' He only reproached him 
with desiring me to conceal itand to live with him as a wife
after I knew that he was my brother; thathe saidwas a vile 
part. Thus all these difficulties were made easyand we lived 
together with the greatest kindness and comfort imaginable. 
We are grown old; I am come back to Englandbeing almost 
seventy years of agehusband sixty-eighthaving performed 
much more than the limited terms of my transportation; and 
nownotwithstanding all the fatigues and all the miseries we 
have both gone throughwe have both gone throughwe are 
both of us in good heart and health. My husband remained 
there some time after me to settle our affairsand at first I had 
intended to go back to himbut at his desire I altered that 
resolutionand he is come over to England alsowhere we 
resolve to spend the remainder of our years in sincere penitence 
for the wicked lives we have lived. 
WRITTEN IN THE YEAR 1683 
1
The bell at St. Sepulchre'swhich tolls upon execution day.